Network Working Group                                       J. Rosenberg
Request for Comments: 3261                                   dynamicsoft
Obsoletes: 2543                                           H. Schulzrinne
Category: Standards Track                                    Columbia U.
                                                           G. Camarillo
                                                               Ericsson
                                                            A. Johnston
                                                               WorldCom
                                                            J. Peterson
                                                                Neustar
                                                              R. Sparks
                                                            dynamicsoft
                                                             M. Handley
                                                                   ICIR
                                                            E. Schooler
                                                                   AT&T
                                                              June 2002

                   SIP: Session Initiation Protocol

Status of this Memo

  This document specifies an Internet standards track protocol for the
  Internet community, and requests discussion and suggestions for
  improvements.  Please refer to the current edition of the "Internet
  Official Protocol Standards" (STD 1) for the standardization state
  and status of this protocol.  Distribution of this memo is unlimited.

Copyright Notice

  Copyright (C) The Internet Society (2002).  All Rights Reserved.

Abstract

  This document describes Session Initiation Protocol (SIP), an
  application-layer control (signaling) protocol for creating,
  modifying, and terminating sessions with one or more participants.
  These sessions include Internet telephone calls, multimedia
  distribution, and multimedia conferences.

  SIP invitations used to create sessions carry session descriptions
  that allow participants to agree on a set of compatible media types.
  SIP makes use of elements called proxy servers to help route requests
  to the user's current location, authenticate and authorize users for
  services, implement provider call-routing policies, and provide
  features to users.  SIP also provides a registration function that
  allows users to upload their current locations for use by proxy
  servers.  SIP runs on top of several different transport protocols.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 1]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Table of Contents

  1          Introduction ........................................    8
  2          Overview of SIP Functionality .......................    9
  3          Terminology .........................................   10
  4          Overview of Operation ...............................   10
  5          Structure of the Protocol ...........................   18
  6          Definitions .........................................   20
  7          SIP Messages ........................................   26
  7.1        Requests ............................................   27
  7.2        Responses ...........................................   28
  7.3        Header Fields .......................................   29
  7.3.1      Header Field Format .................................   30
  7.3.2      Header Field Classification .........................   32
  7.3.3      Compact Form ........................................   32
  7.4        Bodies ..............................................   33
  7.4.1      Message Body Type ...................................   33
  7.4.2      Message Body Length .................................   33
  7.5        Framing SIP Messages ................................   34
  8          General User Agent Behavior .........................   34
  8.1        UAC Behavior ........................................   35
  8.1.1      Generating the Request ..............................   35
  8.1.1.1    Request-URI .........................................   35
  8.1.1.2    To ..................................................   36
  8.1.1.3    From ................................................   37
  8.1.1.4    Call-ID .............................................   37
  8.1.1.5    CSeq ................................................   38
  8.1.1.6    Max-Forwards ........................................   38
  8.1.1.7    Via .................................................   39
  8.1.1.8    Contact .............................................   40
  8.1.1.9    Supported and Require ...............................   40
  8.1.1.10   Additional Message Components .......................   41
  8.1.2      Sending the Request .................................   41
  8.1.3      Processing Responses ................................   42
  8.1.3.1    Transaction Layer Errors ............................   42
  8.1.3.2    Unrecognized Responses ..............................   42
  8.1.3.3    Vias ................................................   43
  8.1.3.4    Processing 3xx Responses ............................   43
  8.1.3.5    Processing 4xx Responses ............................   45
  8.2        UAS Behavior ........................................   46
  8.2.1      Method Inspection ...................................   46
  8.2.2      Header Inspection ...................................   46
  8.2.2.1    To and Request-URI ..................................   46
  8.2.2.2    Merged Requests .....................................   47
  8.2.2.3    Require .............................................   47
  8.2.3      Content Processing ..................................   48
  8.2.4      Applying Extensions .................................   49
  8.2.5      Processing the Request ..............................   49



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 2]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  8.2.6      Generating the Response .............................   49
  8.2.6.1    Sending a Provisional Response ......................   49
  8.2.6.2    Headers and Tags ....................................   50
  8.2.7      Stateless UAS Behavior ..............................   50
  8.3        Redirect Servers ....................................   51
  9          Canceling a Request .................................   53
  9.1        Client Behavior .....................................   53
  9.2        Server Behavior .....................................   55
  10         Registrations .......................................   56
  10.1       Overview ............................................   56
  10.2       Constructing the REGISTER Request ...................   57
  10.2.1     Adding Bindings .....................................   59
  10.2.1.1   Setting the Expiration Interval of Contact Addresses    60
  10.2.1.2   Preferences among Contact Addresses .................   61
  10.2.2     Removing Bindings ...................................   61
  10.2.3     Fetching Bindings ...................................   61
  10.2.4     Refreshing Bindings .................................   61
  10.2.5     Setting the Internal Clock ..........................   62
  10.2.6     Discovering a Registrar .............................   62
  10.2.7     Transmitting a Request ..............................   62
  10.2.8     Error Responses .....................................   63
  10.3       Processing REGISTER Requests ........................   63
  11         Querying for Capabilities ...........................   66
  11.1       Construction of OPTIONS Request .....................   67
  11.2       Processing of OPTIONS Request .......................   68
  12         Dialogs .............................................   69
  12.1       Creation of a Dialog ................................   70
  12.1.1     UAS behavior ........................................   70
  12.1.2     UAC Behavior ........................................   71
  12.2       Requests within a Dialog ............................   72
  12.2.1     UAC Behavior ........................................   73
  12.2.1.1   Generating the Request ..............................   73
  12.2.1.2   Processing the Responses ............................   75
  12.2.2     UAS Behavior ........................................   76
  12.3       Termination of a Dialog .............................   77
  13         Initiating a Session ................................   77
  13.1       Overview ............................................   77
  13.2       UAC Processing ......................................   78
  13.2.1     Creating the Initial INVITE .........................   78
  13.2.2     Processing INVITE Responses .........................   81
  13.2.2.1   1xx Responses .......................................   81
  13.2.2.2   3xx Responses .......................................   81
  13.2.2.3   4xx, 5xx and 6xx Responses ..........................   81
  13.2.2.4   2xx Responses .......................................   82
  13.3       UAS Processing ......................................   83
  13.3.1     Processing of the INVITE ............................   83
  13.3.1.1   Progress ............................................   84
  13.3.1.2   The INVITE is Redirected ............................   84



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 3]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  13.3.1.3   The INVITE is Rejected ..............................   85
  13.3.1.4   The INVITE is Accepted ..............................   85
  14         Modifying an Existing Session .......................   86
  14.1       UAC Behavior ........................................   86
  14.2       UAS Behavior ........................................   88
  15         Terminating a Session ...............................   89
  15.1       Terminating a Session with a BYE Request ............   90
  15.1.1     UAC Behavior ........................................   90
  15.1.2     UAS Behavior ........................................   91
  16         Proxy Behavior ......................................   91
  16.1       Overview ............................................   91
  16.2       Stateful Proxy ......................................   92
  16.3       Request Validation ..................................   94
  16.4       Route Information Preprocessing .....................   96
  16.5       Determining Request Targets .........................   97
  16.6       Request Forwarding ..................................   99
  16.7       Response Processing .................................  107
  16.8       Processing Timer C ..................................  114
  16.9       Handling Transport Errors ...........................  115
  16.10      CANCEL Processing ...................................  115
  16.11      Stateless Proxy .....................................  116
  16.12      Summary of Proxy Route Processing ...................  118
  16.12.1    Examples ............................................  118
  16.12.1.1  Basic SIP Trapezoid .................................  118
  16.12.1.2  Traversing a Strict-Routing Proxy ...................  120
  16.12.1.3  Rewriting Record-Route Header Field Values ..........  121
  17         Transactions ........................................  122
  17.1       Client Transaction ..................................  124
  17.1.1     INVITE Client Transaction ...........................  125
  17.1.1.1   Overview of INVITE Transaction ......................  125
  17.1.1.2   Formal Description ..................................  125
  17.1.1.3   Construction of the ACK Request .....................  129
  17.1.2     Non-INVITE Client Transaction .......................  130
  17.1.2.1   Overview of the non-INVITE Transaction ..............  130
  17.1.2.2   Formal Description ..................................  131
  17.1.3     Matching Responses to Client Transactions ...........  132
  17.1.4     Handling Transport Errors ...........................  133
  17.2       Server Transaction ..................................  134
  17.2.1     INVITE Server Transaction ...........................  134
  17.2.2     Non-INVITE Server Transaction .......................  137
  17.2.3     Matching Requests to Server Transactions ............  138
  17.2.4     Handling Transport Errors ...........................  141
  18         Transport ...........................................  141
  18.1       Clients .............................................  142
  18.1.1     Sending Requests ....................................  142
  18.1.2     Receiving Responses .................................  144
  18.2       Servers .............................................  145
  18.2.1     Receiving Requests ..................................  145



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 4]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  18.2.2     Sending Responses ...................................  146
  18.3       Framing .............................................  147
  18.4       Error Handling ......................................  147
  19         Common Message Components ...........................  147
  19.1       SIP and SIPS Uniform Resource Indicators ............  148
  19.1.1     SIP and SIPS URI Components .........................  148
  19.1.2     Character Escaping Requirements .....................  152
  19.1.3     Example SIP and SIPS URIs ...........................  153
  19.1.4     URI Comparison ......................................  153
  19.1.5     Forming Requests from a URI .........................  156
  19.1.6     Relating SIP URIs and tel URLs ......................  157
  19.2       Option Tags .........................................  158
  19.3       Tags ................................................  159
  20         Header Fields .......................................  159
  20.1       Accept ..............................................  161
  20.2       Accept-Encoding .....................................  163
  20.3       Accept-Language .....................................  164
  20.4       Alert-Info ..........................................  164
  20.5       Allow ...............................................  165
  20.6       Authentication-Info .................................  165
  20.7       Authorization .......................................  165
  20.8       Call-ID .............................................  166
  20.9       Call-Info ...........................................  166
  20.10      Contact .............................................  167
  20.11      Content-Disposition .................................  168
  20.12      Content-Encoding ....................................  169
  20.13      Content-Language ....................................  169
  20.14      Content-Length ......................................  169
  20.15      Content-Type ........................................  170
  20.16      CSeq ................................................  170
  20.17      Date ................................................  170
  20.18      Error-Info ..........................................  171
  20.19      Expires .............................................  171
  20.20      From ................................................  172
  20.21      In-Reply-To .........................................  172
  20.22      Max-Forwards ........................................  173
  20.23      Min-Expires .........................................  173
  20.24      MIME-Version ........................................  173
  20.25      Organization ........................................  174
  20.26      Priority ............................................  174
  20.27      Proxy-Authenticate ..................................  174
  20.28      Proxy-Authorization .................................  175
  20.29      Proxy-Require .......................................  175
  20.30      Record-Route ........................................  175
  20.31      Reply-To ............................................  176
  20.32      Require .............................................  176
  20.33      Retry-After .........................................  176
  20.34      Route ...............................................  177



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 5]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  20.35      Server ..............................................  177
  20.36      Subject .............................................  177
  20.37      Supported ...........................................  178
  20.38      Timestamp ...........................................  178
  20.39      To ..................................................  178
  20.40      Unsupported .........................................  179
  20.41      User-Agent ..........................................  179
  20.42      Via .................................................  179
  20.43      Warning .............................................  180
  20.44      WWW-Authenticate ....................................  182
  21         Response Codes ......................................  182
  21.1       Provisional 1xx .....................................  182
  21.1.1     100 Trying ..........................................  183
  21.1.2     180 Ringing .........................................  183
  21.1.3     181 Call Is Being Forwarded .........................  183
  21.1.4     182 Queued ..........................................  183
  21.1.5     183 Session Progress ................................  183
  21.2       Successful 2xx ......................................  183
  21.2.1     200 OK ..............................................  183
  21.3       Redirection 3xx .....................................  184
  21.3.1     300 Multiple Choices ................................  184
  21.3.2     301 Moved Permanently ...............................  184
  21.3.3     302 Moved Temporarily ...............................  184
  21.3.4     305 Use Proxy .......................................  185
  21.3.5     380 Alternative Service .............................  185
  21.4       Request Failure 4xx .................................  185
  21.4.1     400 Bad Request .....................................  185
  21.4.2     401 Unauthorized ....................................  185
  21.4.3     402 Payment Required ................................  186
  21.4.4     403 Forbidden .......................................  186
  21.4.5     404 Not Found .......................................  186
  21.4.6     405 Method Not Allowed ..............................  186
  21.4.7     406 Not Acceptable ..................................  186
  21.4.8     407 Proxy Authentication Required ...................  186
  21.4.9     408 Request Timeout .................................  186
  21.4.10    410 Gone ............................................  187
  21.4.11    413 Request Entity Too Large ........................  187
  21.4.12    414 Request-URI Too Long ............................  187
  21.4.13    415 Unsupported Media Type ..........................  187
  21.4.14    416 Unsupported URI Scheme ..........................  187
  21.4.15    420 Bad Extension ...................................  187
  21.4.16    421 Extension Required ..............................  188
  21.4.17    423 Interval Too Brief ..............................  188
  21.4.18    480 Temporarily Unavailable .........................  188
  21.4.19    481 Call/Transaction Does Not Exist .................  188
  21.4.20    482 Loop Detected ...................................  188
  21.4.21    483 Too Many Hops ...................................  189
  21.4.22    484 Address Incomplete ..............................  189



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 6]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  21.4.23    485 Ambiguous .......................................  189
  21.4.24    486 Busy Here .......................................  189
  21.4.25    487 Request Terminated ..............................  190
  21.4.26    488 Not Acceptable Here .............................  190
  21.4.27    491 Request Pending .................................  190
  21.4.28    493 Undecipherable ..................................  190
  21.5       Server Failure 5xx ..................................  190
  21.5.1     500 Server Internal Error ...........................  190
  21.5.2     501 Not Implemented .................................  191
  21.5.3     502 Bad Gateway .....................................  191
  21.5.4     503 Service Unavailable .............................  191
  21.5.5     504 Server Time-out .................................  191
  21.5.6     505 Version Not Supported ...........................  192
  21.5.7     513 Message Too Large ...............................  192
  21.6       Global Failures 6xx .................................  192
  21.6.1     600 Busy Everywhere .................................  192
  21.6.2     603 Decline .........................................  192
  21.6.3     604 Does Not Exist Anywhere .........................  192
  21.6.4     606 Not Acceptable ..................................  192
  22         Usage of HTTP Authentication ........................  193
  22.1       Framework ...........................................  193
  22.2       User-to-User Authentication .........................  195
  22.3       Proxy-to-User Authentication ........................  197
  22.4       The Digest Authentication Scheme ....................  199
  23         S/MIME ..............................................  201
  23.1       S/MIME Certificates .................................  201
  23.2       S/MIME Key Exchange .................................  202
  23.3       Securing MIME bodies ................................  205
  23.4       SIP Header Privacy and Integrity using S/MIME:
             Tunneling SIP .......................................  207
  23.4.1     Integrity and Confidentiality Properties of SIP
             Headers .............................................  207
  23.4.1.1   Integrity ...........................................  207
  23.4.1.2   Confidentiality .....................................  208
  23.4.2     Tunneling Integrity and Authentication ..............  209
  23.4.3     Tunneling Encryption ................................  211
  24         Examples ............................................  213
  24.1       Registration ........................................  213
  24.2       Session Setup .......................................  214
  25         Augmented BNF for the SIP Protocol ..................  219
  25.1       Basic Rules .........................................  219
  26         Security Considerations: Threat Model and Security
             Usage Recommendations ...............................  232
  26.1       Attacks and Threat Models ...........................  233
  26.1.1     Registration Hijacking ..............................  233
  26.1.2     Impersonating a Server ..............................  234
  26.1.3     Tampering with Message Bodies .......................  235
  26.1.4     Tearing Down Sessions ...............................  235



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 7]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  26.1.5     Denial of Service and Amplification .................  236
  26.2       Security Mechanisms .................................  237
  26.2.1     Transport and Network Layer Security ................  238
  26.2.2     SIPS URI Scheme .....................................  239
  26.2.3     HTTP Authentication .................................  240
  26.2.4     S/MIME ..............................................  240
  26.3       Implementing Security Mechanisms ....................  241
  26.3.1     Requirements for Implementers of SIP ................  241
  26.3.2     Security Solutions ..................................  242
  26.3.2.1   Registration ........................................  242
  26.3.2.2   Interdomain Requests ................................  243
  26.3.2.3   Peer-to-Peer Requests ...............................  245
  26.3.2.4   DoS Protection ......................................  246
  26.4       Limitations .........................................  247
  26.4.1     HTTP Digest .........................................  247
  26.4.2     S/MIME ..............................................  248
  26.4.3     TLS .................................................  249
  26.4.4     SIPS URIs ...........................................  249
  26.5       Privacy .............................................  251
  27         IANA Considerations .................................  252
  27.1       Option Tags .........................................  252
  27.2       Warn-Codes ..........................................  252
  27.3       Header Field Names ..................................  253
  27.4       Method and Response Codes ...........................  253
  27.5       The "message/sip" MIME type.  .......................  254
  27.6       New Content-Disposition Parameter Registrations .....  255
  28         Changes From RFC 2543 ...............................  255
  28.1       Major Functional Changes ............................  255
  28.2       Minor Functional Changes ............................  260
  29         Normative References ................................  261
  30         Informative References ..............................  262
  A          Table of Timer Values ...............................  265
  Acknowledgments ................................................  266
  Authors' Addresses .............................................  267
  Full Copyright Statement .......................................  269

1 Introduction

  There are many applications of the Internet that require the creation
  and management of a session, where a session is considered an
  exchange of data between an association of participants.  The
  implementation of these applications is complicated by the practices
  of participants: users may move between endpoints, they may be
  addressable by multiple names, and they may communicate in several
  different media - sometimes simultaneously.  Numerous protocols have
  been authored that carry various forms of real-time multimedia
  session data such as voice, video, or text messages.  The Session
  Initiation Protocol (SIP) works in concert with these protocols by



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 8]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  enabling Internet endpoints (called user agents) to discover one
  another and to agree on a characterization of a session they would
  like to share.  For locating prospective session participants, and
  for other functions, SIP enables the creation of an infrastructure of
  network hosts (called proxy servers) to which user agents can send
  registrations, invitations to sessions, and other requests.  SIP is
  an agile, general-purpose tool for creating, modifying, and
  terminating sessions that works independently of underlying transport
  protocols and without dependency on the type of session that is being
  established.

2 Overview of SIP Functionality

  SIP is an application-layer control protocol that can establish,
  modify, and terminate multimedia sessions (conferences) such as
  Internet telephony calls.  SIP can also invite participants to
  already existing sessions, such as multicast conferences.  Media can
  be added to (and removed from) an existing session.  SIP
  transparently supports name mapping and redirection services, which
  supports personal mobility [27] - users can maintain a single
  externally visible identifier regardless of their network location.

  SIP supports five facets of establishing and terminating multimedia
  communications:

     User location: determination of the end system to be used for
          communication;

     User availability: determination of the willingness of the called
          party to engage in communications;

     User capabilities: determination of the media and media parameters
          to be used;

     Session setup: "ringing", establishment of session parameters at
          both called and calling party;

     Session management: including transfer and termination of
          sessions, modifying session parameters, and invoking
          services.

  SIP is not a vertically integrated communications system.  SIP is
  rather a component that can be used with other IETF protocols to
  build a complete multimedia architecture.  Typically, these
  architectures will include protocols such as the Real-time Transport
  Protocol (RTP) (RFC 1889 [28]) for transporting real-time data and
  providing QoS feedback, the Real-Time streaming protocol (RTSP) (RFC
  2326 [29]) for controlling delivery of streaming media, the Media



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                     [Page 9]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Gateway Control Protocol (MEGACO) (RFC 3015 [30]) for controlling
  gateways to the Public Switched Telephone Network (PSTN), and the
  Session Description Protocol (SDP) (RFC 2327 [1]) for describing
  multimedia sessions.  Therefore, SIP should be used in conjunction
  with other protocols in order to provide complete services to the
  users.  However, the basic functionality and operation of SIP does
  not depend on any of these protocols.

  SIP does not provide services.  Rather, SIP provides primitives that
  can be used to implement different services.  For example, SIP can
  locate a user and deliver an opaque object to his current location.
  If this primitive is used to deliver a session description written in
  SDP, for instance, the endpoints can agree on the parameters of a
  session.  If the same primitive is used to deliver a photo of the
  caller as well as the session description, a "caller ID" service can
  be easily implemented.  As this example shows, a single primitive is
  typically used to provide several different services.

  SIP does not offer conference control services such as floor control
  or voting and does not prescribe how a conference is to be managed.
  SIP can be used to initiate a session that uses some other conference
  control protocol.  Since SIP messages and the sessions they establish
  can pass through entirely different networks, SIP cannot, and does
  not, provide any kind of network resource reservation capabilities.

  The nature of the services provided make security particularly
  important.  To that end, SIP provides a suite of security services,
  which include denial-of-service prevention, authentication (both user
  to user and proxy to user), integrity protection, and encryption and
  privacy services.

  SIP works with both IPv4 and IPv6.

3 Terminology

  In this document, the key words "MUST", "MUST NOT", "REQUIRED",
  "SHALL", "SHALL NOT", "SHOULD", "SHOULD NOT", "RECOMMENDED", "NOT
  RECOMMENDED", "MAY", and "OPTIONAL" are to be interpreted as
  described in BCP 14, RFC 2119 [2] and indicate requirement levels for
  compliant SIP implementations.

4 Overview of Operation

  This section introduces the basic operations of SIP using simple
  examples.  This section is tutorial in nature and does not contain
  any normative statements.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 10]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The first example shows the basic functions of SIP: location of an
  end point, signal of a desire to communicate, negotiation of session
  parameters to establish the session, and teardown of the session once
  established.

  Figure 1 shows a typical example of a SIP message exchange between
  two users, Alice and Bob.  (Each message is labeled with the letter
  "F" and a number for reference by the text.)  In this example, Alice
  uses a SIP application on her PC (referred to as a softphone) to call
  Bob on his SIP phone over the Internet.  Also shown are two SIP proxy
  servers that act on behalf of Alice and Bob to facilitate the session
  establishment.  This typical arrangement is often referred to as the
  "SIP trapezoid" as shown by the geometric shape of the dotted lines
  in Figure 1.

  Alice "calls" Bob using his SIP identity, a type of Uniform Resource
  Identifier (URI) called a SIP URI. SIP URIs are defined in Section
  19.1.  It has a similar form to an email address, typically
  containing a username and a host name.  In this case, it is
  sip:[email protected], where biloxi.com is the domain of Bob's SIP
  service provider.  Alice has a SIP URI of sip:[email protected].
  Alice might have typed in Bob's URI or perhaps clicked on a hyperlink
  or an entry in an address book.  SIP also provides a secure URI,
  called a SIPS URI.  An example would be sips:[email protected].  A call
  made to a SIPS URI guarantees that secure, encrypted transport
  (namely TLS) is used to carry all SIP messages from the caller to the
  domain of the callee.  From there, the request is sent securely to
  the callee, but with security mechanisms that depend on the policy of
  the domain of the callee.

  SIP is based on an HTTP-like request/response transaction model.
  Each transaction consists of a request that invokes a particular
  method, or function, on the server and at least one response.  In
  this example, the transaction begins with Alice's softphone sending
  an INVITE request addressed to Bob's SIP URI.  INVITE is an example
  of a SIP method that specifies the action that the requestor (Alice)
  wants the server (Bob) to take.  The INVITE request contains a number
  of header fields.  Header fields are named attributes that provide
  additional information about a message.  The ones present in an
  INVITE include a unique identifier for the call, the destination
  address, Alice's address, and information about the type of session
  that Alice wishes to establish with Bob.  The INVITE (message F1 in
  Figure 1) might look like this:








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 11]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


                    atlanta.com  . . . biloxi.com
                .      proxy              proxy     .
              .                                       .
      Alice's  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  Bob's
     softphone                                        SIP Phone
        |                |                |                |
        |    INVITE F1   |                |                |
        |--------------->|    INVITE F2   |                |
        |  100 Trying F3 |--------------->|    INVITE F4   |
        |<---------------|  100 Trying F5 |--------------->|
        |                |<-------------- | 180 Ringing F6 |
        |                | 180 Ringing F7 |<---------------|
        | 180 Ringing F8 |<---------------|     200 OK F9  |
        |<---------------|    200 OK F10  |<---------------|
        |    200 OK F11  |<---------------|                |
        |<---------------|                |                |
        |                       ACK F12                    |
        |------------------------------------------------->|
        |                   Media Session                  |
        |<================================================>|
        |                       BYE F13                    |
        |<-------------------------------------------------|
        |                     200 OK F14                   |
        |------------------------------------------------->|
        |                                                  |

        Figure 1: SIP session setup example with SIP trapezoid

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK776asdhds
     Max-Forwards: 70
     To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
     From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: [email protected]
     CSeq: 314159 INVITE
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Content-Type: application/sdp
     Content-Length: 142

     (Alice's SDP not shown)

  The first line of the text-encoded message contains the method name
  (INVITE).  The lines that follow are a list of header fields.  This
  example contains a minimum required set.  The header fields are
  briefly described below:






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 12]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Via contains the address (pc33.atlanta.com) at which Alice is
  expecting to receive responses to this request.  It also contains a
  branch parameter that identifies this transaction.

  To contains a display name (Bob) and a SIP or SIPS URI
  (sip:[email protected]) towards which the request was originally
  directed.  Display names are described in RFC 2822 [3].

  From also contains a display name (Alice) and a SIP or SIPS URI
  (sip:[email protected]) that indicate the originator of the request.
  This header field also has a tag parameter containing a random string
  (1928301774) that was added to the URI by the softphone.  It is used
  for identification purposes.

  Call-ID contains a globally unique identifier for this call,
  generated by the combination of a random string and the softphone's
  host name or IP address.  The combination of the To tag, From tag,
  and Call-ID completely defines a peer-to-peer SIP relationship
  between Alice and Bob and is referred to as a dialog.

  CSeq or Command Sequence contains an integer and a method name.  The
  CSeq number is incremented for each new request within a dialog and
  is a traditional sequence number.

  Contact contains a SIP or SIPS URI that represents a direct route to
  contact Alice, usually composed of a username at a fully qualified
  domain name (FQDN).  While an FQDN is preferred, many end systems do
  not have registered domain names, so IP addresses are permitted.
  While the Via header field tells other elements where to send the
  response, the Contact header field tells other elements where to send
  future requests.

  Max-Forwards serves to limit the number of hops a request can make on
  the way to its destination.  It consists of an integer that is
  decremented by one at each hop.

  Content-Type contains a description of the message body (not shown).

  Content-Length contains an octet (byte) count of the message body.

  The complete set of SIP header fields is defined in Section 20.

  The details of the session, such as the type of media, codec, or
  sampling rate, are not described using SIP.  Rather, the body of a
  SIP message contains a description of the session, encoded in some
  other protocol format.  One such format is the Session Description
  Protocol (SDP) (RFC 2327 [1]).  This SDP message (not shown in the




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 13]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  example) is carried by the SIP message in a way that is analogous to
  a document attachment being carried by an email message, or a web
  page being carried in an HTTP message.

  Since the softphone does not know the location of Bob or the SIP
  server in the biloxi.com domain, the softphone sends the INVITE to
  the SIP server that serves Alice's domain, atlanta.com.  The address
  of the atlanta.com SIP server could have been configured in Alice's
  softphone, or it could have been discovered by DHCP, for example.

  The atlanta.com SIP server is a type of SIP server known as a proxy
  server.  A proxy server receives SIP requests and forwards them on
  behalf of the requestor.  In this example, the proxy server receives
  the INVITE request and sends a 100 (Trying) response back to Alice's
  softphone.  The 100 (Trying) response indicates that the INVITE has
  been received and that the proxy is working on her behalf to route
  the INVITE to the destination.  Responses in SIP use a three-digit
  code followed by a descriptive phrase.  This response contains the
  same To, From, Call-ID, CSeq and branch parameter in the Via as the
  INVITE, which allows Alice's softphone to correlate this response to
  the sent INVITE.  The atlanta.com proxy server locates the proxy
  server at biloxi.com, possibly by performing a particular type of DNS
  (Domain Name Service) lookup to find the SIP server that serves the
  biloxi.com domain.  This is described in [4].  As a result, it
  obtains the IP address of the biloxi.com proxy server and forwards,
  or proxies, the INVITE request there.  Before forwarding the request,
  the atlanta.com proxy server adds an additional Via header field
  value that contains its own address (the INVITE already contains
  Alice's address in the first Via).  The biloxi.com proxy server
  receives the INVITE and responds with a 100 (Trying) response back to
  the atlanta.com proxy server to indicate that it has received the
  INVITE and is processing the request.  The proxy server consults a
  database, generically called a location service, that contains the
  current IP address of Bob.  (We shall see in the next section how
  this database can be populated.)  The biloxi.com proxy server adds
  another Via header field value with its own address to the INVITE and
  proxies it to Bob's SIP phone.

  Bob's SIP phone receives the INVITE and alerts Bob to the incoming
  call from Alice so that Bob can decide whether to answer the call,
  that is, Bob's phone rings.  Bob's SIP phone indicates this in a 180
  (Ringing) response, which is routed back through the two proxies in
  the reverse direction.  Each proxy uses the Via header field to
  determine where to send the response and removes its own address from
  the top.  As a result, although DNS and location service lookups were
  required to route the initial INVITE, the 180 (Ringing) response can
  be returned to the caller without lookups or without state being




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 14]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  maintained in the proxies.  This also has the desirable property that
  each proxy that sees the INVITE will also see all responses to the
  INVITE.

  When Alice's softphone receives the 180 (Ringing) response, it passes
  this information to Alice, perhaps using an audio ringback tone or by
  displaying a message on Alice's screen.

  In this example, Bob decides to answer the call.  When he picks up
  the handset, his SIP phone sends a 200 (OK) response to indicate that
  the call has been answered.  The 200 (OK) contains a message body
  with the SDP media description of the type of session that Bob is
  willing to establish with Alice.  As a result, there is a two-phase
  exchange of SDP messages: Alice sent one to Bob, and Bob sent one
  back to Alice.  This two-phase exchange provides basic negotiation
  capabilities and is based on a simple offer/answer model of SDP
  exchange.  If Bob did not wish to answer the call or was busy on
  another call, an error response would have been sent instead of the
  200 (OK), which would have resulted in no media session being
  established.  The complete list of SIP response codes is in Section
  21.  The 200 (OK) (message F9 in Figure 1) might look like this as
  Bob sends it out:

     SIP/2.0 200 OK
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP server10.biloxi.com
        ;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8;received=192.0.2.3
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com
        ;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1;received=192.0.2.2
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com
        ;branch=z9hG4bK776asdhds ;received=192.0.2.1
     To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
     From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: [email protected]
     CSeq: 314159 INVITE
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Content-Type: application/sdp
     Content-Length: 131

     (Bob's SDP not shown)

  The first line of the response contains the response code (200) and
  the reason phrase (OK).  The remaining lines contain header fields.
  The Via, To, From, Call-ID, and CSeq header fields are copied from
  the INVITE request.  (There are three Via header field values - one
  added by Alice's SIP phone, one added by the atlanta.com proxy, and
  one added by the biloxi.com proxy.)  Bob's SIP phone has added a tag
  parameter to the To header field.  This tag will be incorporated by
  both endpoints into the dialog and will be included in all future



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 15]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  requests and responses in this call.  The Contact header field
  contains a URI at which Bob can be directly reached at his SIP phone.
  The Content-Type and Content-Length refer to the message body (not
  shown) that contains Bob's SDP media information.

  In addition to DNS and location service lookups shown in this
  example, proxy servers can make flexible "routing decisions" to
  decide where to send a request.  For example, if Bob's SIP phone
  returned a 486 (Busy Here) response, the biloxi.com proxy server
  could proxy the INVITE to Bob's voicemail server.  A proxy server can
  also send an INVITE to a number of locations at the same time.  This
  type of parallel search is known as forking.

  In this case, the 200 (OK) is routed back through the two proxies and
  is received by Alice's softphone, which then stops the ringback tone
  and indicates that the call has been answered.  Finally, Alice's
  softphone sends an acknowledgement message, ACK, to Bob's SIP phone
  to confirm the reception of the final response (200 (OK)).  In this
  example, the ACK is sent directly from Alice's softphone to Bob's SIP
  phone, bypassing the two proxies.  This occurs because the endpoints
  have learned each other's address from the Contact header fields
  through the INVITE/200 (OK) exchange, which was not known when the
  initial INVITE was sent.  The lookups performed by the two proxies
  are no longer needed, so the proxies drop out of the call flow.  This
  completes the INVITE/200/ACK three-way handshake used to establish
  SIP sessions.  Full details on session setup are in Section 13.

  Alice and Bob's media session has now begun, and they send media
  packets using the format to which they agreed in the exchange of SDP.
  In general, the end-to-end media packets take a different path from
  the SIP signaling messages.

  During the session, either Alice or Bob may decide to change the
  characteristics of the media session.  This is accomplished by
  sending a re-INVITE containing a new media description.  This re-
  INVITE references the existing dialog so that the other party knows
  that it is to modify an existing session instead of establishing a
  new session.  The other party sends a 200 (OK) to accept the change.
  The requestor responds to the 200 (OK) with an ACK.  If the other
  party does not accept the change, he sends an error response such as
  488 (Not Acceptable Here), which also receives an ACK.  However, the
  failure of the re-INVITE does not cause the existing call to fail -
  the session continues using the previously negotiated
  characteristics.  Full details on session modification are in Section
  14.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 16]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  At the end of the call, Bob disconnects (hangs up) first and
  generates a BYE message.  This BYE is routed directly to Alice's
  softphone, again bypassing the proxies.  Alice confirms receipt of
  the BYE with a 200 (OK) response, which terminates the session and
  the BYE transaction.  No ACK is sent - an ACK is only sent in
  response to a response to an INVITE request.  The reasons for this
  special handling for INVITE will be discussed later, but relate to
  the reliability mechanisms in SIP, the length of time it can take for
  a ringing phone to be answered, and forking.  For this reason,
  request handling in SIP is often classified as either INVITE or non-
  INVITE, referring to all other methods besides INVITE.  Full details
  on session termination are in Section 15.

  Section 24.2 describes the messages shown in Figure 1 in full.

  In some cases, it may be useful for proxies in the SIP signaling path
  to see all the messaging between the endpoints for the duration of
  the session.  For example, if the biloxi.com proxy server wished to
  remain in the SIP messaging path beyond the initial INVITE, it would
  add to the INVITE a required routing header field known as Record-
  Route that contained a URI resolving to the hostname or IP address of
  the proxy.  This information would be received by both Bob's SIP
  phone and (due to the Record-Route header field being passed back in
  the 200 (OK)) Alice's softphone and stored for the duration of the
  dialog.  The biloxi.com proxy server would then receive and proxy the
  ACK, BYE, and 200 (OK) to the BYE.  Each proxy can independently
  decide to receive subsequent messages, and those messages will pass
  through all proxies that elect to receive it.  This capability is
  frequently used for proxies that are providing mid-call features.

  Registration is another common operation in SIP.  Registration is one
  way that the biloxi.com server can learn the current location of Bob.
  Upon initialization, and at periodic intervals, Bob's SIP phone sends
  REGISTER messages to a server in the biloxi.com domain known as a SIP
  registrar.  The REGISTER messages associate Bob's SIP or SIPS URI
  (sip:[email protected]) with the machine into which he is currently
  logged (conveyed as a SIP or SIPS URI in the Contact header field).
  The registrar writes this association, also called a binding, to a
  database, called the location service, where it can be used by the
  proxy in the biloxi.com domain.  Often, a registrar server for a
  domain is co-located with the proxy for that domain.  It is an
  important concept that the distinction between types of SIP servers
  is logical, not physical.

  Bob is not limited to registering from a single device.  For example,
  both his SIP phone at home and the one in the office could send
  registrations.  This information is stored together in the location




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 17]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  service and allows a proxy to perform various types of searches to
  locate Bob.  Similarly, more than one user can be registered on a
  single device at the same time.

  The location service is just an abstract concept.  It generally
  contains information that allows a proxy to input a URI and receive a
  set of zero or more URIs that tell the proxy where to send the
  request.  Registrations are one way to create this information, but
  not the only way.  Arbitrary mapping functions can be configured at
  the discretion of the administrator.

  Finally, it is important to note that in SIP, registration is used
  for routing incoming SIP requests and has no role in authorizing
  outgoing requests.  Authorization and authentication are handled in
  SIP either on a request-by-request basis with a challenge/response
  mechanism, or by using a lower layer scheme as discussed in Section
  26.

  The complete set of SIP message details for this registration example
  is in Section 24.1.

  Additional operations in SIP, such as querying for the capabilities
  of a SIP server or client using OPTIONS, or canceling a pending
  request using CANCEL, will be introduced in later sections.

5 Structure of the Protocol

  SIP is structured as a layered protocol, which means that its
  behavior is described in terms of a set of fairly independent
  processing stages with only a loose coupling between each stage.  The
  protocol behavior is described as layers for the purpose of
  presentation, allowing the description of functions common across
  elements in a single section.  It does not dictate an implementation
  in any way.  When we say that an element "contains" a layer, we mean
  it is compliant to the set of rules defined by that layer.

  Not every element specified by the protocol contains every layer.
  Furthermore, the elements specified by SIP are logical elements, not
  physical ones.  A physical realization can choose to act as different
  logical elements, perhaps even on a transaction-by-transaction basis.

  The lowest layer of SIP is its syntax and encoding.  Its encoding is
  specified using an augmented Backus-Naur Form grammar (BNF).  The
  complete BNF is specified in Section 25; an overview of a SIP
  message's structure can be found in Section 7.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 18]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The second layer is the transport layer.  It defines how a client
  sends requests and receives responses and how a server receives
  requests and sends responses over the network.  All SIP elements
  contain a transport layer.  The transport layer is described in
  Section 18.

  The third layer is the transaction layer.  Transactions are a
  fundamental component of SIP.  A transaction is a request sent by a
  client transaction (using the transport layer) to a server
  transaction, along with all responses to that request sent from the
  server transaction back to the client.  The transaction layer handles
  application-layer retransmissions, matching of responses to requests,
  and application-layer timeouts.  Any task that a user agent client
  (UAC) accomplishes takes place using a series of transactions.
  Discussion of transactions can be found in Section 17.  User agents
  contain a transaction layer, as do stateful proxies.  Stateless
  proxies do not contain a transaction layer.  The transaction layer
  has a client component (referred to as a client transaction) and a
  server component (referred to as a server transaction), each of which
  are represented by a finite state machine that is constructed to
  process a particular request.

  The layer above the transaction layer is called the transaction user
  (TU).  Each of the SIP entities, except the stateless proxy, is a
  transaction user.  When a TU wishes to send a request, it creates a
  client transaction instance and passes it the request along with the
  destination IP address, port, and transport to which to send the
  request.  A TU that creates a client transaction can also cancel it.
  When a client cancels a transaction, it requests that the server stop
  further processing, revert to the state that existed before the
  transaction was initiated, and generate a specific error response to
  that transaction.  This is done with a CANCEL request, which
  constitutes its own transaction, but references the transaction to be
  cancelled (Section 9).

  The SIP elements, that is, user agent clients and servers, stateless
  and stateful proxies and registrars, contain a core that
  distinguishes them from each other.  Cores, except for the stateless
  proxy, are transaction users.  While the behavior of the UAC and UAS
  cores depends on the method, there are some common rules for all
  methods (Section 8).  For a UAC, these rules govern the construction
  of a request; for a UAS, they govern the processing of a request and
  generating a response.  Since registrations play an important role in
  SIP, a UAS that handles a REGISTER is given the special name
  registrar.  Section 10 describes UAC and UAS core behavior for the
  REGISTER method.  Section 11 describes UAC and UAS core behavior for
  the OPTIONS method, used for determining the capabilities of a UA.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 19]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Certain other requests are sent within a dialog.  A dialog is a
  peer-to-peer SIP relationship between two user agents that persists
  for some time.  The dialog facilitates sequencing of messages and
  proper routing of requests between the user agents.  The INVITE
  method is the only way defined in this specification to establish a
  dialog.  When a UAC sends a request that is within the context of a
  dialog, it follows the common UAC rules as discussed in Section 8 but
  also the rules for mid-dialog requests.  Section 12 discusses dialogs
  and presents the procedures for their construction and maintenance,
  in addition to construction of requests within a dialog.

  The most important method in SIP is the INVITE method, which is used
  to establish a session between participants.  A session is a
  collection of participants, and streams of media between them, for
  the purposes of communication.  Section 13 discusses how sessions are
  initiated, resulting in one or more SIP dialogs.  Section 14
  discusses how characteristics of that session are modified through
  the use of an INVITE request within a dialog.  Finally, section 15
  discusses how a session is terminated.

  The procedures of Sections 8, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, and 15 deal
  entirely with the UA core (Section 9 describes cancellation, which
  applies to both UA core and proxy core).  Section 16 discusses the
  proxy element, which facilitates routing of messages between user
  agents.

6 Definitions

  The following terms have special significance for SIP.

     Address-of-Record: An address-of-record (AOR) is a SIP or SIPS URI
        that points to a domain with a location service that can map
        the URI to another URI where the user might be available.
        Typically, the location service is populated through
        registrations.  An AOR is frequently thought of as the "public
        address" of the user.

     Back-to-Back User Agent: A back-to-back user agent (B2BUA) is a
        logical entity that receives a request and processes it as a
        user agent server (UAS).  In order to determine how the request
        should be answered, it acts as a user agent client (UAC) and
        generates requests.  Unlike a proxy server, it maintains dialog
        state and must participate in all requests sent on the dialogs
        it has established.  Since it is a concatenation of a UAC and
        UAS, no explicit definitions are needed for its behavior.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 20]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Call: A call is an informal term that refers to some communication
        between peers, generally set up for the purposes of a
        multimedia conversation.

     Call Leg: Another name for a dialog [31]; no longer used in this
        specification.

     Call Stateful: A proxy is call stateful if it retains state for a
        dialog from the initiating INVITE to the terminating BYE
        request.  A call stateful proxy is always transaction stateful,
        but the converse is not necessarily true.

     Client: A client is any network element that sends SIP requests
        and receives SIP responses.  Clients may or may not interact
        directly with a human user.  User agent clients and proxies are
        clients.

     Conference: A multimedia session (see below) that contains
        multiple participants.

     Core: Core designates the functions specific to a particular type
        of SIP entity, i.e., specific to either a stateful or stateless
        proxy, a user agent or registrar.  All cores, except those for
        the stateless proxy, are transaction users.

     Dialog: A dialog is a peer-to-peer SIP relationship between two
        UAs that persists for some time.  A dialog is established by
        SIP messages, such as a 2xx response to an INVITE request.  A
        dialog is identified by a call identifier, local tag, and a
        remote tag.  A dialog was formerly known as a call leg in RFC
        2543.

     Downstream: A direction of message forwarding within a transaction
        that refers to the direction that requests flow from the user
        agent client to user agent server.

     Final Response: A response that terminates a SIP transaction, as
        opposed to a provisional response that does not.  All 2xx, 3xx,
        4xx, 5xx and 6xx responses are final.

     Header: A header is a component of a SIP message that conveys
        information about the message.  It is structured as a sequence
        of header fields.

     Header Field: A header field is a component of the SIP message
        header.  A header field can appear as one or more header field
        rows. Header field rows consist of a header field name and zero
        or more header field values. Multiple header field values on a



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 21]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        given header field row are separated by commas. Some header
        fields can only have a single header field value, and as a
        result, always appear as a single header field row.

     Header Field Value: A header field value is a single value; a
        header field consists of zero or more header field values.

     Home Domain: The domain providing service to a SIP user.
        Typically, this is the domain present in the URI in the
        address-of-record of a registration.

     Informational Response: Same as a provisional response.

     Initiator, Calling Party, Caller: The party initiating a session
        (and dialog) with an INVITE request.  A caller retains this
        role from the time it sends the initial INVITE that established
        a dialog until the termination of that dialog.

     Invitation: An INVITE request.

     Invitee, Invited User, Called Party, Callee: The party that
        receives an INVITE request for the purpose of establishing a
        new session.  A callee retains this role from the time it
        receives the INVITE until the termination of the dialog
        established by that INVITE.

     Location Service: A location service is used by a SIP redirect or
        proxy server to obtain information about a callee's possible
        location(s).  It contains a list of bindings of address-of-
        record keys to zero or more contact addresses.  The bindings
        can be created and removed in many ways; this specification
        defines a REGISTER method that updates the bindings.

     Loop: A request that arrives at a proxy, is forwarded, and later
        arrives back at the same proxy.  When it arrives the second
        time, its Request-URI is identical to the first time, and other
        header fields that affect proxy operation are unchanged, so
        that the proxy would make the same processing decision on the
        request it made the first time.  Looped requests are errors,
        and the procedures for detecting them and handling them are
        described by the protocol.

     Loose Routing: A proxy is said to be loose routing if it follows
        the procedures defined in this specification for processing of
        the Route header field.  These procedures separate the
        destination of the request (present in the Request-URI) from





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 22]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        the set of proxies that need to be visited along the way
        (present in the Route header field).  A proxy compliant to
        these mechanisms is also known as a loose router.

     Message: Data sent between SIP elements as part of the protocol.
        SIP messages are either requests or responses.

     Method: The method is the primary function that a request is meant
        to invoke on a server.  The method is carried in the request
        message itself.  Example methods are INVITE and BYE.

     Outbound Proxy: A proxy that receives requests from a client, even
        though it may not be the server resolved by the Request-URI.
        Typically, a UA is manually configured with an outbound proxy,
        or can learn about one through auto-configuration protocols.

     Parallel Search: In a parallel search, a proxy issues several
        requests to possible user locations upon receiving an incoming
        request.  Rather than issuing one request and then waiting for
        the final response before issuing the next request as in a
        sequential search, a parallel search issues requests without
        waiting for the result of previous requests.

     Provisional Response: A response used by the server to indicate
        progress, but that does not terminate a SIP transaction.  1xx
        responses are provisional, other responses are considered
        final.

     Proxy, Proxy Server: An intermediary entity that acts as both a
        server and a client for the purpose of making requests on
        behalf of other clients.  A proxy server primarily plays the
        role of routing, which means its job is to ensure that a
        request is sent to another entity "closer" to the targeted
        user.  Proxies are also useful for enforcing policy (for
        example, making sure a user is allowed to make a call).  A
        proxy interprets, and, if necessary, rewrites specific parts of
        a request message before forwarding it.

     Recursion: A client recurses on a 3xx response when it generates a
        new request to one or more of the URIs in the Contact header
        field in the response.

     Redirect Server: A redirect server is a user agent server that
        generates 3xx responses to requests it receives, directing the
        client to contact an alternate set of URIs.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 23]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Registrar: A registrar is a server that accepts REGISTER requests
        and places the information it receives in those requests into
        the location service for the domain it handles.

     Regular Transaction: A regular transaction is any transaction with
        a method other than INVITE, ACK, or CANCEL.

     Request: A SIP message sent from a client to a server, for the
        purpose of invoking a particular operation.

     Response: A SIP message sent from a server to a client, for
        indicating the status of a request sent from the client to the
        server.

     Ringback: Ringback is the signaling tone produced by the calling
        party's application indicating that a called party is being
        alerted (ringing).

     Route Set: A route set is a collection of ordered SIP or SIPS URI
        which represent a list of proxies that must be traversed when
        sending a particular request.  A route set can be learned,
        through headers like Record-Route, or it can be configured.

     Server: A server is a network element that receives requests in
        order to service them and sends back responses to those
        requests.  Examples of servers are proxies, user agent servers,
        redirect servers, and registrars.

     Sequential Search: In a sequential search, a proxy server attempts
        each contact address in sequence, proceeding to the next one
        only after the previous has generated a final response.  A 2xx
        or 6xx class final response always terminates a sequential
        search.

     Session: From the SDP specification: "A multimedia session is a
        set of multimedia senders and receivers and the data streams
        flowing from senders to receivers.  A multimedia conference is
        an example of a multimedia session." (RFC 2327 [1]) (A session
        as defined for SDP can comprise one or more RTP sessions.)  As
        defined, a callee can be invited several times, by different
        calls, to the same session.  If SDP is used, a session is
        defined by the concatenation of the SDP user name, session id,
        network type, address type, and address elements in the origin
        field.

     SIP Transaction: A SIP transaction occurs between a client and a
        server and comprises all messages from the first request sent
        from the client to the server up to a final (non-1xx) response



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 24]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        sent from the server to the client.  If the request is INVITE
        and the final response is a non-2xx, the transaction also
        includes an ACK to the response.  The ACK for a 2xx response to
        an INVITE request is a separate transaction.

     Spiral: A spiral is a SIP request that is routed to a proxy,
        forwarded onwards, and arrives once again at that proxy, but
        this time differs in a way that will result in a different
        processing decision than the original request.  Typically, this
        means that the request's Request-URI differs from its previous
        arrival.  A spiral is not an error condition, unlike a loop.  A
        typical cause for this is call forwarding.  A user calls
        [email protected].  The example.com proxy forwards it to Joe's
        PC, which in turn, forwards it to [email protected].  This
        request is proxied back to the example.com proxy.  However,
        this is not a loop.  Since the request is targeted at a
        different user, it is considered a spiral, and is a valid
        condition.

     Stateful Proxy: A logical entity that maintains the client and
        server transaction state machines defined by this specification
        during the processing of a request, also known as a transaction
        stateful proxy.  The behavior of a stateful proxy is further
        defined in Section 16.  A (transaction) stateful proxy is not
        the same as a call stateful proxy.

     Stateless Proxy: A logical entity that does not maintain the
        client or server transaction state machines defined in this
        specification when it processes requests.  A stateless proxy
        forwards every request it receives downstream and every
        response it receives upstream.

     Strict Routing: A proxy is said to be strict routing if it follows
        the Route processing rules of RFC 2543 and many prior work in
        progress versions of this RFC.  That rule caused proxies to
        destroy the contents of the Request-URI when a Route header
        field was present.  Strict routing behavior is not used in this
        specification, in favor of a loose routing behavior.  Proxies
        that perform strict routing are also known as strict routers.

     Target Refresh Request: A target refresh request sent within a
        dialog is defined as a request that can modify the remote
        target of the dialog.

     Transaction User (TU): The layer of protocol processing that
        resides above the transaction layer.  Transaction users include
        the UAC core, UAS core, and proxy core.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 25]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Upstream: A direction of message forwarding within a transaction
        that refers to the direction that responses flow from the user
        agent server back to the user agent client.

     URL-encoded: A character string encoded according to RFC 2396,
        Section 2.4 [5].

     User Agent Client (UAC): A user agent client is a logical entity
        that creates a new request, and then uses the client
        transaction state machinery to send it.  The role of UAC lasts
        only for the duration of that transaction.  In other words, if
        a piece of software initiates a request, it acts as a UAC for
        the duration of that transaction.  If it receives a request
        later, it assumes the role of a user agent server for the
        processing of that transaction.

     UAC Core: The set of processing functions required of a UAC that
        reside above the transaction and transport layers.

     User Agent Server (UAS): A user agent server is a logical entity
        that generates a response to a SIP request.  The response
        accepts, rejects, or redirects the request.  This role lasts
        only for the duration of that transaction.  In other words, if
        a piece of software responds to a request, it acts as a UAS for
        the duration of that transaction.  If it generates a request
        later, it assumes the role of a user agent client for the
        processing of that transaction.

     UAS Core: The set of processing functions required at a UAS that
        resides above the transaction and transport layers.

     User Agent (UA): A logical entity that can act as both a user
        agent client and user agent server.

  The role of UAC and UAS, as well as proxy and redirect servers, are
  defined on a transaction-by-transaction basis.  For example, the user
  agent initiating a call acts as a UAC when sending the initial INVITE
  request and as a UAS when receiving a BYE request from the callee.
  Similarly, the same software can act as a proxy server for one
  request and as a redirect server for the next request.

  Proxy, location, and registrar servers defined above are logical
  entities; implementations MAY combine them into a single application.

7 SIP Messages

  SIP is a text-based protocol and uses the UTF-8 charset (RFC 2279
  [7]).



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 26]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  A SIP message is either a request from a client to a server, or a
  response from a server to a client.

  Both Request (section 7.1) and Response (section 7.2) messages use
  the basic format of RFC 2822 [3], even though the syntax differs in
  character set and syntax specifics.  (SIP allows header fields that
  would not be valid RFC 2822 header fields, for example.)  Both types
  of messages consist of a start-line, one or more header fields, an
  empty line indicating the end of the header fields, and an optional
  message-body.

        generic-message  =  start-line
                            *message-header
                            CRLF
                            [ message-body ]
        start-line       =  Request-Line / Status-Line

  The start-line, each message-header line, and the empty line MUST be
  terminated by a carriage-return line-feed sequence (CRLF).  Note that
  the empty line MUST be present even if the message-body is not.

  Except for the above difference in character sets, much of SIP's
  message and header field syntax is identical to HTTP/1.1.  Rather
  than repeating the syntax and semantics here, we use [HX.Y] to refer
  to Section X.Y of the current HTTP/1.1 specification (RFC 2616 [8]).

  However, SIP is not an extension of HTTP.

7.1 Requests

  SIP requests are distinguished by having a Request-Line for a start-
  line.  A Request-Line contains a method name, a Request-URI, and the
  protocol version separated by a single space (SP) character.

  The Request-Line ends with CRLF.  No CR or LF are allowed except in
  the end-of-line CRLF sequence.  No linear whitespace (LWS) is allowed
  in any of the elements.

        Request-Line  =  Method SP Request-URI SP SIP-Version CRLF

     Method: This specification defines six methods: REGISTER for
          registering contact information, INVITE, ACK, and CANCEL for
          setting up sessions, BYE for terminating sessions, and
          OPTIONS for querying servers about their capabilities.  SIP
          extensions, documented in standards track RFCs, may define
          additional methods.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 27]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Request-URI: The Request-URI is a SIP or SIPS URI as described in
          Section 19.1 or a general URI (RFC 2396 [5]).  It indicates
          the user or service to which this request is being addressed.
          The Request-URI MUST NOT contain unescaped spaces or control
          characters and MUST NOT be enclosed in "<>".

          SIP elements MAY support Request-URIs with schemes other than
          "sip" and "sips", for example the "tel" URI scheme of RFC
          2806 [9].  SIP elements MAY translate non-SIP URIs using any
          mechanism at their disposal, resulting in SIP URI, SIPS URI,
          or some other scheme.

     SIP-Version: Both request and response messages include the
          version of SIP in use, and follow [H3.1] (with HTTP replaced
          by SIP, and HTTP/1.1 replaced by SIP/2.0) regarding version
          ordering, compliance requirements, and upgrading of version
          numbers.  To be compliant with this specification,
          applications sending SIP messages MUST include a SIP-Version
          of "SIP/2.0".  The SIP-Version string is case-insensitive,
          but implementations MUST send upper-case.

          Unlike HTTP/1.1, SIP treats the version number as a literal
          string.  In practice, this should make no difference.

7.2 Responses

  SIP responses are distinguished from requests by having a Status-Line
  as their start-line.  A Status-Line consists of the protocol version
  followed by a numeric Status-Code and its associated textual phrase,
  with each element separated by a single SP character.

  No CR or LF is allowed except in the final CRLF sequence.

     Status-Line  =  SIP-Version SP Status-Code SP Reason-Phrase CRLF

  The Status-Code is a 3-digit integer result code that indicates the
  outcome of an attempt to understand and satisfy a request.  The
  Reason-Phrase is intended to give a short textual description of the
  Status-Code.  The Status-Code is intended for use by automata,
  whereas the Reason-Phrase is intended for the human user.  A client
  is not required to examine or display the Reason-Phrase.

  While this specification suggests specific wording for the reason
  phrase, implementations MAY choose other text, for example, in the
  language indicated in the Accept-Language header field of the
  request.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 28]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The first digit of the Status-Code defines the class of response.
  The last two digits do not have any categorization role.  For this
  reason, any response with a status code between 100 and 199 is
  referred to as a "1xx response", any response with a status code
  between 200 and 299 as a "2xx response", and so on.  SIP/2.0 allows
  six values for the first digit:

     1xx: Provisional -- request received, continuing to process the
          request;

     2xx: Success -- the action was successfully received, understood,
          and accepted;

     3xx: Redirection -- further action needs to be taken in order to
          complete the request;

     4xx: Client Error -- the request contains bad syntax or cannot be
          fulfilled at this server;

     5xx: Server Error -- the server failed to fulfill an apparently
          valid request;

     6xx: Global Failure -- the request cannot be fulfilled at any
          server.

  Section 21 defines these classes and describes the individual codes.

7.3 Header Fields

  SIP header fields are similar to HTTP header fields in both syntax
  and semantics.  In particular, SIP header fields follow the [H4.2]
  definitions of syntax for the message-header and the rules for
  extending header fields over multiple lines.  However, the latter is
  specified in HTTP with implicit whitespace and folding.  This
  specification conforms to RFC 2234 [10] and uses only explicit
  whitespace and folding as an integral part of the grammar.

  [H4.2] also specifies that multiple header fields of the same field
  name whose value is a comma-separated list can be combined into one
  header field.  That applies to SIP as well, but the specific rule is
  different because of the different grammars.  Specifically, any SIP
  header whose grammar is of the form

     header  =  "header-name" HCOLON header-value *(COMMA header-value)

  allows for combining header fields of the same name into a comma-
  separated list.  The Contact header field allows a comma-separated
  list unless the header field value is "*".



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 29]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


7.3.1 Header Field Format

  Header fields follow the same generic header format as that given in
  Section 2.2 of RFC 2822 [3].  Each header field consists of a field
  name followed by a colon (":") and the field value.

     field-name: field-value

  The formal grammar for a message-header specified in Section 25
  allows for an arbitrary amount of whitespace on either side of the
  colon; however, implementations should avoid spaces between the field
  name and the colon and use a single space (SP) between the colon and
  the field-value.

     Subject:            lunch
     Subject      :      lunch
     Subject            :lunch
     Subject: lunch

  Thus, the above are all valid and equivalent, but the last is the
  preferred form.

  Header fields can be extended over multiple lines by preceding each
  extra line with at least one SP or horizontal tab (HT).  The line
  break and the whitespace at the beginning of the next line are
  treated as a single SP character.  Thus, the following are
  equivalent:

     Subject: I know you're there, pick up the phone and talk to me!
     Subject: I know you're there,
              pick up the phone
              and talk to me!

  The relative order of header fields with different field names is not
  significant.  However, it is RECOMMENDED that header fields which are
  needed for proxy processing (Via, Route, Record-Route, Proxy-Require,
  Max-Forwards, and Proxy-Authorization, for example) appear towards
  the top of the message to facilitate rapid parsing.  The relative
  order of header field rows with the same field name is important.
  Multiple header field rows with the same field-name MAY be present in
  a message if and only if the entire field-value for that header field
  is defined as a comma-separated list (that is, if follows the grammar
  defined in Section 7.3).  It MUST be possible to combine the multiple
  header field rows into one "field-name: field-value" pair, without
  changing the semantics of the message, by appending each subsequent
  field-value to the first, each separated by a comma.  The exceptions
  to this rule are the WWW-Authenticate, Authorization, Proxy-
  Authenticate, and Proxy-Authorization header fields.  Multiple header



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 30]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  field rows with these names MAY be present in a message, but since
  their grammar does not follow the general form listed in Section 7.3,
  they MUST NOT be combined into a single header field row.

  Implementations MUST be able to process multiple header field rows
  with the same name in any combination of the single-value-per-line or
  comma-separated value forms.

  The following groups of header field rows are valid and equivalent:

     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Subject: Lunch
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>

     Route: <sip:[email protected]>, <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Subject: Lunch

     Subject: Lunch
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>, <sip:[email protected]>,
            <sip:[email protected]>

  Each of the following blocks is valid but not equivalent to the
  others:

     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>

     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>

     Route: <sip:[email protected]>,<sip:[email protected]>,
            <sip:[email protected]>

  The format of a header field-value is defined per header-name.  It
  will always be either an opaque sequence of TEXT-UTF8 octets, or a
  combination of whitespace, tokens, separators, and quoted strings.
  Many existing header fields will adhere to the general form of a
  value followed by a semi-colon separated sequence of parameter-name,
  parameter-value pairs:

        field-name: field-value *(;parameter-name=parameter-value)






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 31]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Even though an arbitrary number of parameter pairs may be attached to
  a header field value, any given parameter-name MUST NOT appear more
  than once.

  When comparing header fields, field names are always case-
  insensitive.  Unless otherwise stated in the definition of a
  particular header field, field values, parameter names, and parameter
  values are case-insensitive.  Tokens are always case-insensitive.
  Unless specified otherwise, values expressed as quoted strings are
  case-sensitive.  For example,

     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>;expires=3600

  is equivalent to

     CONTACT: <sip:[email protected]>;ExPiReS=3600

  and

     Content-Disposition: session;handling=optional

  is equivalent to

     content-disposition: Session;HANDLING=OPTIONAL

  The following two header fields are not equivalent:

     Warning: 370 devnull "Choose a bigger pipe"
     Warning: 370 devnull "CHOOSE A BIGGER PIPE"

7.3.2 Header Field Classification

  Some header fields only make sense in requests or responses.  These
  are called request header fields and response header fields,
  respectively.  If a header field appears in a message not matching
  its category (such as a request header field in a response), it MUST
  be ignored.  Section 20 defines the classification of each header
  field.

7.3.3 Compact Form

  SIP provides a mechanism to represent common header field names in an
  abbreviated form.  This may be useful when messages would otherwise
  become too large to be carried on the transport available to it
  (exceeding the maximum transmission unit (MTU) when using UDP, for
  example).  These compact forms are defined in Section 20.  A compact
  form MAY be substituted for the longer form of a header field name at
  any time without changing the semantics of the message.  A header



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 32]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  field name MAY appear in both long and short forms within the same
  message.  Implementations MUST accept both the long and short forms
  of each header name.

7.4 Bodies

  Requests, including new requests defined in extensions to this
  specification, MAY contain message bodies unless otherwise noted.
  The interpretation of the body depends on the request method.

  For response messages, the request method and the response status
  code determine the type and interpretation of any message body.  All
  responses MAY include a body.

7.4.1 Message Body Type

  The Internet media type of the message body MUST be given by the
  Content-Type header field.  If the body has undergone any encoding
  such as compression, then this MUST be indicated by the Content-
  Encoding header field; otherwise, Content-Encoding MUST be omitted.
  If applicable, the character set of the message body is indicated as
  part of the Content-Type header-field value.

  The "multipart" MIME type defined in RFC 2046 [11] MAY be used within
  the body of the message.  Implementations that send requests
  containing multipart message bodies MUST send a session description
  as a non-multipart message body if the remote implementation requests
  this through an Accept header field that does not contain multipart.

  SIP messages MAY contain binary bodies or body parts. When no
  explicit charset parameter is provided by the sender, media subtypes
  of the "text" type are defined to have a default charset value of
  "UTF-8".

7.4.2 Message Body Length

  The body length in bytes is provided by the Content-Length header
  field.  Section 20.14 describes the necessary contents of this header
  field in detail.

  The "chunked" transfer encoding of HTTP/1.1 MUST NOT be used for SIP.
  (Note: The chunked encoding modifies the body of a message in order
  to transfer it as a series of chunks, each with its own size
  indicator.)







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 33]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


7.5 Framing SIP Messages

  Unlike HTTP, SIP implementations can use UDP or other unreliable
  datagram protocols.  Each such datagram carries one request or
  response.  See Section 18 on constraints on usage of unreliable
  transports.

  Implementations processing SIP messages over stream-oriented
  transports MUST ignore any CRLF appearing before the start-line
  [H4.1].

     The Content-Length header field value is used to locate the end of
     each SIP message in a stream.  It will always be present when SIP
     messages are sent over stream-oriented transports.

8 General User Agent Behavior

  A user agent represents an end system.  It contains a user agent
  client (UAC), which generates requests, and a user agent server
  (UAS), which responds to them.  A UAC is capable of generating a
  request based on some external stimulus (the user clicking a button,
  or a signal on a PSTN line) and processing a response.  A UAS is
  capable of receiving a request and generating a response based on
  user input, external stimulus, the result of a program execution, or
  some other mechanism.

  When a UAC sends a request, the request passes through some number of
  proxy servers, which forward the request towards the UAS. When the
  UAS generates a response, the response is forwarded towards the UAC.

  UAC and UAS procedures depend strongly on two factors.  First, based
  on whether the request or response is inside or outside of a dialog,
  and second, based on the method of a request.  Dialogs are discussed
  thoroughly in Section 12; they represent a peer-to-peer relationship
  between user agents and are established by specific SIP methods, such
  as INVITE.

  In this section, we discuss the method-independent rules for UAC and
  UAS behavior when processing requests that are outside of a dialog.
  This includes, of course, the requests which themselves establish a
  dialog.

  Security procedures for requests and responses outside of a dialog
  are described in Section 26.  Specifically, mechanisms exist for the
  UAS and UAC to mutually authenticate.  A limited set of privacy
  features are also supported through encryption of bodies using
  S/MIME.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 34]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.1 UAC Behavior

  This section covers UAC behavior outside of a dialog.

8.1.1 Generating the Request

  A valid SIP request formulated by a UAC MUST, at a minimum, contain
  the following header fields: To, From, CSeq, Call-ID, Max-Forwards,
  and Via; all of these header fields are mandatory in all SIP
  requests.  These six header fields are the fundamental building
  blocks of a SIP message, as they jointly provide for most of the
  critical message routing services including the addressing of
  messages, the routing of responses, limiting message propagation,
  ordering of messages, and the unique identification of transactions.
  These header fields are in addition to the mandatory request line,
  which contains the method, Request-URI, and SIP version.

  Examples of requests sent outside of a dialog include an INVITE to
  establish a session (Section 13) and an OPTIONS to query for
  capabilities (Section 11).

8.1.1.1 Request-URI

  The initial Request-URI of the message SHOULD be set to the value of
  the URI in the To field.  One notable exception is the REGISTER
  method; behavior for setting the Request-URI of REGISTER is given in
  Section 10.  It may also be undesirable for privacy reasons or
  convenience to set these fields to the same value (especially if the
  originating UA expects that the Request-URI will be changed during
  transit).

  In some special circumstances, the presence of a pre-existing route
  set can affect the Request-URI of the message.  A pre-existing route
  set is an ordered set of URIs that identify a chain of servers, to
  which a UAC will send outgoing requests that are outside of a dialog.
  Commonly, they are configured on the UA by a user or service provider
  manually, or through some other non-SIP mechanism.  When a provider
  wishes to configure a UA with an outbound proxy, it is RECOMMENDED
  that this be done by providing it with a pre-existing route set with
  a single URI, that of the outbound proxy.

  When a pre-existing route set is present, the procedures for
  populating the Request-URI and Route header field detailed in Section
  12.2.1.1 MUST be followed (even though there is no dialog), using the
  desired Request-URI as the remote target URI.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 35]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.1.1.2 To

  The To header field first and foremost specifies the desired
  "logical" recipient of the request, or the address-of-record of the
  user or resource that is the target of this request.  This may or may
  not be the ultimate recipient of the request.  The To header field
  MAY contain a SIP or SIPS URI, but it may also make use of other URI
  schemes (the tel URL (RFC 2806 [9]), for example) when appropriate.
  All SIP implementations MUST support the SIP URI scheme.  Any
  implementation that supports TLS MUST support the SIPS URI scheme.
  The To header field allows for a display name.

  A UAC may learn how to populate the To header field for a particular
  request in a number of ways.  Usually the user will suggest the To
  header field through a human interface, perhaps inputting the URI
  manually or selecting it from some sort of address book.  Frequently,
  the user will not enter a complete URI, but rather a string of digits
  or letters (for example, "bob").  It is at the discretion of the UA
  to choose how to interpret this input.  Using the string to form the
  user part of a SIP URI implies that the UA wishes the name to be
  resolved in the domain to the right-hand side (RHS) of the at-sign in
  the SIP URI (for instance, sip:[email protected]).  Using the string to
  form the user part of a SIPS URI implies that the UA wishes to
  communicate securely, and that the name is to be resolved in the
  domain to the RHS of the at-sign.  The RHS will frequently be the
  home domain of the requestor, which allows for the home domain to
  process the outgoing request.  This is useful for features like
  "speed dial" that require interpretation of the user part in the home
  domain.  The tel URL may be used when the UA does not wish to specify
  the domain that should interpret a telephone number that has been
  input by the user.  Rather, each domain through which the request
  passes would be given that opportunity.  As an example, a user in an
  airport might log in and send requests through an outbound proxy in
  the airport.  If they enter "411" (this is the phone number for local
  directory assistance in the United States), that needs to be
  interpreted and processed by the outbound proxy in the airport, not
  the user's home domain.  In this case, tel:411 would be the right
  choice.

  A request outside of a dialog MUST NOT contain a To tag; the tag in
  the To field of a request identifies the peer of the dialog.  Since
  no dialog is established, no tag is present.

  For further information on the To header field, see Section 20.39.
  The following is an example of a valid To header field:

     To: Carol <sip:[email protected]>




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 36]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.1.1.3 From

  The From header field indicates the logical identity of the initiator
  of the request, possibly the user's address-of-record.  Like the To
  header field, it contains a URI and optionally a display name.  It is
  used by SIP elements to determine which processing rules to apply to
  a request (for example, automatic call rejection).  As such, it is
  very important that the From URI not contain IP addresses or the FQDN
  of the host on which the UA is running, since these are not logical
  names.

  The From header field allows for a display name.  A UAC SHOULD use
  the display name "Anonymous", along with a syntactically correct, but
  otherwise meaningless URI (like sip:[email protected]), if the
  identity of the client is to remain hidden.

  Usually, the value that populates the From header field in requests
  generated by a particular UA is pre-provisioned by the user or by the
  administrators of the user's local domain.  If a particular UA is
  used by multiple users, it might have switchable profiles that
  include a URI corresponding to the identity of the profiled user.
  Recipients of requests can authenticate the originator of a request
  in order to ascertain that they are who their From header field
  claims they are (see Section 22 for more on authentication).

  The From field MUST contain a new "tag" parameter, chosen by the UAC.
  See Section 19.3 for details on choosing a tag.

  For further information on the From header field, see Section 20.20.
  Examples:

     From: "Bob" <sips:[email protected]> ;tag=a48s
     From: sip:[email protected];tag=887s
     From: Anonymous <sip:[email protected]>;tag=hyh8

8.1.1.4 Call-ID

  The Call-ID header field acts as a unique identifier to group
  together a series of messages.  It MUST be the same for all requests
  and responses sent by either UA in a dialog.  It SHOULD be the same
  in each registration from a UA.

  In a new request created by a UAC outside of any dialog, the Call-ID
  header field MUST be selected by the UAC as a globally unique
  identifier over space and time unless overridden by method-specific
  behavior.  All SIP UAs must have a means to guarantee that the Call-
  ID header fields they produce will not be inadvertently generated by
  any other UA.  Note that when requests are retried after certain



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 37]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  failure responses that solicit an amendment to a request (for
  example, a challenge for authentication), these retried requests are
  not considered new requests, and therefore do not need new Call-ID
  header fields; see Section 8.1.3.5.

  Use of cryptographically random identifiers (RFC 1750 [12]) in the
  generation of Call-IDs is RECOMMENDED.  Implementations MAY use the
  form "localid@host".  Call-IDs are case-sensitive and are simply
  compared byte-by-byte.

     Using cryptographically random identifiers provides some
     protection against session hijacking and reduces the likelihood of
     unintentional Call-ID collisions.

  No provisioning or human interface is required for the selection of
  the Call-ID header field value for a request.

  For further information on the Call-ID header field, see Section
  20.8.

  Example:

     Call-ID: [email protected]

8.1.1.5 CSeq

  The CSeq header field serves as a way to identify and order
  transactions.  It consists of a sequence number and a method.  The
  method MUST match that of the request.  For non-REGISTER requests
  outside of a dialog, the sequence number value is arbitrary.  The
  sequence number value MUST be expressible as a 32-bit unsigned
  integer and MUST be less than 2**31.  As long as it follows the above
  guidelines, a client may use any mechanism it would like to select
  CSeq header field values.

  Section 12.2.1.1 discusses construction of the CSeq for requests
  within a dialog.

  Example:

     CSeq: 4711 INVITE










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 38]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.1.1.6 Max-Forwards

  The Max-Forwards header field serves to limit the number of hops a
  request can transit on the way to its destination.  It consists of an
  integer that is decremented by one at each hop.  If the Max-Forwards
  value reaches 0 before the request reaches its destination, it will
  be rejected with a 483(Too Many Hops) error response.

  A UAC MUST insert a Max-Forwards header field into each request it
  originates with a value that SHOULD be 70.  This number was chosen to
  be sufficiently large to guarantee that a request would not be
  dropped in any SIP network when there were no loops, but not so large
  as to consume proxy resources when a loop does occur.  Lower values
  should be used with caution and only in networks where topologies are
  known by the UA.

8.1.1.7 Via

  The Via header field indicates the transport used for the transaction
  and identifies the location where the response is to be sent.  A Via
  header field value is added only after the transport that will be
  used to reach the next hop has been selected (which may involve the
  usage of the procedures in [4]).

  When the UAC creates a request, it MUST insert a Via into that
  request.  The protocol name and protocol version in the header field
  MUST be SIP and 2.0, respectively.  The Via header field value MUST
  contain a branch parameter.  This parameter is used to identify the
  transaction created by that request.  This parameter is used by both
  the client and the server.

  The branch parameter value MUST be unique across space and time for
  all requests sent by the UA.  The exceptions to this rule are CANCEL
  and ACK for non-2xx responses.  As discussed below, a CANCEL request
  will have the same value of the branch parameter as the request it
  cancels.  As discussed in Section 17.1.1.3, an ACK for a non-2xx
  response will also have the same branch ID as the INVITE whose
  response it acknowledges.

     The uniqueness property of the branch ID parameter, to facilitate
     its use as a transaction ID, was not part of RFC 2543.

  The branch ID inserted by an element compliant with this
  specification MUST always begin with the characters "z9hG4bK".  These
  7 characters are used as a magic cookie (7 is deemed sufficient to
  ensure that an older RFC 2543 implementation would not pick such a
  value), so that servers receiving the request can determine that the
  branch ID was constructed in the fashion described by this



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 39]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  specification (that is, globally unique).  Beyond this requirement,
  the precise format of the branch token is implementation-defined.

  The Via header maddr, ttl, and sent-by components will be set when
  the request is processed by the transport layer (Section 18).

  Via processing for proxies is described in Section 16.6 Item 8 and
  Section 16.7 Item 3.

8.1.1.8 Contact

  The Contact header field provides a SIP or SIPS URI that can be used
  to contact that specific instance of the UA for subsequent requests.
  The Contact header field MUST be present and contain exactly one SIP
  or SIPS URI in any request that can result in the establishment of a
  dialog.  For the methods defined in this specification, that includes
  only the INVITE request.  For these requests, the scope of the
  Contact is global.  That is, the Contact header field value contains
  the URI at which the UA would like to receive requests, and this URI
  MUST be valid even if used in subsequent requests outside of any
  dialogs.

  If the Request-URI or top Route header field value contains a SIPS
  URI, the Contact header field MUST contain a SIPS URI as well.

  For further information on the Contact header field, see Section
  20.10.

8.1.1.9 Supported and Require

  If the UAC supports extensions to SIP that can be applied by the
  server to the response, the UAC SHOULD include a Supported header
  field in the request listing the option tags (Section 19.2) for those
  extensions.

  The option tags listed MUST only refer to extensions defined in
  standards-track RFCs.  This is to prevent servers from insisting that
  clients implement non-standard, vendor-defined features in order to
  receive service.  Extensions defined by experimental and
  informational RFCs are explicitly excluded from usage with the
  Supported header field in a request, since they too are often used to
  document vendor-defined extensions.

  If the UAC wishes to insist that a UAS understand an extension that
  the UAC will apply to the request in order to process the request, it
  MUST insert a Require header field into the request listing the
  option tag for that extension.  If the UAC wishes to apply an
  extension to the request and insist that any proxies that are



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 40]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  traversed understand that extension, it MUST insert a Proxy-Require
  header field into the request listing the option tag for that
  extension.

  As with the Supported header field, the option tags in the Require
  and Proxy-Require header fields MUST only refer to extensions defined
  in standards-track RFCs.

8.1.1.10 Additional Message Components

  After a new request has been created, and the header fields described
  above have been properly constructed, any additional optional header
  fields are added, as are any header fields specific to the method.

  SIP requests MAY contain a MIME-encoded message-body.  Regardless of
  the type of body that a request contains, certain header fields must
  be formulated to characterize the contents of the body.  For further
  information on these header fields, see Sections 20.11 through 20.15.

8.1.2 Sending the Request

  The destination for the request is then computed.  Unless there is
  local policy specifying otherwise, the destination MUST be determined
  by applying the DNS procedures described in [4] as follows.  If the
  first element in the route set indicated a strict router (resulting
  in forming the request as described in Section 12.2.1.1), the
  procedures MUST be applied to the Request-URI of the request.
  Otherwise, the procedures are applied to the first Route header field
  value in the request (if one exists), or to the request's Request-URI
  if there is no Route header field present.  These procedures yield an
  ordered set of address, port, and transports to attempt.  Independent
  of which URI is used as input to the procedures of [4], if the
  Request-URI specifies a SIPS resource, the UAC MUST follow the
  procedures of [4] as if the input URI were a SIPS URI.

  Local policy MAY specify an alternate set of destinations to attempt.
  If the Request-URI contains a SIPS URI, any alternate destinations
  MUST be contacted with TLS.  Beyond that, there are no restrictions
  on the alternate destinations if the request contains no Route header
  field.  This provides a simple alternative to a pre-existing route
  set as a way to specify an outbound proxy.  However, that approach
  for configuring an outbound proxy is NOT RECOMMENDED; a pre-existing
  route set with a single URI SHOULD be used instead.  If the request
  contains a Route header field, the request SHOULD be sent to the
  locations derived from its topmost value, but MAY be sent to any
  server that the UA is certain will honor the Route and Request-URI
  policies specified in this document (as opposed to those in RFC
  2543).  In particular, a UAC configured with an outbound proxy SHOULD



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 41]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  attempt to send the request to the location indicated in the first
  Route header field value instead of adopting the policy of sending
  all messages to the outbound proxy.

     This ensures that outbound proxies that do not add Record-Route
     header field values will drop out of the path of subsequent
     requests.  It allows endpoints that cannot resolve the first Route
     URI to delegate that task to an outbound proxy.

  The UAC SHOULD follow the procedures defined in [4] for stateful
  elements, trying each address until a server is contacted.  Each try
  constitutes a new transaction, and therefore each carries a different
  topmost Via header field value with a new branch parameter.
  Furthermore, the transport value in the Via header field is set to
  whatever transport was determined for the target server.

8.1.3 Processing Responses

  Responses are first processed by the transport layer and then passed
  up to the transaction layer.  The transaction layer performs its
  processing and then passes the response up to the TU.  The majority
  of response processing in the TU is method specific.  However, there
  are some general behaviors independent of the method.

8.1.3.1 Transaction Layer Errors

  In some cases, the response returned by the transaction layer will
  not be a SIP message, but rather a transaction layer error.  When a
  timeout error is received from the transaction layer, it MUST be
  treated as if a 408 (Request Timeout) status code has been received.
  If a fatal transport error is reported by the transport layer
  (generally, due to fatal ICMP errors in UDP or connection failures in
  TCP), the condition MUST be treated as a 503 (Service Unavailable)
  status code.

8.1.3.2 Unrecognized Responses

  A UAC MUST treat any final response it does not recognize as being
  equivalent to the x00 response code of that class, and MUST be able
  to process the x00 response code for all classes.  For example, if a
  UAC receives an unrecognized response code of 431, it can safely
  assume that there was something wrong with its request and treat the
  response as if it had received a 400 (Bad Request) response code.  A
  UAC MUST treat any provisional response different than 100 that it
  does not recognize as 183 (Session Progress).  A UAC MUST be able to
  process 100 and 183 responses.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 42]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.1.3.3 Vias

  If more than one Via header field value is present in a response, the
  UAC SHOULD discard the message.

     The presence of additional Via header field values that precede
     the originator of the request suggests that the message was
     misrouted or possibly corrupted.

8.1.3.4 Processing 3xx Responses

  Upon receipt of a redirection response (for example, a 301 response
  status code), clients SHOULD use the URI(s) in the Contact header
  field to formulate one or more new requests based on the redirected
  request.  This process is similar to that of a proxy recursing on a
  3xx class response as detailed in Sections 16.5 and 16.6.  A client
  starts with an initial target set containing exactly one URI, the
  Request-URI of the original request.  If a client wishes to formulate
  new requests based on a 3xx class response to that request, it places
  the URIs to try into the target set.  Subject to the restrictions in
  this specification, a client can choose which Contact URIs it places
  into the target set.  As with proxy recursion, a client processing
  3xx class responses MUST NOT add any given URI to the target set more
  than once.  If the original request had a SIPS URI in the Request-
  URI, the client MAY choose to recurse to a non-SIPS URI, but SHOULD
  inform the user of the redirection to an insecure URI.

     Any new request may receive 3xx responses themselves containing
     the original URI as a contact.  Two locations can be configured to
     redirect to each other.  Placing any given URI in the target set
     only once prevents infinite redirection loops.

  As the target set grows, the client MAY generate new requests to the
  URIs in any order.  A common mechanism is to order the set by the "q"
  parameter value from the Contact header field value.  Requests to the
  URIs MAY be generated serially or in parallel.  One approach is to
  process groups of decreasing q-values serially and process the URIs
  in each q-value group in parallel.  Another is to perform only serial
  processing in decreasing q-value order, arbitrarily choosing between
  contacts of equal q-value.

  If contacting an address in the list results in a failure, as defined
  in the next paragraph, the element moves to the next address in the
  list, until the list is exhausted.  If the list is exhausted, then
  the request has failed.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 43]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Failures SHOULD be detected through failure response codes (codes
  greater than 399); for network errors the client transaction will
  report any transport layer failures to the transaction user.  Note
  that some response codes (detailed in 8.1.3.5) indicate that the
  request can be retried; requests that are reattempted should not be
  considered failures.

  When a failure for a particular contact address is received, the
  client SHOULD try the next contact address.  This will involve
  creating a new client transaction to deliver a new request.

  In order to create a request based on a contact address in a 3xx
  response, a UAC MUST copy the entire URI from the target set into the
  Request-URI, except for the "method-param" and "header" URI
  parameters (see Section 19.1.1 for a definition of these parameters).
  It uses the "header" parameters to create header field values for the
  new request, overwriting header field values associated with the
  redirected request in accordance with the guidelines in Section
  19.1.5.

  Note that in some instances, header fields that have been
  communicated in the contact address may instead append to existing
  request header fields in the original redirected request.  As a
  general rule, if the header field can accept a comma-separated list
  of values, then the new header field value MAY be appended to any
  existing values in the original redirected request.  If the header
  field does not accept multiple values, the value in the original
  redirected request MAY be overwritten by the header field value
  communicated in the contact address.  For example, if a contact
  address is returned with the following value:

     sip:user@host?Subject=foo&Call-Info=<http://www.foo.com>

  Then any Subject header field in the original redirected request is
  overwritten, but the HTTP URL is merely appended to any existing
  Call-Info header field values.

  It is RECOMMENDED that the UAC reuse the same To, From, and Call-ID
  used in the original redirected request, but the UAC MAY also choose
  to update the Call-ID header field value for new requests, for
  example.

  Finally, once the new request has been constructed, it is sent using
  a new client transaction, and therefore MUST have a new branch ID in
  the top Via field as discussed in Section 8.1.1.7.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 44]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  In all other respects, requests sent upon receipt of a redirect
  response SHOULD re-use the header fields and bodies of the original
  request.

  In some instances, Contact header field values may be cached at UAC
  temporarily or permanently depending on the status code received and
  the presence of an expiration interval; see Sections 21.3.2 and
  21.3.3.

8.1.3.5 Processing 4xx Responses

  Certain 4xx response codes require specific UA processing,
  independent of the method.

  If a 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy Authentication Required)
  response is received, the UAC SHOULD follow the authorization
  procedures of Section 22.2 and Section 22.3 to retry the request with
  credentials.

  If a 413 (Request Entity Too Large) response is received (Section
  21.4.11), the request contained a body that was longer than the UAS
  was willing to accept.  If possible, the UAC SHOULD retry the
  request, either omitting the body or using one of a smaller length.

  If a 415 (Unsupported Media Type) response is received (Section
  21.4.13), the request contained media types not supported by the UAS.
  The UAC SHOULD retry sending the request, this time only using
  content with types listed in the Accept header field in the response,
  with encodings listed in the Accept-Encoding header field in the
  response, and with languages listed in the Accept-Language in the
  response.

  If a 416 (Unsupported URI Scheme) response is received (Section
  21.4.14), the Request-URI used a URI scheme not supported by the
  server.  The client SHOULD retry the request, this time, using a SIP
  URI.

  If a 420 (Bad Extension) response is received (Section 21.4.15), the
  request contained a Require or Proxy-Require header field listing an
  option-tag for a feature not supported by a proxy or UAS.  The UAC
  SHOULD retry the request, this time omitting any extensions listed in
  the Unsupported header field in the response.

  In all of the above cases, the request is retried by creating a new
  request with the appropriate modifications.  This new request
  constitutes a new transaction and SHOULD have the same value of the
  Call-ID, To, and From of the previous request, but the CSeq should
  contain a new sequence number that is one higher than the previous.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 45]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  With other 4xx responses, including those yet to be defined, a retry
  may or may not be possible depending on the method and the use case.

8.2 UAS Behavior

  When a request outside of a dialog is processed by a UAS, there is a
  set of processing rules that are followed, independent of the method.
  Section 12 gives guidance on how a UAS can tell whether a request is
  inside or outside of a dialog.

  Note that request processing is atomic.  If a request is accepted,
  all state changes associated with it MUST be performed.  If it is
  rejected, all state changes MUST NOT be performed.

  UASs SHOULD process the requests in the order of the steps that
  follow in this section (that is, starting with authentication, then
  inspecting the method, the header fields, and so on throughout the
  remainder of this section).

8.2.1 Method Inspection

  Once a request is authenticated (or authentication is skipped), the
  UAS MUST inspect the method of the request.  If the UAS recognizes
  but does not support the method of a request, it MUST generate a 405
  (Method Not Allowed) response.  Procedures for generating responses
  are described in Section 8.2.6.  The UAS MUST also add an Allow
  header field to the 405 (Method Not Allowed) response.  The Allow
  header field MUST list the set of methods supported by the UAS
  generating the message.  The Allow header field is presented in
  Section 20.5.

  If the method is one supported by the server, processing continues.

8.2.2 Header Inspection

  If a UAS does not understand a header field in a request (that is,
  the header field is not defined in this specification or in any
  supported extension), the server MUST ignore that header field and
  continue processing the message.  A UAS SHOULD ignore any malformed
  header fields that are not necessary for processing requests.

8.2.2.1 To and Request-URI

  The To header field identifies the original recipient of the request
  designated by the user identified in the From field.  The original
  recipient may or may not be the UAS processing the request, due to
  call forwarding or other proxy operations.  A UAS MAY apply any
  policy it wishes to determine whether to accept requests when the To



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 46]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  header field is not the identity of the UAS.  However, it is
  RECOMMENDED that a UAS accept requests even if they do not recognize
  the URI scheme (for example, a tel: URI) in the To header field, or
  if the To header field does not address a known or current user of
  this UAS.  If, on the other hand, the UAS decides to reject the
  request, it SHOULD generate a response with a 403 (Forbidden) status
  code and pass it to the server transaction for transmission.

  However, the Request-URI identifies the UAS that is to process the
  request.  If the Request-URI uses a scheme not supported by the UAS,
  it SHOULD reject the request with a 416 (Unsupported URI Scheme)
  response.  If the Request-URI does not identify an address that the
  UAS is willing to accept requests for, it SHOULD reject the request
  with a 404 (Not Found) response.  Typically, a UA that uses the
  REGISTER method to bind its address-of-record to a specific contact
  address will see requests whose Request-URI equals that contact
  address.  Other potential sources of received Request-URIs include
  the Contact header fields of requests and responses sent by the UA
  that establish or refresh dialogs.

8.2.2.2 Merged Requests

  If the request has no tag in the To header field, the UAS core MUST
  check the request against ongoing transactions.  If the From tag,
  Call-ID, and CSeq exactly match those associated with an ongoing
  transaction, but the request does not match that transaction (based
  on the matching rules in Section 17.2.3), the UAS core SHOULD
  generate a 482 (Loop Detected) response and pass it to the server
  transaction.

     The same request has arrived at the UAS more than once, following
     different paths, most likely due to forking.  The UAS processes
     the first such request received and responds with a 482 (Loop
     Detected) to the rest of them.

8.2.2.3 Require

  Assuming the UAS decides that it is the proper element to process the
  request, it examines the Require header field, if present.

  The Require header field is used by a UAC to tell a UAS about SIP
  extensions that the UAC expects the UAS to support in order to
  process the request properly.  Its format is described in Section
  20.32.  If a UAS does not understand an option-tag listed in a
  Require header field, it MUST respond by generating a response with
  status code 420 (Bad Extension).  The UAS MUST add an Unsupported
  header field, and list in it those options it does not understand
  amongst those in the Require header field of the request.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 47]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Note that Require and Proxy-Require MUST NOT be used in a SIP CANCEL
  request, or in an ACK request sent for a non-2xx response.  These
  header fields MUST be ignored if they are present in these requests.

  An ACK request for a 2xx response MUST contain only those Require and
  Proxy-Require values that were present in the initial request.

  Example:

     UAC->UAS:   INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
                 Require: 100rel

     UAS->UAC:   SIP/2.0 420 Bad Extension
                 Unsupported: 100rel

     This behavior ensures that the client-server interaction will
     proceed without delay when all options are understood by both
     sides, and only slow down if options are not understood (as in the
     example above).  For a well-matched client-server pair, the
     interaction proceeds quickly, saving a round-trip often required
     by negotiation mechanisms.  In addition, it also removes ambiguity
     when the client requires features that the server does not
     understand.  Some features, such as call handling fields, are only
     of interest to end systems.

8.2.3 Content Processing

  Assuming the UAS understands any extensions required by the client,
  the UAS examines the body of the message, and the header fields that
  describe it.  If there are any bodies whose type (indicated by the
  Content-Type), language (indicated by the Content-Language) or
  encoding (indicated by the Content-Encoding) are not understood, and
  that body part is not optional (as indicated by the Content-
  Disposition header field), the UAS MUST reject the request with a 415
  (Unsupported Media Type) response.  The response MUST contain an
  Accept header field listing the types of all bodies it understands,
  in the event the request contained bodies of types not supported by
  the UAS.  If the request contained content encodings not understood
  by the UAS, the response MUST contain an Accept-Encoding header field
  listing the encodings understood by the UAS.  If the request
  contained content with languages not understood by the UAS, the
  response MUST contain an Accept-Language header field indicating the
  languages understood by the UAS.  Beyond these checks, body handling
  depends on the method and type.  For further information on the
  processing of content-specific header fields, see Section 7.4 as well
  as Section 20.11 through 20.15.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 48]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


8.2.4 Applying Extensions

  A UAS that wishes to apply some extension when generating the
  response MUST NOT do so unless support for that extension is
  indicated in the Supported header field in the request.  If the
  desired extension is not supported, the server SHOULD rely only on
  baseline SIP and any other extensions supported by the client.  In
  rare circumstances, where the server cannot process the request
  without the extension, the server MAY send a 421 (Extension Required)
  response.  This response indicates that the proper response cannot be
  generated without support of a specific extension.  The needed
  extension(s) MUST be included in a Require header field in the
  response.  This behavior is NOT RECOMMENDED, as it will generally
  break interoperability.

  Any extensions applied to a non-421 response MUST be listed in a
  Require header field included in the response.  Of course, the server
  MUST NOT apply extensions not listed in the Supported header field in
  the request.  As a result of this, the Require header field in a
  response will only ever contain option tags defined in standards-
  track RFCs.

8.2.5 Processing the Request

  Assuming all of the checks in the previous subsections are passed,
  the UAS processing becomes method-specific.  Section 10 covers the
  REGISTER request, Section 11 covers the OPTIONS request, Section 13
  covers the INVITE request, and Section 15 covers the BYE request.

8.2.6 Generating the Response

  When a UAS wishes to construct a response to a request, it follows
  the general procedures detailed in the following subsections.
  Additional behaviors specific to the response code in question, which
  are not detailed in this section, may also be required.

  Once all procedures associated with the creation of a response have
  been completed, the UAS hands the response back to the server
  transaction from which it received the request.

8.2.6.1 Sending a Provisional Response

  One largely non-method-specific guideline for the generation of
  responses is that UASs SHOULD NOT issue a provisional response for a
  non-INVITE request.  Rather, UASs SHOULD generate a final response to
  a non-INVITE request as soon as possible.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 49]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  When a 100 (Trying) response is generated, any Timestamp header field
  present in the request MUST be copied into this 100 (Trying)
  response.  If there is a delay in generating the response, the UAS
  SHOULD add a delay value into the Timestamp value in the response.
  This value MUST contain the difference between the time of sending of
  the response and receipt of the request, measured in seconds.

8.2.6.2 Headers and Tags

  The From field of the response MUST equal the From header field of
  the request.  The Call-ID header field of the response MUST equal the
  Call-ID header field of the request.  The CSeq header field of the
  response MUST equal the CSeq field of the request.  The Via header
  field values in the response MUST equal the Via header field values
  in the request and MUST maintain the same ordering.

  If a request contained a To tag in the request, the To header field
  in the response MUST equal that of the request.  However, if the To
  header field in the request did not contain a tag, the URI in the To
  header field in the response MUST equal the URI in the To header
  field; additionally, the UAS MUST add a tag to the To header field in
  the response (with the exception of the 100 (Trying) response, in
  which a tag MAY be present).  This serves to identify the UAS that is
  responding, possibly resulting in a component of a dialog ID.  The
  same tag MUST be used for all responses to that request, both final
  and provisional (again excepting the 100 (Trying)).  Procedures for
  the generation of tags are defined in Section 19.3.

8.2.7 Stateless UAS Behavior

  A stateless UAS is a UAS that does not maintain transaction state.
  It replies to requests normally, but discards any state that would
  ordinarily be retained by a UAS after a response has been sent.  If a
  stateless UAS receives a retransmission of a request, it regenerates
  the response and resends it, just as if it were replying to the first
  instance of the request. A UAS cannot be stateless unless the request
  processing for that method would always result in the same response
  if the requests are identical. This rules out stateless registrars,
  for example.  Stateless UASs do not use a transaction layer; they
  receive requests directly from the transport layer and send responses
  directly to the transport layer.

  The stateless UAS role is needed primarily to handle unauthenticated
  requests for which a challenge response is issued.  If
  unauthenticated requests were handled statefully, then malicious
  floods of unauthenticated requests could create massive amounts of





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 50]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  transaction state that might slow or completely halt call processing
  in a UAS, effectively creating a denial of service condition; for
  more information see Section 26.1.5.

  The most important behaviors of a stateless UAS are the following:

     o  A stateless UAS MUST NOT send provisional (1xx) responses.

     o  A stateless UAS MUST NOT retransmit responses.

     o  A stateless UAS MUST ignore ACK requests.

     o  A stateless UAS MUST ignore CANCEL requests.

     o  To header tags MUST be generated for responses in a stateless
        manner - in a manner that will generate the same tag for the
        same request consistently.  For information on tag construction
        see Section 19.3.

  In all other respects, a stateless UAS behaves in the same manner as
  a stateful UAS.  A UAS can operate in either a stateful or stateless
  mode for each new request.

8.3 Redirect Servers

  In some architectures it may be desirable to reduce the processing
  load on proxy servers that are responsible for routing requests, and
  improve signaling path robustness, by relying on redirection.

  Redirection allows servers to push routing information for a request
  back in a response to the client, thereby taking themselves out of
  the loop of further messaging for this transaction while still aiding
  in locating the target of the request.  When the originator of the
  request receives the redirection, it will send a new request based on
  the URI(s) it has received.  By propagating URIs from the core of the
  network to its edges, redirection allows for considerable network
  scalability.

  A redirect server is logically constituted of a server transaction
  layer and a transaction user that has access to a location service of
  some kind (see Section 10 for more on registrars and location
  services).  This location service is effectively a database
  containing mappings between a single URI and a set of one or more
  alternative locations at which the target of that URI can be found.

  A redirect server does not issue any SIP requests of its own.  After
  receiving a request other than CANCEL, the server either refuses the
  request or gathers the list of alternative locations from the



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 51]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  location service and returns a final response of class 3xx.  For
  well-formed CANCEL requests, it SHOULD return a 2xx response.  This
  response ends the SIP transaction.  The redirect server maintains
  transaction state for an entire SIP transaction.  It is the
  responsibility of clients to detect forwarding loops between redirect
  servers.

  When a redirect server returns a 3xx response to a request, it
  populates the list of (one or more) alternative locations into the
  Contact header field.  An "expires" parameter to the Contact header
  field values may also be supplied to indicate the lifetime of the
  Contact data.

  The Contact header field contains URIs giving the new locations or
  user names to try, or may simply specify additional transport
  parameters.  A 301 (Moved Permanently) or 302 (Moved Temporarily)
  response may also give the same location and username that was
  targeted by the initial request but specify additional transport
  parameters such as a different server or multicast address to try, or
  a change of SIP transport from UDP to TCP or vice versa.

  However, redirect servers MUST NOT redirect a request to a URI equal
  to the one in the Request-URI; instead, provided that the URI does
  not point to itself, the server MAY proxy the request to the
  destination URI, or MAY reject it with a 404.

     If a client is using an outbound proxy, and that proxy actually
     redirects requests, a potential arises for infinite redirection
     loops.

  Note that a Contact header field value MAY also refer to a different
  resource than the one originally called.  For example, a SIP call
  connected to PSTN gateway may need to deliver a special informational
  announcement such as "The number you have dialed has been changed."

  A Contact response header field can contain any suitable URI
  indicating where the called party can be reached, not limited to SIP
  URIs.  For example, it could contain URIs for phones, fax, or irc (if
  they were defined) or a mailto:  (RFC 2368 [32]) URL.  Section 26.4.4
  discusses implications and limitations of redirecting a SIPS URI to a
  non-SIPS URI.

  The "expires" parameter of a Contact header field value indicates how
  long the URI is valid.  The value of the parameter is a number
  indicating seconds.  If this parameter is not provided, the value of
  the Expires header field determines how long the URI is valid.
  Malformed values SHOULD be treated as equivalent to 3600.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 52]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     This provides a modest level of backwards compatibility with RFC
     2543, which allowed absolute times in this header field.  If an
     absolute time is received, it will be treated as malformed, and
     then default to 3600.

  Redirect servers MUST ignore features that are not understood
  (including unrecognized header fields, any unknown option tags in
  Require, or even method names) and proceed with the redirection of
  the request in question.

9 Canceling a Request

  The previous section has discussed general UA behavior for generating
  requests and processing responses for requests of all methods.  In
  this section, we discuss a general purpose method, called CANCEL.

  The CANCEL request, as the name implies, is used to cancel a previous
  request sent by a client.  Specifically, it asks the UAS to cease
  processing the request and to generate an error response to that
  request.  CANCEL has no effect on a request to which a UAS has
  already given a final response.  Because of this, it is most useful
  to CANCEL requests to which it can take a server long time to
  respond.  For this reason, CANCEL is best for INVITE requests, which
  can take a long time to generate a response.  In that usage, a UAS
  that receives a CANCEL request for an INVITE, but has not yet sent a
  final response, would "stop ringing", and then respond to the INVITE
  with a specific error response (a 487).

  CANCEL requests can be constructed and sent by both proxies and user
  agent clients.  Section 15 discusses under what conditions a UAC
  would CANCEL an INVITE request, and Section 16.10 discusses proxy
  usage of CANCEL.

  A stateful proxy responds to a CANCEL, rather than simply forwarding
  a response it would receive from a downstream element.  For that
  reason, CANCEL is referred to as a "hop-by-hop" request, since it is
  responded to at each stateful proxy hop.

9.1 Client Behavior

  A CANCEL request SHOULD NOT be sent to cancel a request other than
  INVITE.

     Since requests other than INVITE are responded to immediately,
     sending a CANCEL for a non-INVITE request would always create a
     race condition.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 53]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The following procedures are used to construct a CANCEL request.  The
  Request-URI, Call-ID, To, the numeric part of CSeq, and From header
  fields in the CANCEL request MUST be identical to those in the
  request being cancelled, including tags.  A CANCEL constructed by a
  client MUST have only a single Via header field value matching the
  top Via value in the request being cancelled.  Using the same values
  for these header fields allows the CANCEL to be matched with the
  request it cancels (Section 9.2 indicates how such matching occurs).
  However, the method part of the CSeq header field MUST have a value
  of CANCEL.  This allows it to be identified and processed as a
  transaction in its own right (See Section 17).

  If the request being cancelled contains a Route header field, the
  CANCEL request MUST include that Route header field's values.

     This is needed so that stateless proxies are able to route CANCEL
     requests properly.

  The CANCEL request MUST NOT contain any Require or Proxy-Require
  header fields.

  Once the CANCEL is constructed, the client SHOULD check whether it
  has received any response (provisional or final) for the request
  being cancelled (herein referred to as the "original request").

  If no provisional response has been received, the CANCEL request MUST
  NOT be sent; rather, the client MUST wait for the arrival of a
  provisional response before sending the request.  If the original
  request has generated a final response, the CANCEL SHOULD NOT be
  sent, as it is an effective no-op, since CANCEL has no effect on
  requests that have already generated a final response.  When the
  client decides to send the CANCEL, it creates a client transaction
  for the CANCEL and passes it the CANCEL request along with the
  destination address, port, and transport.  The destination address,
  port, and transport for the CANCEL MUST be identical to those used to
  send the original request.

     If it was allowed to send the CANCEL before receiving a response
     for the previous request, the server could receive the CANCEL
     before the original request.

  Note that both the transaction corresponding to the original request
  and the CANCEL transaction will complete independently.  However, a
  UAC canceling a request cannot rely on receiving a 487 (Request
  Terminated) response for the original request, as an RFC 2543-
  compliant UAS will not generate such a response.  If there is no
  final response for the original request in 64*T1 seconds (T1 is




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 54]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  defined in Section 17.1.1.1), the client SHOULD then consider the
  original transaction cancelled and SHOULD destroy the client
  transaction handling the original request.

9.2 Server Behavior

  The CANCEL method requests that the TU at the server side cancel a
  pending transaction.  The TU determines the transaction to be
  cancelled by taking the CANCEL request, and then assuming that the
  request method is anything but CANCEL or ACK and applying the
  transaction matching procedures of Section 17.2.3.  The matching
  transaction is the one to be cancelled.

  The processing of a CANCEL request at a server depends on the type of
  server.  A stateless proxy will forward it, a stateful proxy might
  respond to it and generate some CANCEL requests of its own, and a UAS
  will respond to it.  See Section 16.10 for proxy treatment of CANCEL.

  A UAS first processes the CANCEL request according to the general UAS
  processing described in Section 8.2.  However, since CANCEL requests
  are hop-by-hop and cannot be resubmitted, they cannot be challenged
  by the server in order to get proper credentials in an Authorization
  header field.  Note also that CANCEL requests do not contain a
  Require header field.

  If the UAS did not find a matching transaction for the CANCEL
  according to the procedure above, it SHOULD respond to the CANCEL
  with a 481 (Call Leg/Transaction Does Not Exist).  If the transaction
  for the original request still exists, the behavior of the UAS on
  receiving a CANCEL request depends on whether it has already sent a
  final response for the original request.  If it has, the CANCEL
  request has no effect on the processing of the original request, no
  effect on any session state, and no effect on the responses generated
  for the original request.  If the UAS has not issued a final response
  for the original request, its behavior depends on the method of the
  original request.  If the original request was an INVITE, the UAS
  SHOULD immediately respond to the INVITE with a 487 (Request
  Terminated).  A CANCEL request has no impact on the processing of
  transactions with any other method defined in this specification.

  Regardless of the method of the original request, as long as the
  CANCEL matched an existing transaction, the UAS answers the CANCEL
  request itself with a 200 (OK) response.  This response is
  constructed following the procedures described in Section 8.2.6
  noting that the To tag of the response to the CANCEL and the To tag
  in the response to the original request SHOULD be the same.  The
  response to CANCEL is passed to the server transaction for
  transmission.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 55]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


10 Registrations

10.1 Overview

  SIP offers a discovery capability.  If a user wants to initiate a
  session with another user, SIP must discover the current host(s) at
  which the destination user is reachable.  This discovery process is
  frequently accomplished by SIP network elements such as proxy servers
  and redirect servers which are responsible for receiving a request,
  determining where to send it based on knowledge of the location of
  the user, and then sending it there.  To do this, SIP network
  elements consult an abstract service known as a location service,
  which provides address bindings for a particular domain.  These
  address bindings map an incoming SIP or SIPS URI, sip:[email protected],
  for example, to one or more URIs that are somehow "closer" to the
  desired user, sip:[email protected], for example.
  Ultimately, a proxy will consult a location service that maps a
  received URI to the user agent(s) at which the desired recipient is
  currently residing.

  Registration creates bindings in a location service for a particular
  domain that associates an address-of-record URI with one or more
  contact addresses.  Thus, when a proxy for that domain receives a
  request whose Request-URI matches the address-of-record, the proxy
  will forward the request to the contact addresses registered to that
  address-of-record.  Generally, it only makes sense to register an
  address-of-record at a domain's location service when requests for
  that address-of-record would be routed to that domain.  In most
  cases, this means that the domain of the registration will need to
  match the domain in the URI of the address-of-record.

  There are many ways by which the contents of the location service can
  be established.  One way is administratively.  In the above example,
  Bob is known to be a member of the engineering department through
  access to a corporate database.  However, SIP provides a mechanism
  for a UA to create a binding explicitly.  This mechanism is known as
  registration.

  Registration entails sending a REGISTER request to a special type of
  UAS known as a registrar.  A registrar acts as the front end to the
  location service for a domain, reading and writing mappings based on
  the contents of REGISTER requests.  This location service is then
  typically consulted by a proxy server that is responsible for routing
  requests for that domain.

  An illustration of the overall registration process is given in
  Figure 2.  Note that the registrar and proxy server are logical roles
  that can be played by a single device in a network; for purposes of



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 56]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  clarity the two are separated in this illustration.  Also note that
  UAs may send requests through a proxy server in order to reach a
  registrar if the two are separate elements.

  SIP does not mandate a particular mechanism for implementing the
  location service.  The only requirement is that a registrar for some
  domain MUST be able to read and write data to the location service,
  and a proxy or a redirect server for that domain MUST be capable of
  reading that same data.  A registrar MAY be co-located with a
  particular SIP proxy server for the same domain.

10.2 Constructing the REGISTER Request

  REGISTER requests add, remove, and query bindings.  A REGISTER
  request can add a new binding between an address-of-record and one or
  more contact addresses.  Registration on behalf of a particular
  address-of-record can be performed by a suitably authorized third
  party.  A client can also remove previous bindings or query to
  determine which bindings are currently in place for an address-of-
  record.

  Except as noted, the construction of the REGISTER request and the
  behavior of clients sending a REGISTER request is identical to the
  general UAC behavior described in Section 8.1 and Section 17.1.

  A REGISTER request does not establish a dialog.  A UAC MAY include a
  Route header field in a REGISTER request based on a pre-existing
  route set as described in Section 8.1.  The Record-Route header field
  has no meaning in REGISTER requests or responses, and MUST be ignored
  if present.  In particular, the UAC MUST NOT create a new route set
  based on the presence or absence of a Record-Route header field in
  any response to a REGISTER request.

  The following header fields, except Contact, MUST be included in a
  REGISTER request.  A Contact header field MAY be included:

     Request-URI: The Request-URI names the domain of the location
          service for which the registration is meant (for example,
          "sip:chicago.com").  The "userinfo" and "@" components of the
          SIP URI MUST NOT be present.

     To: The To header field contains the address of record whose
          registration is to be created, queried, or modified.  The To
          header field and the Request-URI field typically differ, as
          the former contains a user name.  This address-of-record MUST
          be a SIP URI or SIPS URI.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 57]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     From: The From header field contains the address-of-record of the
          person responsible for the registration.  The value is the
          same as the To header field unless the request is a third-
          party registration.

     Call-ID: All registrations from a UAC SHOULD use the same Call-ID
          header field value for registrations sent to a particular
          registrar.

          If the same client were to use different Call-ID values, a
          registrar could not detect whether a delayed REGISTER request
          might have arrived out of order.

     CSeq: The CSeq value guarantees proper ordering of REGISTER
          requests.  A UA MUST increment the CSeq value by one for each
          REGISTER request with the same Call-ID.

     Contact: REGISTER requests MAY contain a Contact header field with
          zero or more values containing address bindings.

  UAs MUST NOT send a new registration (that is, containing new Contact
  header field values, as opposed to a retransmission) until they have
  received a final response from the registrar for the previous one or
  the previous REGISTER request has timed out.



























Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 58]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


                                                bob
                                              +----+
                                              | UA |
                                              |    |
                                              +----+
                                                 |
                                                 |3)INVITE
                                                 |   [email protected]
        chicago.com        +--------+            V
        +---------+ 2)Store|Location|4)Query +-----+
        |Registrar|=======>| Service|<=======|Proxy|sip.chicago.com
        +---------+        +--------+=======>+-----+
              A                      5)Resp      |
              |                                  |
              |                                  |
    1)REGISTER|                                  |
              |                                  |
           +----+                                |
           | UA |<-------------------------------+
  cube2214a|    |                            6)INVITE
           +----+                    [email protected]
            carol

                     Figure 2: REGISTER example

     The following Contact header parameters have a special meaning in
          REGISTER requests:

     action: The "action" parameter from RFC 2543 has been deprecated.
          UACs SHOULD NOT use the "action" parameter.

     expires: The "expires" parameter indicates how long the UA would
          like the binding to be valid.  The value is a number
          indicating seconds.  If this parameter is not provided, the
          value of the Expires header field is used instead.
          Implementations MAY treat values larger than 2**32-1
          (4294967295 seconds or 136 years) as equivalent to 2**32-1.
          Malformed values SHOULD be treated as equivalent to 3600.

10.2.1 Adding Bindings

  The REGISTER request sent to a registrar includes the contact
  address(es) to which SIP requests for the address-of-record should be
  forwarded.  The address-of-record is included in the To header field
  of the REGISTER request.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 59]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The Contact header field values of the request typically consist of
  SIP or SIPS URIs that identify particular SIP endpoints (for example,
  "sip:[email protected]"), but they MAY use any URI scheme.
  A SIP UA can choose to register telephone numbers (with the tel URL,
  RFC 2806 [9]) or email addresses (with a mailto URL, RFC 2368 [32])
  as Contacts for an address-of-record, for example.

  For example, Carol, with address-of-record "sip:[email protected]",
  would register with the SIP registrar of the domain chicago.com.  Her
  registrations would then be used by a proxy server in the chicago.com
  domain to route requests for Carol's address-of-record to her SIP
  endpoint.

  Once a client has established bindings at a registrar, it MAY send
  subsequent registrations containing new bindings or modifications to
  existing bindings as necessary.  The 2xx response to the REGISTER
  request will contain, in a Contact header field, a complete list of
  bindings that have been registered for this address-of-record at this
  registrar.

  If the address-of-record in the To header field of a REGISTER request
  is a SIPS URI, then any Contact header field values in the request
  SHOULD also be SIPS URIs.  Clients should only register non-SIPS URIs
  under a SIPS address-of-record when the security of the resource
  represented by the contact address is guaranteed by other means.
  This may be applicable to URIs that invoke protocols other than SIP,
  or SIP devices secured by protocols other than TLS.

  Registrations do not need to update all bindings.  Typically, a UA
  only updates its own contact addresses.

10.2.1.1 Setting the Expiration Interval of Contact Addresses

  When a client sends a REGISTER request, it MAY suggest an expiration
  interval that indicates how long the client would like the
  registration to be valid.  (As described in Section 10.3, the
  registrar selects the actual time interval based on its local
  policy.)

  There are two ways in which a client can suggest an expiration
  interval for a binding: through an Expires header field or an
  "expires" Contact header parameter.  The latter allows expiration
  intervals to be suggested on a per-binding basis when more than one
  binding is given in a single REGISTER request, whereas the former
  suggests an expiration interval for all Contact header field values
  that do not contain the "expires" parameter.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 60]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If neither mechanism for expressing a suggested expiration time is
  present in a REGISTER, the client is indicating its desire for the
  server to choose.

10.2.1.2 Preferences among Contact Addresses

  If more than one Contact is sent in a REGISTER request, the
  registering UA intends to associate all of the URIs in these Contact
  header field values with the address-of-record present in the To
  field.  This list can be prioritized with the "q" parameter in the
  Contact header field.  The "q" parameter indicates a relative
  preference for the particular Contact header field value compared to
  other bindings for this address-of-record.  Section 16.6 describes
  how a proxy server uses this preference indication.

10.2.2 Removing Bindings

  Registrations are soft state and expire unless refreshed, but can
  also be explicitly removed.  A client can attempt to influence the
  expiration interval selected by the registrar as described in Section
  10.2.1.  A UA requests the immediate removal of a binding by
  specifying an expiration interval of "0" for that contact address in
  a REGISTER request.  UAs SHOULD support this mechanism so that
  bindings can be removed before their expiration interval has passed.

  The REGISTER-specific Contact header field value of "*" applies to
  all registrations, but it MUST NOT be used unless the Expires header
  field is present with a value of "0".

     Use of the "*" Contact header field value allows a registering UA
     to remove all bindings associated with an address-of-record
     without knowing their precise values.

10.2.3 Fetching Bindings

  A success response to any REGISTER request contains the complete list
  of existing bindings, regardless of whether the request contained a
  Contact header field.  If no Contact header field is present in a
  REGISTER request, the list of bindings is left unchanged.

10.2.4 Refreshing Bindings

  Each UA is responsible for refreshing the bindings that it has
  previously established.  A UA SHOULD NOT refresh bindings set up by
  other UAs.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 61]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The 200 (OK) response from the registrar contains a list of Contact
  fields enumerating all current bindings.  The UA compares each
  contact address to see if it created the contact address, using
  comparison rules in Section 19.1.4.  If so, it updates the expiration
  time interval according to the expires parameter or, if absent, the
  Expires field value.  The UA then issues a REGISTER request for each
  of its bindings before the expiration interval has elapsed.  It MAY
  combine several updates into one REGISTER request.

  A UA SHOULD use the same Call-ID for all registrations during a
  single boot cycle.  Registration refreshes SHOULD be sent to the same
  network address as the original registration, unless redirected.

10.2.5 Setting the Internal Clock

  If the response for a REGISTER request contains a Date header field,
  the client MAY use this header field to learn the current time in
  order to set any internal clocks.

10.2.6 Discovering a Registrar

  UAs can use three ways to determine the address to which to send
  registrations:  by configuration, using the address-of-record, and
  multicast.  A UA can be configured, in ways beyond the scope of this
  specification, with a registrar address.  If there is no configured
  registrar address, the UA SHOULD use the host part of the address-
  of-record as the Request-URI and address the request there, using the
  normal SIP server location mechanisms [4].  For example, the UA for
  the user "sip:[email protected]" addresses the REGISTER request to
  "sip:chicago.com".

  Finally, a UA can be configured to use multicast.  Multicast
  registrations are addressed to the well-known "all SIP servers"
  multicast address "sip.mcast.net" (224.0.1.75 for IPv4).  No well-
  known IPv6 multicast address has been allocated; such an allocation
  will be documented separately when needed.  SIP UAs MAY listen to
  that address and use it to become aware of the location of other
  local users (see [33]); however, they do not respond to the request.

     Multicast registration may be inappropriate in some environments,
     for example, if multiple businesses share the same local area
     network.

10.2.7 Transmitting a Request

  Once the REGISTER method has been constructed, and the destination of
  the message identified, UACs follow the procedures described in
  Section 8.1.2 to hand off the REGISTER to the transaction layer.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 62]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If the transaction layer returns a timeout error because the REGISTER
  yielded no response, the UAC SHOULD NOT immediately re-attempt a
  registration to the same registrar.

     An immediate re-attempt is likely to also timeout.  Waiting some
     reasonable time interval for the conditions causing the timeout to
     be corrected reduces unnecessary load on the network.  No specific
     interval is mandated.

10.2.8 Error Responses

  If a UA receives a 423 (Interval Too Brief) response, it MAY retry
  the registration after making the expiration interval of all contact
  addresses in the REGISTER request equal to or greater than the
  expiration interval within the Min-Expires header field of the 423
  (Interval Too Brief) response.

10.3 Processing REGISTER Requests

  A registrar is a UAS that responds to REGISTER requests and maintains
  a list of bindings that are accessible to proxy servers and redirect
  servers within its administrative domain.  A registrar handles
  requests according to Section 8.2 and Section 17.2, but it accepts
  only REGISTER requests.  A registrar MUST not generate 6xx responses.

  A registrar MAY redirect REGISTER requests as appropriate.  One
  common usage would be for a registrar listening on a multicast
  interface to redirect multicast REGISTER requests to its own unicast
  interface with a 302 (Moved Temporarily) response.

  Registrars MUST ignore the Record-Route header field if it is
  included in a REGISTER request.  Registrars MUST NOT include a
  Record-Route header field in any response to a REGISTER request.

     A registrar might receive a request that traversed a proxy which
     treats REGISTER as an unknown request and which added a Record-
     Route header field value.

  A registrar has to know (for example, through configuration) the set
  of domain(s) for which it maintains bindings.  REGISTER requests MUST
  be processed by a registrar in the order that they are received.
  REGISTER requests MUST also be processed atomically, meaning that a
  particular REGISTER request is either processed completely or not at
  all.  Each REGISTER message MUST be processed independently of any
  other registration or binding changes.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 63]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  When receiving a REGISTER request, a registrar follows these steps:

     1. The registrar inspects the Request-URI to determine whether it
        has access to bindings for the domain identified in the
        Request-URI.  If not, and if the server also acts as a proxy
        server, the server SHOULD forward the request to the addressed
        domain, following the general behavior for proxying messages
        described in Section 16.

     2. To guarantee that the registrar supports any necessary
        extensions, the registrar MUST process the Require header field
        values as described for UASs in Section 8.2.2.

     3. A registrar SHOULD authenticate the UAC.  Mechanisms for the
        authentication of SIP user agents are described in Section 22.
        Registration behavior in no way overrides the generic
        authentication framework for SIP.  If no authentication
        mechanism is available, the registrar MAY take the From address
        as the asserted identity of the originator of the request.

     4. The registrar SHOULD determine if the authenticated user is
        authorized to modify registrations for this address-of-record.
        For example, a registrar might consult an authorization
        database that maps user names to a list of addresses-of-record
        for which that user has authorization to modify bindings.  If
        the authenticated user is not authorized to modify bindings,
        the registrar MUST return a 403 (Forbidden) and skip the
        remaining steps.

        In architectures that support third-party registration, one
        entity may be responsible for updating the registrations
        associated with multiple addresses-of-record.

     5. The registrar extracts the address-of-record from the To header
        field of the request.  If the address-of-record is not valid
        for the domain in the Request-URI, the registrar MUST send a
        404 (Not Found) response and skip the remaining steps.  The URI
        MUST then be converted to a canonical form.  To do that, all
        URI parameters MUST be removed (including the user-param), and
        any escaped characters MUST be converted to their unescaped
        form.  The result serves as an index into the list of bindings.










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 64]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     6. The registrar checks whether the request contains the Contact
        header field.  If not, it skips to the last step.  If the
        Contact header field is present, the registrar checks if there
        is one Contact field value that contains the special value "*"
        and an Expires field.  If the request has additional Contact
        fields or an expiration time other than zero, the request is
        invalid, and the server MUST return a 400 (Invalid Request) and
        skip the remaining steps.  If not, the registrar checks whether
        the Call-ID agrees with the value stored for each binding.  If
        not, it MUST remove the binding.  If it does agree, it MUST
        remove the binding only if the CSeq in the request is higher
        than the value stored for that binding.  Otherwise, the update
        MUST be aborted and the request fails.

     7. The registrar now processes each contact address in the Contact
        header field in turn.  For each address, it determines the
        expiration interval as follows:

        -  If the field value has an "expires" parameter, that value
           MUST be taken as the requested expiration.

        -  If there is no such parameter, but the request has an
           Expires header field, that value MUST be taken as the
           requested expiration.

        -  If there is neither, a locally-configured default value MUST
           be taken as the requested expiration.

        The registrar MAY choose an expiration less than the requested
        expiration interval.  If and only if the requested expiration
        interval is greater than zero AND smaller than one hour AND
        less than a registrar-configured minimum, the registrar MAY
        reject the registration with a response of 423 (Interval Too
        Brief).  This response MUST contain a Min-Expires header field
        that states the minimum expiration interval the registrar is
        willing to honor.  It then skips the remaining steps.

        Allowing the registrar to set the registration interval
        protects it against excessively frequent registration refreshes
        while limiting the state that it needs to maintain and
        decreasing the likelihood of registrations going stale.  The
        expiration interval of a registration is frequently used in the
        creation of services.  An example is a follow-me service, where
        the user may only be available at a terminal for a brief
        period.  Therefore, registrars should accept brief
        registrations; a request should only be rejected if the
        interval is so short that the refreshes would degrade registrar
        performance.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 65]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        For each address, the registrar then searches the list of
        current bindings using the URI comparison rules.  If the
        binding does not exist, it is tentatively added.  If the
        binding does exist, the registrar checks the Call-ID value.  If
        the Call-ID value in the existing binding differs from the
        Call-ID value in the request, the binding MUST be removed if
        the expiration time is zero and updated otherwise.  If they are
        the same, the registrar compares the CSeq value.  If the value
        is higher than that of the existing binding, it MUST update or
        remove the binding as above.  If not, the update MUST be
        aborted and the request fails.

        This algorithm ensures that out-of-order requests from the same
        UA are ignored.

        Each binding record records the Call-ID and CSeq values from
        the request.

        The binding updates MUST be committed (that is, made visible to
        the proxy or redirect server) if and only if all binding
        updates and additions succeed.  If any one of them fails (for
        example, because the back-end database commit failed), the
        request MUST fail with a 500 (Server Error) response and all
        tentative binding updates MUST be removed.

     8. The registrar returns a 200 (OK) response.  The response MUST
        contain Contact header field values enumerating all current
        bindings.  Each Contact value MUST feature an "expires"
        parameter indicating its expiration interval chosen by the
        registrar.  The response SHOULD include a Date header field.

11 Querying for Capabilities

  The SIP method OPTIONS allows a UA to query another UA or a proxy
  server as to its capabilities.  This allows a client to discover
  information about the supported methods, content types, extensions,
  codecs, etc. without "ringing" the other party.  For example, before
  a client inserts a Require header field into an INVITE listing an
  option that it is not certain the destination UAS supports, the
  client can query the destination UAS with an OPTIONS to see if this
  option is returned in a Supported header field.  All UAs MUST support
  the OPTIONS method.

  The target of the OPTIONS request is identified by the Request-URI,
  which could identify another UA or a SIP server.  If the OPTIONS is
  addressed to a proxy server, the Request-URI is set without a user
  part, similar to the way a Request-URI is set for a REGISTER request.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 66]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Alternatively, a server receiving an OPTIONS request with a Max-
  Forwards header field value of 0 MAY respond to the request
  regardless of the Request-URI.

     This behavior is common with HTTP/1.1.  This behavior can be used
     as a "traceroute" functionality to check the capabilities of
     individual hop servers by sending a series of OPTIONS requests
     with incremented Max-Forwards values.

  As is the case for general UA behavior, the transaction layer can
  return a timeout error if the OPTIONS yields no response.  This may
  indicate that the target is unreachable and hence unavailable.

  An OPTIONS request MAY be sent as part of an established dialog to
  query the peer on capabilities that may be utilized later in the
  dialog.

11.1 Construction of OPTIONS Request

  An OPTIONS request is constructed using the standard rules for a SIP
  request as discussed in Section 8.1.1.

  A Contact header field MAY be present in an OPTIONS.

  An Accept header field SHOULD be included to indicate the type of
  message body the UAC wishes to receive in the response.  Typically,
  this is set to a format that is used to describe the media
  capabilities of a UA, such as SDP (application/sdp).

  The response to an OPTIONS request is assumed to be scoped to the
  Request-URI in the original request.  However, only when an OPTIONS
  is sent as part of an established dialog is it guaranteed that future
  requests will be received by the server that generated the OPTIONS
  response.

  Example OPTIONS request:

     OPTIONS sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKhjhs8ass877
     Max-Forwards: 70
     To: <sip:[email protected]>
     From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
     CSeq: 63104 OPTIONS
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Accept: application/sdp
     Content-Length: 0




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 67]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


11.2 Processing of OPTIONS Request

  The response to an OPTIONS is constructed using the standard rules
  for a SIP response as discussed in Section 8.2.6.  The response code
  chosen MUST be the same that would have been chosen had the request
  been an INVITE.  That is, a 200 (OK) would be returned if the UAS is
  ready to accept a call, a 486 (Busy Here) would be returned if the
  UAS is busy, etc.  This allows an OPTIONS request to be used to
  determine the basic state of a UAS, which can be an indication of
  whether the UAS will accept an INVITE request.

  An OPTIONS request received within a dialog generates a 200 (OK)
  response that is identical to one constructed outside a dialog and
  does not have any impact on the dialog.

  This use of OPTIONS has limitations due to the differences in proxy
  handling of OPTIONS and INVITE requests.  While a forked INVITE can
  result in multiple 200 (OK) responses being returned, a forked
  OPTIONS will only result in a single 200 (OK) response, since it is
  treated by proxies using the non-INVITE handling.  See Section 16.7
  for the normative details.

  If the response to an OPTIONS is generated by a proxy server, the
  proxy returns a 200 (OK), listing the capabilities of the server.
  The response does not contain a message body.

  Allow, Accept, Accept-Encoding, Accept-Language, and Supported header
  fields SHOULD be present in a 200 (OK) response to an OPTIONS
  request.  If the response is generated by a proxy, the Allow header
  field SHOULD be omitted as it is ambiguous since a proxy is method
  agnostic.  Contact header fields MAY be present in a 200 (OK)
  response and have the same semantics as in a 3xx response.  That is,
  they may list a set of alternative names and methods of reaching the
  user.  A Warning header field MAY be present.

  A message body MAY be sent, the type of which is determined by the
  Accept header field in the OPTIONS request (application/sdp is the
  default if the Accept header field is not present).  If the types
  include one that can describe media capabilities, the UAS SHOULD
  include a body in the response for that purpose.  Details on the
  construction of such a body in the case of application/sdp are
  described in [13].









Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 68]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example OPTIONS response generated by a UAS (corresponding to the
  request in Section 11.1):

     SIP/2.0 200 OK
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKhjhs8ass877
      ;received=192.0.2.4
     To: <sip:[email protected]>;tag=93810874
     From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
     CSeq: 63104 OPTIONS
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Contact: <mailto:[email protected]>
     Allow: INVITE, ACK, CANCEL, OPTIONS, BYE
     Accept: application/sdp
     Accept-Encoding: gzip
     Accept-Language: en
     Supported: foo
     Content-Type: application/sdp
     Content-Length: 274

     (SDP not shown)

12 Dialogs

  A key concept for a user agent is that of a dialog.  A dialog
  represents a peer-to-peer SIP relationship between two user agents
  that persists for some time.  The dialog facilitates sequencing of
  messages between the user agents and proper routing of requests
  between both of them.  The dialog represents a context in which to
  interpret SIP messages.  Section 8 discussed method independent UA
  processing for requests and responses outside of a dialog.  This
  section discusses how those requests and responses are used to
  construct a dialog, and then how subsequent requests and responses
  are sent within a dialog.

  A dialog is identified at each UA with a dialog ID, which consists of
  a Call-ID value, a local tag and a remote tag.  The dialog ID at each
  UA involved in the dialog is not the same.  Specifically, the local
  tag at one UA is identical to the remote tag at the peer UA.  The
  tags are opaque tokens that facilitate the generation of unique
  dialog IDs.

  A dialog ID is also associated with all responses and with any
  request that contains a tag in the To field.  The rules for computing
  the dialog ID of a message depend on whether the SIP element is a UAC
  or UAS.  For a UAC, the Call-ID value of the dialog ID is set to the
  Call-ID of the message, the remote tag is set to the tag in the To
  field of the message, and the local tag is set to the tag in the From



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 69]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  field of the message (these rules apply to both requests and
  responses).  As one would expect for a UAS, the Call-ID value of the
  dialog ID is set to the Call-ID of the message, the remote tag is set
  to the tag in the From field of the message, and the local tag is set
  to the tag in the To field of the message.

  A dialog contains certain pieces of state needed for further message
  transmissions within the dialog.  This state consists of the dialog
  ID, a local sequence number (used to order requests from the UA to
  its peer), a remote sequence number (used to order requests from its
  peer to the UA), a local URI, a remote URI, remote target, a boolean
  flag called "secure", and a route set, which is an ordered list of
  URIs.  The route set is the list of servers that need to be traversed
  to send a request to the peer.  A dialog can also be in the "early"
  state, which occurs when it is created with a provisional response,
  and then transition to the "confirmed" state when a 2xx final
  response arrives.  For other responses, or if no response arrives at
  all on that dialog, the early dialog terminates.

12.1 Creation of a Dialog

  Dialogs are created through the generation of non-failure responses
  to requests with specific methods.  Within this specification, only
  2xx and 101-199 responses with a To tag, where the request was
  INVITE, will establish a dialog.  A dialog established by a non-final
  response to a request is in the "early" state and it is called an
  early dialog.  Extensions MAY define other means for creating
  dialogs.  Section 13 gives more details that are specific to the
  INVITE method.  Here, we describe the process for creation of dialog
  state that is not dependent on the method.

  UAs MUST assign values to the dialog ID components as described
  below.

12.1.1 UAS behavior

  When a UAS responds to a request with a response that establishes a
  dialog (such as a 2xx to INVITE), the UAS MUST copy all Record-Route
  header field values from the request into the response (including the
  URIs, URI parameters, and any Record-Route header field parameters,
  whether they are known or unknown to the UAS) and MUST maintain the
  order of those values.  The UAS MUST add a Contact header field to
  the response.  The Contact header field contains an address where the
  UAS would like to be contacted for subsequent requests in the dialog
  (which includes the ACK for a 2xx response in the case of an INVITE).
  Generally, the host portion of this URI is the IP address or FQDN of
  the host.  The URI provided in the Contact header field MUST be a SIP
  or SIPS URI.  If the request that initiated the dialog contained a



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 70]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  SIPS URI in the Request-URI or in the top Record-Route header field
  value, if there was any, or the Contact header field if there was no
  Record-Route header field, the Contact header field in the response
  MUST be a SIPS URI.  The URI SHOULD have global scope (that is, the
  same URI can be used in messages outside this dialog).  The same way,
  the scope of the URI in the Contact header field of the INVITE is not
  limited to this dialog either.  It can therefore be used in messages
  to the UAC even outside this dialog.

  The UAS then constructs the state of the dialog.  This state MUST be
  maintained for the duration of the dialog.

  If the request arrived over TLS, and the Request-URI contained a SIPS
  URI, the "secure" flag is set to TRUE.

  The route set MUST be set to the list of URIs in the Record-Route
  header field from the request, taken in order and preserving all URI
  parameters.  If no Record-Route header field is present in the
  request, the route set MUST be set to the empty set.  This route set,
  even if empty, overrides any pre-existing route set for future
  requests in this dialog.  The remote target MUST be set to the URI
  from the Contact header field of the request.

  The remote sequence number MUST be set to the value of the sequence
  number in the CSeq header field of the request.  The local sequence
  number MUST be empty.  The call identifier component of the dialog ID
  MUST be set to the value of the Call-ID in the request.  The local
  tag component of the dialog ID MUST be set to the tag in the To field
  in the response to the request (which always includes a tag), and the
  remote tag component of the dialog ID MUST be set to the tag from the
  From field in the request.  A UAS MUST be prepared to receive a
  request without a tag in the From field, in which case the tag is
  considered to have a value of null.

     This is to maintain backwards compatibility with RFC 2543, which
     did not mandate From tags.

  The remote URI MUST be set to the URI in the From field, and the
  local URI MUST be set to the URI in the To field.

12.1.2 UAC Behavior

  When a UAC sends a request that can establish a dialog (such as an
  INVITE) it MUST provide a SIP or SIPS URI with global scope (i.e.,
  the same SIP URI can be used in messages outside this dialog) in the
  Contact header field of the request.  If the request has a Request-
  URI or a topmost Route header field value with a SIPS URI, the
  Contact header field MUST contain a SIPS URI.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 71]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  When a UAC receives a response that establishes a dialog, it
  constructs the state of the dialog.  This state MUST be maintained
  for the duration of the dialog.

  If the request was sent over TLS, and the Request-URI contained a
  SIPS URI, the "secure" flag is set to TRUE.

  The route set MUST be set to the list of URIs in the Record-Route
  header field from the response, taken in reverse order and preserving
  all URI parameters.  If no Record-Route header field is present in
  the response, the route set MUST be set to the empty set.  This route
  set, even if empty, overrides any pre-existing route set for future
  requests in this dialog.  The remote target MUST be set to the URI
  from the Contact header field of the response.

  The local sequence number MUST be set to the value of the sequence
  number in the CSeq header field of the request.  The remote sequence
  number MUST be empty (it is established when the remote UA sends a
  request within the dialog).  The call identifier component of the
  dialog ID MUST be set to the value of the Call-ID in the request.
  The local tag component of the dialog ID MUST be set to the tag in
  the From field in the request, and the remote tag component of the
  dialog ID MUST be set to the tag in the To field of the response.  A
  UAC MUST be prepared to receive a response without a tag in the To
  field, in which case the tag is considered to have a value of null.

     This is to maintain backwards compatibility with RFC 2543, which
     did not mandate To tags.

  The remote URI MUST be set to the URI in the To field, and the local
  URI MUST be set to the URI in the From field.

12.2 Requests within a Dialog

  Once a dialog has been established between two UAs, either of them
  MAY initiate new transactions as needed within the dialog.  The UA
  sending the request will take the UAC role for the transaction.  The
  UA receiving the request will take the UAS role.  Note that these may
  be different roles than the UAs held during the transaction that
  established the dialog.

  Requests within a dialog MAY contain Record-Route and Contact header
  fields.  However, these requests do not cause the dialog's route set
  to be modified, although they may modify the remote target URI.
  Specifically, requests that are not target refresh requests do not
  modify the dialog's remote target URI, and requests that are target
  refresh requests do.  For dialogs that have been established with an




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 72]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  INVITE, the only target refresh request defined is re-INVITE (see
  Section 14).  Other extensions may define different target refresh
  requests for dialogs established in other ways.

     Note that an ACK is NOT a target refresh request.

  Target refresh requests only update the dialog's remote target URI,
  and not the route set formed from the Record-Route.  Updating the
  latter would introduce severe backwards compatibility problems with
  RFC 2543-compliant systems.

12.2.1 UAC Behavior

12.2.1.1 Generating the Request

  A request within a dialog is constructed by using many of the
  components of the state stored as part of the dialog.

  The URI in the To field of the request MUST be set to the remote URI
  from the dialog state.  The tag in the To header field of the request
  MUST be set to the remote tag of the dialog ID.  The From URI of the
  request MUST be set to the local URI from the dialog state.  The tag
  in the From header field of the request MUST be set to the local tag
  of the dialog ID.  If the value of the remote or local tags is null,
  the tag parameter MUST be omitted from the To or From header fields,
  respectively.

     Usage of the URI from the To and From fields in the original
     request within subsequent requests is done for backwards
     compatibility with RFC 2543, which used the URI for dialog
     identification.  In this specification, only the tags are used for
     dialog identification.  It is expected that mandatory reflection
     of the original To and From URI in mid-dialog requests will be
     deprecated in a subsequent revision of this specification.

  The Call-ID of the request MUST be set to the Call-ID of the dialog.
  Requests within a dialog MUST contain strictly monotonically
  increasing and contiguous CSeq sequence numbers (increasing-by-one)
  in each direction (excepting ACK and CANCEL of course, whose numbers
  equal the requests being acknowledged or cancelled).  Therefore, if
  the local sequence number is not empty, the value of the local
  sequence number MUST be incremented by one, and this value MUST be
  placed into the CSeq header field.  If the local sequence number is
  empty, an initial value MUST be chosen using the guidelines of
  Section 8.1.1.5.  The method field in the CSeq header field value
  MUST match the method of the request.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 73]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     With a length of 32 bits, a client could generate, within a single
     call, one request a second for about 136 years before needing to
     wrap around.  The initial value of the sequence number is chosen
     so that subsequent requests within the same call will not wrap
     around.  A non-zero initial value allows clients to use a time-
     based initial sequence number.  A client could, for example,
     choose the 31 most significant bits of a 32-bit second clock as an
     initial sequence number.

  The UAC uses the remote target and route set to build the Request-URI
  and Route header field of the request.

  If the route set is empty, the UAC MUST place the remote target URI
  into the Request-URI.  The UAC MUST NOT add a Route header field to
  the request.

  If the route set is not empty, and the first URI in the route set
  contains the lr parameter (see Section 19.1.1), the UAC MUST place
  the remote target URI into the Request-URI and MUST include a Route
  header field containing the route set values in order, including all
  parameters.

  If the route set is not empty, and its first URI does not contain the
  lr parameter, the UAC MUST place the first URI from the route set
  into the Request-URI, stripping any parameters that are not allowed
  in a Request-URI.  The UAC MUST add a Route header field containing
  the remainder of the route set values in order, including all
  parameters.  The UAC MUST then place the remote target URI into the
  Route header field as the last value.

  For example, if the remote target is sip:user@remoteua and the route
  set contains:

     <sip:proxy1>,<sip:proxy2>,<sip:proxy3;lr>,<sip:proxy4>

  The request will be formed with the following Request-URI and Route
  header field:

  METHOD sip:proxy1
  Route: <sip:proxy2>,<sip:proxy3;lr>,<sip:proxy4>,<sip:user@remoteua>

     If the first URI of the route set does not contain the lr
     parameter, the proxy indicated does not understand the routing
     mechanisms described in this document and will act as specified in
     RFC 2543, replacing the Request-URI with the first Route header
     field value it receives while forwarding the message.  Placing the
     Request-URI at the end of the Route header field preserves the




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 74]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     information in that Request-URI across the strict router (it will
     be returned to the Request-URI when the request reaches a loose-
     router).

  A UAC SHOULD include a Contact header field in any target refresh
  requests within a dialog, and unless there is a need to change it,
  the URI SHOULD be the same as used in previous requests within the
  dialog.  If the "secure" flag is true, that URI MUST be a SIPS URI.
  As discussed in Section 12.2.2, a Contact header field in a target
  refresh request updates the remote target URI.  This allows a UA to
  provide a new contact address, should its address change during the
  duration of the dialog.

  However, requests that are not target refresh requests do not affect
  the remote target URI for the dialog.

  The rest of the request is formed as described in Section 8.1.1.

  Once the request has been constructed, the address of the server is
  computed and the request is sent, using the same procedures for
  requests outside of a dialog (Section 8.1.2).

     The procedures in Section 8.1.2 will normally result in the
     request being sent to the address indicated by the topmost Route
     header field value or the Request-URI if no Route header field is
     present.  Subject to certain restrictions, they allow the request
     to be sent to an alternate address (such as a default outbound
     proxy not represented in the route set).

12.2.1.2 Processing the Responses

  The UAC will receive responses to the request from the transaction
  layer.  If the client transaction returns a timeout, this is treated
  as a 408 (Request Timeout) response.

  The behavior of a UAC that receives a 3xx response for a request sent
  within a dialog is the same as if the request had been sent outside a
  dialog.  This behavior is described in Section 8.1.3.4.

     Note, however, that when the UAC tries alternative locations, it
     still uses the route set for the dialog to build the Route header
     of the request.

  When a UAC receives a 2xx response to a target refresh request, it
  MUST replace the dialog's remote target URI with the URI from the
  Contact header field in that response, if present.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 75]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If the response for a request within a dialog is a 481
  (Call/Transaction Does Not Exist) or a 408 (Request Timeout), the UAC
  SHOULD terminate the dialog.  A UAC SHOULD also terminate a dialog if
  no response at all is received for the request (the client
  transaction would inform the TU about the timeout.)

     For INVITE initiated dialogs, terminating the dialog consists of
     sending a BYE.

12.2.2 UAS Behavior

  Requests sent within a dialog, as any other requests, are atomic.  If
  a particular request is accepted by the UAS, all the state changes
  associated with it are performed.  If the request is rejected, none
  of the state changes are performed.

     Note that some requests, such as INVITEs, affect several pieces of
     state.

  The UAS will receive the request from the transaction layer.  If the
  request has a tag in the To header field, the UAS core computes the
  dialog identifier corresponding to the request and compares it with
  existing dialogs.  If there is a match, this is a mid-dialog request.
  In that case, the UAS first applies the same processing rules for
  requests outside of a dialog, discussed in Section 8.2.

  If the request has a tag in the To header field, but the dialog
  identifier does not match any existing dialogs, the UAS may have
  crashed and restarted, or it may have received a request for a
  different (possibly failed) UAS (the UASs can construct the To tags
  so that a UAS can identify that the tag was for a UAS for which it is
  providing recovery).  Another possibility is that the incoming
  request has been simply misrouted.  Based on the To tag, the UAS MAY
  either accept or reject the request.  Accepting the request for
  acceptable To tags provides robustness, so that dialogs can persist
  even through crashes.  UAs wishing to support this capability must
  take into consideration some issues such as choosing monotonically
  increasing CSeq sequence numbers even across reboots, reconstructing
  the route set, and accepting out-of-range RTP timestamps and sequence
  numbers.

  If the UAS wishes to reject the request because it does not wish to
  recreate the dialog, it MUST respond to the request with a 481
  (Call/Transaction Does Not Exist) status code and pass that to the
  server transaction.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 76]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Requests that do not change in any way the state of a dialog may be
  received within a dialog (for example, an OPTIONS request).  They are
  processed as if they had been received outside the dialog.

  If the remote sequence number is empty, it MUST be set to the value
  of the sequence number in the CSeq header field value in the request.
  If the remote sequence number was not empty, but the sequence number
  of the request is lower than the remote sequence number, the request
  is out of order and MUST be rejected with a 500 (Server Internal
  Error) response.  If the remote sequence number was not empty, and
  the sequence number of the request is greater than the remote
  sequence number, the request is in order.  It is possible for the
  CSeq sequence number to be higher than the remote sequence number by
  more than one.  This is not an error condition, and a UAS SHOULD be
  prepared to receive and process requests with CSeq values more than
  one higher than the previous received request.  The UAS MUST then set
  the remote sequence number to the value of the sequence number in the
  CSeq header field value in the request.

     If a proxy challenges a request generated by the UAC, the UAC has
     to resubmit the request with credentials.  The resubmitted request
     will have a new CSeq number.  The UAS will never see the first
     request, and thus, it will notice a gap in the CSeq number space.
     Such a gap does not represent any error condition.

  When a UAS receives a target refresh request, it MUST replace the
  dialog's remote target URI with the URI from the Contact header field
  in that request, if present.

12.3 Termination of a Dialog

  Independent of the method, if a request outside of a dialog generates
  a non-2xx final response, any early dialogs created through
  provisional responses to that request are terminated.  The mechanism
  for terminating confirmed dialogs is method specific.  In this
  specification, the BYE method terminates a session and the dialog
  associated with it.  See Section 15 for details.

13 Initiating a Session

13.1 Overview

  When a user agent client desires to initiate a session (for example,
  audio, video, or a game), it formulates an INVITE request.  The
  INVITE request asks a server to establish a session.  This request
  may be forwarded by proxies, eventually arriving at one or more UAS
  that can potentially accept the invitation.  These UASs will
  frequently need to query the user about whether to accept the



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 77]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  invitation.  After some time, those UASs can accept the invitation
  (meaning the session is to be established) by sending a 2xx response.
  If the invitation is not accepted, a 3xx, 4xx, 5xx or 6xx response is
  sent, depending on the reason for the rejection.  Before sending a
  final response, the UAS can also send provisional responses (1xx) to
  advise the UAC of progress in contacting the called user.

  After possibly receiving one or more provisional responses, the UAC
  will get one or more 2xx responses or one non-2xx final response.
  Because of the protracted amount of time it can take to receive final
  responses to INVITE, the reliability mechanisms for INVITE
  transactions differ from those of other requests (like OPTIONS).
  Once it receives a final response, the UAC needs to send an ACK for
  every final response it receives.  The procedure for sending this ACK
  depends on the type of response.  For final responses between 300 and
  699, the ACK processing is done in the transaction layer and follows
  one set of rules (See Section 17).  For 2xx responses, the ACK is
  generated by the UAC core.

  A 2xx response to an INVITE establishes a session, and it also
  creates a dialog between the UA that issued the INVITE and the UA
  that generated the 2xx response.  Therefore, when multiple 2xx
  responses are received from different remote UAs (because the INVITE
  forked), each 2xx establishes a different dialog.  All these dialogs
  are part of the same call.

  This section provides details on the establishment of a session using
  INVITE.  A UA that supports INVITE MUST also support ACK, CANCEL and
  BYE.

13.2 UAC Processing

13.2.1 Creating the Initial INVITE

  Since the initial INVITE represents a request outside of a dialog,
  its construction follows the procedures of Section 8.1.1.  Additional
  processing is required for the specific case of INVITE.

  An Allow header field (Section 20.5) SHOULD be present in the INVITE.
  It indicates what methods can be invoked within a dialog, on the UA
  sending the INVITE, for the duration of the dialog.  For example, a
  UA capable of receiving INFO requests within a dialog [34] SHOULD
  include an Allow header field listing the INFO method.

  A Supported header field (Section 20.37) SHOULD be present in the
  INVITE.  It enumerates all the extensions understood by the UAC.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 78]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  An Accept (Section 20.1) header field MAY be present in the INVITE.
  It indicates which Content-Types are acceptable to the UA, in both
  the response received by it, and in any subsequent requests sent to
  it within dialogs established by the INVITE.  The Accept header field
  is especially useful for indicating support of various session
  description formats.

  The UAC MAY add an Expires header field (Section 20.19) to limit the
  validity of the invitation.  If the time indicated in the Expires
  header field is reached and no final answer for the INVITE has been
  received, the UAC core SHOULD generate a CANCEL request for the
  INVITE, as per Section 9.

  A UAC MAY also find it useful to add, among others, Subject (Section
  20.36), Organization (Section 20.25) and User-Agent (Section 20.41)
  header fields.  They all contain information related to the INVITE.

  The UAC MAY choose to add a message body to the INVITE.  Section
  8.1.1.10 deals with how to construct the header fields -- Content-
  Type among others -- needed to describe the message body.

  There are special rules for message bodies that contain a session
  description - their corresponding Content-Disposition is "session".
  SIP uses an offer/answer model where one UA sends a session
  description, called the offer, which contains a proposed description
  of the session.  The offer indicates the desired communications means
  (audio, video, games), parameters of those means (such as codec
  types) and addresses for receiving media from the answerer.  The
  other UA responds with another session description, called the
  answer, which indicates which communications means are accepted, the
  parameters that apply to those means, and addresses for receiving
  media from the offerer. An offer/answer exchange is within the
  context of a dialog, so that if a SIP INVITE results in multiple
  dialogs, each is a separate offer/answer exchange.  The offer/answer
  model defines restrictions on when offers and answers can be made
  (for example, you cannot make a new offer while one is in progress).
  This results in restrictions on where the offers and answers can
  appear in SIP messages.  In this specification, offers and answers
  can only appear in INVITE requests and responses, and ACK.  The usage
  of offers and answers is further restricted.  For the initial INVITE
  transaction, the rules are:

     o  The initial offer MUST be in either an INVITE or, if not there,
        in the first reliable non-failure message from the UAS back to
        the UAC.  In this specification, that is the final 2xx
        response.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 79]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     o  If the initial offer is in an INVITE, the answer MUST be in a
        reliable non-failure message from UAS back to UAC which is
        correlated to that INVITE.  For this specification, that is
        only the final 2xx response to that INVITE.  That same exact
        answer MAY also be placed in any provisional responses sent
        prior to the answer.  The UAC MUST treat the first session
        description it receives as the answer, and MUST ignore any
        session descriptions in subsequent responses to the initial
        INVITE.

     o  If the initial offer is in the first reliable non-failure
        message from the UAS back to UAC, the answer MUST be in the
        acknowledgement for that message (in this specification, ACK
        for a 2xx response).

     o  After having sent or received an answer to the first offer, the
        UAC MAY generate subsequent offers in requests based on rules
        specified for that method, but only if it has received answers
        to any previous offers, and has not sent any offers to which it
        hasn't gotten an answer.

     o  Once the UAS has sent or received an answer to the initial
        offer, it MUST NOT generate subsequent offers in any responses
        to the initial INVITE.  This means that a UAS based on this
        specification alone can never generate subsequent offers until
        completion of the initial transaction.

  Concretely, the above rules specify two exchanges for UAs compliant
  to this specification alone - the offer is in the INVITE, and the
  answer in the 2xx (and possibly in a 1xx as well, with the same
  value), or the offer is in the 2xx, and the answer is in the ACK.
  All user agents that support INVITE MUST support these two exchanges.

  The Session Description Protocol (SDP) (RFC 2327 [1]) MUST be
  supported by all user agents as a means to describe sessions, and its
  usage for constructing offers and answers MUST follow the procedures
  defined in [13].

  The restrictions of the offer-answer model just described only apply
  to bodies whose Content-Disposition header field value is "session".
  Therefore, it is possible that both the INVITE and the ACK contain a
  body message (for example, the INVITE carries a photo (Content-
  Disposition: render) and the ACK a session description (Content-
  Disposition: session)).

  If the Content-Disposition header field is missing, bodies of
  Content-Type application/sdp imply the disposition "session", while
  other content types imply "render".



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 80]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Once the INVITE has been created, the UAC follows the procedures
  defined for sending requests outside of a dialog (Section 8).  This
  results in the construction of a client transaction that will
  ultimately send the request and deliver responses to the UAC.

13.2.2 Processing INVITE Responses

  Once the INVITE has been passed to the INVITE client transaction, the
  UAC waits for responses for the INVITE.  If the INVITE client
  transaction returns a timeout rather than a response the TU acts as
  if a 408 (Request Timeout) response had been received, as described
  in Section 8.1.3.

13.2.2.1 1xx Responses

  Zero, one or multiple provisional responses may arrive before one or
  more final responses are received.  Provisional responses for an
  INVITE request can create "early dialogs".  If a provisional response
  has a tag in the To field, and if the dialog ID of the response does
  not match an existing dialog, one is constructed using the procedures
  defined in Section 12.1.2.

  The early dialog will only be needed if the UAC needs to send a
  request to its peer within the dialog before the initial INVITE
  transaction completes.  Header fields present in a provisional
  response are applicable as long as the dialog is in the early state
  (for example, an Allow header field in a provisional response
  contains the methods that can be used in the dialog while this is in
  the early state).

13.2.2.2 3xx Responses

  A 3xx response may contain one or more Contact header field values
  providing new addresses where the callee might be reachable.
  Depending on the status code of the 3xx response (see Section 21.3),
  the UAC MAY choose to try those new addresses.

13.2.2.3 4xx, 5xx and 6xx Responses

  A single non-2xx final response may be received for the INVITE.  4xx,
  5xx and 6xx responses may contain a Contact header field value
  indicating the location where additional information about the error
  can be found.  Subsequent final responses (which would only arrive
  under error conditions) MUST be ignored.

  All early dialogs are considered terminated upon reception of the
  non-2xx final response.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 81]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  After having received the non-2xx final response the UAC core
  considers the INVITE transaction completed.  The INVITE client
  transaction handles the generation of ACKs for the response (see
  Section 17).

13.2.2.4 2xx Responses

  Multiple 2xx responses may arrive at the UAC for a single INVITE
  request due to a forking proxy.  Each response is distinguished by
  the tag parameter in the To header field, and each represents a
  distinct dialog, with a distinct dialog identifier.

  If the dialog identifier in the 2xx response matches the dialog
  identifier of an existing dialog, the dialog MUST be transitioned to
  the "confirmed" state, and the route set for the dialog MUST be
  recomputed based on the 2xx response using the procedures of Section
  12.2.1.2.  Otherwise, a new dialog in the "confirmed" state MUST be
  constructed using the procedures of Section 12.1.2.

     Note that the only piece of state that is recomputed is the route
     set.  Other pieces of state such as the highest sequence numbers
     (remote and local) sent within the dialog are not recomputed.  The
     route set only is recomputed for backwards compatibility.  RFC
     2543 did not mandate mirroring of the Record-Route header field in
     a 1xx, only 2xx.  However, we cannot update the entire state of
     the dialog, since mid-dialog requests may have been sent within
     the early dialog, modifying the sequence numbers, for example.

  The UAC core MUST generate an ACK request for each 2xx received from
  the transaction layer.  The header fields of the ACK are constructed
  in the same way as for any request sent within a dialog (see Section
  12) with the exception of the CSeq and the header fields related to
  authentication.  The sequence number of the CSeq header field MUST be
  the same as the INVITE being acknowledged, but the CSeq method MUST
  be ACK.  The ACK MUST contain the same credentials as the INVITE.  If
  the 2xx contains an offer (based on the rules above), the ACK MUST
  carry an answer in its body.  If the offer in the 2xx response is not
  acceptable, the UAC core MUST generate a valid answer in the ACK and
  then send a BYE immediately.

  Once the ACK has been constructed, the procedures of [4] are used to
  determine the destination address, port and transport.  However, the
  request is passed to the transport layer directly for transmission,
  rather than a client transaction.  This is because the UAC core
  handles retransmissions of the ACK, not the transaction layer.  The
  ACK MUST be passed to the client transport every time a
  retransmission of the 2xx final response that triggered the ACK
  arrives.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 82]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The UAC core considers the INVITE transaction completed 64*T1 seconds
  after the reception of the first 2xx response.  At this point all the
  early dialogs that have not transitioned to established dialogs are
  terminated.  Once the INVITE transaction is considered completed by
  the UAC core, no more new 2xx responses are expected to arrive.

  If, after acknowledging any 2xx response to an INVITE, the UAC does
  not want to continue with that dialog, then the UAC MUST terminate
  the dialog by sending a BYE request as described in Section 15.

13.3 UAS Processing

13.3.1 Processing of the INVITE

  The UAS core will receive INVITE requests from the transaction layer.
  It first performs the request processing procedures of Section 8.2,
  which are applied for both requests inside and outside of a dialog.

  Assuming these processing states are completed without generating a
  response, the UAS core performs the additional processing steps:

     1. If the request is an INVITE that contains an Expires header
        field, the UAS core sets a timer for the number of seconds
        indicated in the header field value.  When the timer fires, the
        invitation is considered to be expired.  If the invitation
        expires before the UAS has generated a final response, a 487
        (Request Terminated) response SHOULD be generated.

     2. If the request is a mid-dialog request, the method-independent
        processing described in Section 12.2.2 is first applied.  It
        might also modify the session; Section 14 provides details.

     3. If the request has a tag in the To header field but the dialog
        identifier does not match any of the existing dialogs, the UAS
        may have crashed and restarted, or may have received a request
        for a different (possibly failed) UAS.  Section 12.2.2 provides
        guidelines to achieve a robust behavior under such a situation.

  Processing from here forward assumes that the INVITE is outside of a
  dialog, and is thus for the purposes of establishing a new session.

  The INVITE may contain a session description, in which case the UAS
  is being presented with an offer for that session.  It is possible
  that the user is already a participant in that session, even though
  the INVITE is outside of a dialog.  This can happen when a user is
  invited to the same multicast conference by multiple other
  participants.  If desired, the UAS MAY use identifiers within the
  session description to detect this duplication.  For example, SDP



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 83]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  contains a session id and version number in the origin (o) field.  If
  the user is already a member of the session, and the session
  parameters contained in the session description have not changed, the
  UAS MAY silently accept the INVITE (that is, send a 2xx response
  without prompting the user).

  If the INVITE does not contain a session description, the UAS is
  being asked to participate in a session, and the UAC has asked that
  the UAS provide the offer of the session.  It MUST provide the offer
  in its first non-failure reliable message back to the UAC.  In this
  specification, that is a 2xx response to the INVITE.

  The UAS can indicate progress, accept, redirect, or reject the
  invitation.  In all of these cases, it formulates a response using
  the procedures described in Section 8.2.6.

13.3.1.1 Progress

  If the UAS is not able to answer the invitation immediately, it can
  choose to indicate some kind of progress to the UAC (for example, an
  indication that a phone is ringing).  This is accomplished with a
  provisional response between 101 and 199.  These provisional
  responses establish early dialogs and therefore follow the procedures
  of Section 12.1.1 in addition to those of Section 8.2.6.  A UAS MAY
  send as many provisional responses as it likes.  Each of these MUST
  indicate the same dialog ID.  However, these will not be delivered
  reliably.

  If the UAS desires an extended period of time to answer the INVITE,
  it will need to ask for an "extension" in order to prevent proxies
  from canceling the transaction.  A proxy has the option of canceling
  a transaction when there is a gap of 3 minutes between responses in a
  transaction.  To prevent cancellation, the UAS MUST send a non-100
  provisional response at every minute, to handle the possibility of
  lost provisional responses.

     An INVITE transaction can go on for extended durations when the
     user is placed on hold, or when interworking with PSTN systems
     which allow communications to take place without answering the
     call.  The latter is common in Interactive Voice Response (IVR)
     systems.

13.3.1.2 The INVITE is Redirected

  If the UAS decides to redirect the call, a 3xx response is sent.  A
  300 (Multiple Choices), 301 (Moved Permanently) or 302 (Moved
  Temporarily) response SHOULD contain a Contact header field




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 84]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  containing one or more URIs of new addresses to be tried.  The
  response is passed to the INVITE server transaction, which will deal
  with its retransmissions.

13.3.1.3 The INVITE is Rejected

  A common scenario occurs when the callee is currently not willing or
  able to take additional calls at this end system.  A 486 (Busy Here)
  SHOULD be returned in such a scenario.  If the UAS knows that no
  other end system will be able to accept this call, a 600 (Busy
  Everywhere) response SHOULD be sent instead.  However, it is unlikely
  that a UAS will be able to know this in general, and thus this
  response will not usually be used.  The response is passed to the
  INVITE server transaction, which will deal with its retransmissions.

  A UAS rejecting an offer contained in an INVITE SHOULD return a 488
  (Not Acceptable Here) response.  Such a response SHOULD include a
  Warning header field value explaining why the offer was rejected.

13.3.1.4 The INVITE is Accepted

  The UAS core generates a 2xx response.  This response establishes a
  dialog, and therefore follows the procedures of Section 12.1.1 in
  addition to those of Section 8.2.6.

  A 2xx response to an INVITE SHOULD contain the Allow header field and
  the Supported header field, and MAY contain the Accept header field.
  Including these header fields allows the UAC to determine the
  features and extensions supported by the UAS for the duration of the
  call, without probing.

  If the INVITE request contained an offer, and the UAS had not yet
  sent an answer, the 2xx MUST contain an answer.  If the INVITE did
  not contain an offer, the 2xx MUST contain an offer if the UAS had
  not yet sent an offer.

  Once the response has been constructed, it is passed to the INVITE
  server transaction.  Note, however, that the INVITE server
  transaction will be destroyed as soon as it receives this final
  response and passes it to the transport.  Therefore, it is necessary
  to periodically pass the response directly to the transport until the
  ACK arrives.  The 2xx response is passed to the transport with an
  interval that starts at T1 seconds and doubles for each
  retransmission until it reaches T2 seconds (T1 and T2 are defined in
  Section 17).  Response retransmissions cease when an ACK request for
  the response is received.  This is independent of whatever transport
  protocols are used to send the response.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 85]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Since 2xx is retransmitted end-to-end, there may be hops between
     UAS and UAC that are UDP.  To ensure reliable delivery across
     these hops, the response is retransmitted periodically even if the
     transport at the UAS is reliable.

  If the server retransmits the 2xx response for 64*T1 seconds without
  receiving an ACK, the dialog is confirmed, but the session SHOULD be
  terminated.  This is accomplished with a BYE, as described in Section
  15.

14 Modifying an Existing Session

  A successful INVITE request (see Section 13) establishes both a
  dialog between two user agents and a session using the offer-answer
  model.  Section 12 explains how to modify an existing dialog using a
  target refresh request (for example, changing the remote target URI
  of the dialog).  This section describes how to modify the actual
  session.  This modification can involve changing addresses or ports,
  adding a media stream, deleting a media stream, and so on.  This is
  accomplished by sending a new INVITE request within the same dialog
  that established the session.  An INVITE request sent within an
  existing dialog is known as a re-INVITE.

     Note that a single re-INVITE can modify the dialog and the
     parameters of the session at the same time.

  Either the caller or callee can modify an existing session.

  The behavior of a UA on detection of media failure is a matter of
  local policy.  However, automated generation of re-INVITE or BYE is
  NOT RECOMMENDED to avoid flooding the network with traffic when there
  is congestion.  In any case, if these messages are sent
  automatically, they SHOULD be sent after some randomized interval.

     Note that the paragraph above refers to automatically generated
     BYEs and re-INVITEs.  If the user hangs up upon media failure, the
     UA would send a BYE request as usual.

14.1 UAC Behavior

  The same offer-answer model that applies to session descriptions in
  INVITEs (Section 13.2.1) applies to re-INVITEs.  As a result, a UAC
  that wants to add a media stream, for example, will create a new
  offer that contains this media stream, and send that in an INVITE
  request to its peer.  It is important to note that the full
  description of the session, not just the change, is sent.  This
  supports stateless session processing in various elements, and
  supports failover and recovery capabilities.  Of course, a UAC MAY



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 86]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  send a re-INVITE with no session description, in which case the first
  reliable non-failure response to the re-INVITE will contain the offer
  (in this specification, that is a 2xx response).

  If the session description format has the capability for version
  numbers, the offerer SHOULD indicate that the version of the session
  description has changed.

  The To, From, Call-ID, CSeq, and Request-URI of a re-INVITE are set
  following the same rules as for regular requests within an existing
  dialog, described in Section 12.

  A UAC MAY choose not to add an Alert-Info header field or a body with
  Content-Disposition "alert" to re-INVITEs because UASs do not
  typically alert the user upon reception of a re-INVITE.

  Unlike an INVITE, which can fork, a re-INVITE will never fork, and
  therefore, only ever generate a single final response.  The reason a
  re-INVITE will never fork is that the Request-URI identifies the
  target as the UA instance it established the dialog with, rather than
  identifying an address-of-record for the user.

  Note that a UAC MUST NOT initiate a new INVITE transaction within a
  dialog while another INVITE transaction is in progress in either
  direction.

     1. If there is an ongoing INVITE client transaction, the TU MUST
        wait until the transaction reaches the completed or terminated
        state before initiating the new INVITE.

     2. If there is an ongoing INVITE server transaction, the TU MUST
        wait until the transaction reaches the confirmed or terminated
        state before initiating the new INVITE.

  However, a UA MAY initiate a regular transaction while an INVITE
  transaction is in progress.  A UA MAY also initiate an INVITE
  transaction while a regular transaction is in progress.

  If a UA receives a non-2xx final response to a re-INVITE, the session
  parameters MUST remain unchanged, as if no re-INVITE had been issued.
  Note that, as stated in Section 12.2.1.2, if the non-2xx final
  response is a 481 (Call/Transaction Does Not Exist), or a 408
  (Request Timeout), or no response at all is received for the re-
  INVITE (that is, a timeout is returned by the INVITE client
  transaction), the UAC will terminate the dialog.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 87]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If a UAC receives a 491 response to a re-INVITE, it SHOULD start a
  timer with a value T chosen as follows:

     1. If the UAC is the owner of the Call-ID of the dialog ID
        (meaning it generated the value), T has a randomly chosen value
        between 2.1 and 4 seconds in units of 10 ms.

     2. If the UAC is not the owner of the Call-ID of the dialog ID, T
        has a randomly chosen value of between 0 and 2 seconds in units
        of 10 ms.

  When the timer fires, the UAC SHOULD attempt the re-INVITE once more,
  if it still desires for that session modification to take place.  For
  example, if the call was already hung up with a BYE, the re-INVITE
  would not take place.

  The rules for transmitting a re-INVITE and for generating an ACK for
  a 2xx response to re-INVITE are the same as for the initial INVITE
  (Section 13.2.1).

14.2 UAS Behavior

  Section 13.3.1 describes the procedure for distinguishing incoming
  re-INVITEs from incoming initial INVITEs and handling a re-INVITE for
  an existing dialog.

  A UAS that receives a second INVITE before it sends the final
  response to a first INVITE with a lower CSeq sequence number on the
  same dialog MUST return a 500 (Server Internal Error) response to the
  second INVITE and MUST include a Retry-After header field with a
  randomly chosen value of between 0 and 10 seconds.

  A UAS that receives an INVITE on a dialog while an INVITE it had sent
  on that dialog is in progress MUST return a 491 (Request Pending)
  response to the received INVITE.

  If a UA receives a re-INVITE for an existing dialog, it MUST check
  any version identifiers in the session description or, if there are
  no version identifiers, the content of the session description to see
  if it has changed.  If the session description has changed, the UAS
  MUST adjust the session parameters accordingly, possibly after asking
  the user for confirmation.

     Versioning of the session description can be used to accommodate
     the capabilities of new arrivals to a conference, add or delete
     media, or change from a unicast to a multicast conference.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 88]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If the new session description is not acceptable, the UAS can reject
  it by returning a 488 (Not Acceptable Here) response for the re-
  INVITE.  This response SHOULD include a Warning header field.

  If a UAS generates a 2xx response and never receives an ACK, it
  SHOULD generate a BYE to terminate the dialog.

  A UAS MAY choose not to generate 180 (Ringing) responses for a re-
  INVITE because UACs do not typically render this information to the
  user.  For the same reason, UASs MAY choose not to use an Alert-Info
  header field or a body with Content-Disposition "alert" in responses
  to a re-INVITE.

  A UAS providing an offer in a 2xx (because the INVITE did not contain
  an offer) SHOULD construct the offer as if the UAS were making a
  brand new call, subject to the constraints of sending an offer that
  updates an existing session, as described in [13] in the case of SDP.
  Specifically, this means that it SHOULD include as many media formats
  and media types that the UA is willing to support.  The UAS MUST
  ensure that the session description overlaps with its previous
  session description in media formats, transports, or other parameters
  that require support from the peer.  This is to avoid the need for
  the peer to reject the session description.  If, however, it is
  unacceptable to the UAC, the UAC SHOULD generate an answer with a
  valid session description, and then send a BYE to terminate the
  session.

15 Terminating a Session

  This section describes the procedures for terminating a session
  established by SIP.  The state of the session and the state of the
  dialog are very closely related.  When a session is initiated with an
  INVITE, each 1xx or 2xx response from a distinct UAS creates a
  dialog, and if that response completes the offer/answer exchange, it
  also creates a session.  As a result, each session is "associated"
  with a single dialog - the one which resulted in its creation.  If an
  initial INVITE generates a non-2xx final response, that terminates
  all sessions (if any) and all dialogs (if any) that were created
  through responses to the request.  By virtue of completing the
  transaction, a non-2xx final response also prevents further sessions
  from being created as a result of the INVITE.  The BYE request is
  used to terminate a specific session or attempted session.  In this
  case, the specific session is the one with the peer UA on the other
  side of the dialog.  When a BYE is received on a dialog, any session
  associated with that dialog SHOULD terminate.  A UA MUST NOT send a
  BYE outside of a dialog.  The caller's UA MAY send a BYE for either
  confirmed or early dialogs, and the callee's UA MAY send a BYE on
  confirmed dialogs, but MUST NOT send a BYE on early dialogs.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 89]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  However, the callee's UA MUST NOT send a BYE on a confirmed dialog
  until it has received an ACK for its 2xx response or until the server
  transaction times out.  If no SIP extensions have defined other
  application layer states associated with the dialog, the BYE also
  terminates the dialog.

  The impact of a non-2xx final response to INVITE on dialogs and
  sessions makes the use of CANCEL attractive.  The CANCEL attempts to
  force a non-2xx response to the INVITE (in particular, a 487).
  Therefore, if a UAC wishes to give up on its call attempt entirely,
  it can send a CANCEL.  If the INVITE results in 2xx final response(s)
  to the INVITE, this means that a UAS accepted the invitation while
  the CANCEL was in progress.  The UAC MAY continue with the sessions
  established by any 2xx responses, or MAY terminate them with BYE.

     The notion of "hanging up" is not well defined within SIP.  It is
     specific to a particular, albeit common, user interface.
     Typically, when the user hangs up, it indicates a desire to
     terminate the attempt to establish a session, and to terminate any
     sessions already created.  For the caller's UA, this would imply a
     CANCEL request if the initial INVITE has not generated a final
     response, and a BYE to all confirmed dialogs after a final
     response.  For the callee's UA, it would typically imply a BYE;
     presumably, when the user picked up the phone, a 2xx was
     generated, and so hanging up would result in a BYE after the ACK
     is received.  This does not mean a user cannot hang up before
     receipt of the ACK, it just means that the software in his phone
     needs to maintain state for a short while in order to clean up
     properly.  If the particular UI allows for the user to reject a
     call before its answered, a 403 (Forbidden) is a good way to
     express that.  As per the rules above, a BYE can't be sent.

15.1 Terminating a Session with a BYE Request

15.1.1 UAC Behavior

  A BYE request is constructed as would any other request within a
  dialog, as described in Section 12.

  Once the BYE is constructed, the UAC core creates a new non-INVITE
  client transaction, and passes it the BYE request.  The UAC MUST
  consider the session terminated (and therefore stop sending or
  listening for media) as soon as the BYE request is passed to the
  client transaction.  If the response for the BYE is a 481
  (Call/Transaction Does Not Exist) or a 408 (Request Timeout) or no






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 90]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  response at all is received for the BYE (that is, a timeout is
  returned by the client transaction), the UAC MUST consider the
  session and the dialog terminated.

15.1.2 UAS Behavior

  A UAS first processes the BYE request according to the general UAS
  processing described in Section 8.2.  A UAS core receiving a BYE
  request checks if it matches an existing dialog.  If the BYE does not
  match an existing dialog, the UAS core SHOULD generate a 481
  (Call/Transaction Does Not Exist) response and pass that to the
  server transaction.

     This rule means that a BYE sent without tags by a UAC will be
     rejected.  This is a change from RFC 2543, which allowed BYE
     without tags.

  A UAS core receiving a BYE request for an existing dialog MUST follow
  the procedures of Section 12.2.2 to process the request.  Once done,
  the UAS SHOULD terminate the session (and therefore stop sending and
  listening for media).  The only case where it can elect not to are
  multicast sessions, where participation is possible even if the other
  participant in the dialog has terminated its involvement in the
  session.  Whether or not it ends its participation on the session,
  the UAS core MUST generate a 2xx response to the BYE, and MUST pass
  that to the server transaction for transmission.

  The UAS MUST still respond to any pending requests received for that
  dialog.  It is RECOMMENDED that a 487 (Request Terminated) response
  be generated to those pending requests.

16 Proxy Behavior

16.1 Overview

  SIP proxies are elements that route SIP requests to user agent
  servers and SIP responses to user agent clients.  A request may
  traverse several proxies on its way to a UAS.  Each will make routing
  decisions, modifying the request before forwarding it to the next
  element.  Responses will route through the same set of proxies
  traversed by the request in the reverse order.

  Being a proxy is a logical role for a SIP element.  When a request
  arrives, an element that can play the role of a proxy first decides
  if it needs to respond to the request on its own.  For instance, the
  request may be malformed or the element may need credentials from the
  client before acting as a proxy.  The element MAY respond with any




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 91]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  appropriate error code.  When responding directly to a request, the
  element is playing the role of a UAS and MUST behave as described in
  Section 8.2.

  A proxy can operate in either a stateful or stateless mode for each
  new request.  When stateless, a proxy acts as a simple forwarding
  element.  It forwards each request downstream to a single element
  determined by making a targeting and routing decision based on the
  request.  It simply forwards every response it receives upstream.  A
  stateless proxy discards information about a message once the message
  has been forwarded.  A stateful proxy remembers information
  (specifically, transaction state) about each incoming request and any
  requests it sends as a result of processing the incoming request.  It
  uses this information to affect the processing of future messages
  associated with that request.  A stateful proxy MAY choose to "fork"
  a request, routing it to multiple destinations.  Any request that is
  forwarded to more than one location MUST be handled statefully.

  In some circumstances, a proxy MAY forward requests using stateful
  transports (such as TCP) without being transaction-stateful.  For
  instance, a proxy MAY forward a request from one TCP connection to
  another transaction statelessly as long as it places enough
  information in the message to be able to forward the response down
  the same connection the request arrived on.  Requests forwarded
  between different types of transports where the proxy's TU must take
  an active role in ensuring reliable delivery on one of the transports
  MUST be forwarded transaction statefully.

  A stateful proxy MAY transition to stateless operation at any time
  during the processing of a request, so long as it did not do anything
  that would otherwise prevent it from being stateless initially
  (forking, for example, or generation of a 100 response).  When
  performing such a transition, all state is simply discarded.  The
  proxy SHOULD NOT initiate a CANCEL request.

  Much of the processing involved when acting statelessly or statefully
  for a request is identical.  The next several subsections are written
  from the point of view of a stateful proxy.  The last section calls
  out those places where a stateless proxy behaves differently.

16.2 Stateful Proxy

  When stateful, a proxy is purely a SIP transaction processing engine.
  Its behavior is modeled here in terms of the server and client
  transactions defined in Section 17.  A stateful proxy has a server
  transaction associated with one or more client transactions by a
  higher layer proxy processing component (see figure 3), known as a
  proxy core.  An incoming request is processed by a server



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 92]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  transaction.  Requests from the server transaction are passed to a
  proxy core.  The proxy core determines where to route the request,
  choosing one or more next-hop locations.  An outgoing request for
  each next-hop location is processed by its own associated client
  transaction.  The proxy core collects the responses from the client
  transactions and uses them to send responses to the server
  transaction.

  A stateful proxy creates a new server transaction for each new
  request received.  Any retransmissions of the request will then be
  handled by that server transaction per Section 17.  The proxy core
  MUST behave as a UAS with respect to sending an immediate provisional
  on that server transaction (such as 100 Trying) as described in
  Section 8.2.6.  Thus, a stateful proxy SHOULD NOT generate 100
  (Trying) responses to non-INVITE requests.

  This is a model of proxy behavior, not of software.  An
  implementation is free to take any approach that replicates the
  external behavior this model defines.

  For all new requests, including any with unknown methods, an element
  intending to proxy the request MUST:

     1. Validate the request (Section 16.3)

     2. Preprocess routing information (Section 16.4)

     3. Determine target(s) for the request (Section 16.5)

           +--------------------+
           |                    | +---+
           |                    | | C |
           |                    | | T |
           |                    | +---+
     +---+ |       Proxy        | +---+   CT = Client Transaction
     | S | |  "Higher" Layer    | | C |
     | T | |                    | | T |   ST = Server Transaction
     +---+ |                    | +---+
           |                    | +---+
           |                    | | C |
           |                    | | T |
           |                    | +---+
           +--------------------+

              Figure 3: Stateful Proxy Model






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 93]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     4. Forward the request to each target (Section 16.6)

     5. Process all responses (Section 16.7)

16.3 Request Validation

  Before an element can proxy a request, it MUST verify the message's
  validity.  A valid message must pass the following checks:

     1. Reasonable Syntax

     2. URI scheme

     3. Max-Forwards

     4. (Optional) Loop Detection

     5. Proxy-Require

     6. Proxy-Authorization

  If any of these checks fail, the element MUST behave as a user agent
  server (see Section 8.2) and respond with an error code.

  Notice that a proxy is not required to detect merged requests and
  MUST NOT treat merged requests as an error condition.  The endpoints
  receiving the requests will resolve the merge as described in Section
  8.2.2.2.

  1. Reasonable syntax check

     The request MUST be well-formed enough to be handled with a server
     transaction.  Any components involved in the remainder of these
     Request Validation steps or the Request Forwarding section MUST be
     well-formed.  Any other components, well-formed or not, SHOULD be
     ignored and remain unchanged when the message is forwarded.  For
     instance, an element would not reject a request because of a
     malformed Date header field.  Likewise, a proxy would not remove a
     malformed Date header field before forwarding a request.

     This protocol is designed to be extended.  Future extensions may
     define new methods and header fields at any time.  An element MUST
     NOT refuse to proxy a request because it contains a method or
     header field it does not know about.







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 94]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  2. URI scheme check

     If the Request-URI has a URI whose scheme is not understood by the
     proxy, the proxy SHOULD reject the request with a 416 (Unsupported
     URI Scheme) response.

  3. Max-Forwards check

     The Max-Forwards header field (Section 20.22) is used to limit the
     number of elements a SIP request can traverse.

     If the request does not contain a Max-Forwards header field, this
     check is passed.

     If the request contains a Max-Forwards header field with a field
     value greater than zero, the check is passed.

     If the request contains a Max-Forwards header field with a field
     value of zero (0), the element MUST NOT forward the request.  If
     the request was for OPTIONS, the element MAY act as the final
     recipient and respond per Section 11.  Otherwise, the element MUST
     return a 483 (Too many hops) response.

  4. Optional Loop Detection check

     An element MAY check for forwarding loops before forwarding a
     request.  If the request contains a Via header field with a sent-
     by value that equals a value placed into previous requests by the
     proxy, the request has been forwarded by this element before.  The
     request has either looped or is legitimately spiraling through the
     element.  To determine if the request has looped, the element MAY
     perform the branch parameter calculation described in Step 8 of
     Section 16.6 on this message and compare it to the parameter
     received in that Via header field.  If the parameters match, the
     request has looped.  If they differ, the request is spiraling, and
     processing continues.  If a loop is detected, the element MAY
     return a 482 (Loop Detected) response.

  5. Proxy-Require check

     Future extensions to this protocol may introduce features that
     require special handling by proxies.  Endpoints will include a
     Proxy-Require header field in requests that use these features,
     telling the proxy not to process the request unless the feature is
     understood.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 95]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     If the request contains a Proxy-Require header field (Section
     20.29) with one or more option-tags this element does not
     understand, the element MUST return a 420 (Bad Extension)
     response.  The response MUST include an Unsupported (Section
     20.40) header field listing those option-tags the element did not
     understand.

  6. Proxy-Authorization check

     If an element requires credentials before forwarding a request,
     the request MUST be inspected as described in Section 22.3.  That
     section also defines what the element must do if the inspection
     fails.

16.4 Route Information Preprocessing

  The proxy MUST inspect the Request-URI of the request.  If the
  Request-URI of the request contains a value this proxy previously
  placed into a Record-Route header field (see Section 16.6 item 4),
  the proxy MUST replace the Request-URI in the request with the last
  value from the Route header field, and remove that value from the
  Route header field.  The proxy MUST then proceed as if it received
  this modified request.

     This will only happen when the element sending the request to the
     proxy (which may have been an endpoint) is a strict router.  This
     rewrite on receive is necessary to enable backwards compatibility
     with those elements.  It also allows elements following this
     specification to preserve the Request-URI through strict-routing
     proxies (see Section 12.2.1.1).

     This requirement does not obligate a proxy to keep state in order
     to detect URIs it previously placed in Record-Route header fields.
     Instead, a proxy need only place enough information in those URIs
     to recognize them as values it provided when they later appear.

  If the Request-URI contains a maddr parameter, the proxy MUST check
  to see if its value is in the set of addresses or domains the proxy
  is configured to be responsible for.  If the Request-URI has a maddr
  parameter with a value the proxy is responsible for, and the request
  was received using the port and transport indicated (explicitly or by
  default) in the Request-URI, the proxy MUST strip the maddr and any
  non-default port or transport parameter and continue processing as if
  those values had not been present in the request.







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 96]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     A request may arrive with a maddr matching the proxy, but on a
     port or transport different from that indicated in the URI.  Such
     a request needs to be forwarded to the proxy using the indicated
     port and transport.

  If the first value in the Route header field indicates this proxy,
  the proxy MUST remove that value from the request.

16.5 Determining Request Targets

  Next, the proxy calculates the target(s) of the request.  The set of
  targets will either be predetermined by the contents of the request
  or will be obtained from an abstract location service.  Each target
  in the set is represented as a URI.

  If the Request-URI of the request contains an maddr parameter, the
  Request-URI MUST be placed into the target set as the only target
  URI, and the proxy MUST proceed to Section 16.6.

  If the domain of the Request-URI indicates a domain this element is
  not responsible for, the Request-URI MUST be placed into the target
  set as the only target, and the element MUST proceed to the task of
  Request Forwarding (Section 16.6).

     There are many circumstances in which a proxy might receive a
     request for a domain it is not responsible for.  A firewall proxy
     handling outgoing calls (the way HTTP proxies handle outgoing
     requests) is an example of where this is likely to occur.

  If the target set for the request has not been predetermined as
  described above, this implies that the element is responsible for the
  domain in the Request-URI, and the element MAY use whatever mechanism
  it desires to determine where to send the request.  Any of these
  mechanisms can be modeled as accessing an abstract Location Service.
  This may consist of obtaining information from a location service
  created by a SIP Registrar, reading a database, consulting a presence
  server, utilizing other protocols, or simply performing an
  algorithmic substitution on the Request-URI.  When accessing the
  location service constructed by a registrar, the Request-URI MUST
  first be canonicalized as described in Section 10.3 before being used
  as an index.  The output of these mechanisms is used to construct the
  target set.

  If the Request-URI does not provide sufficient information for the
  proxy to determine the target set, it SHOULD return a 485 (Ambiguous)
  response.  This response SHOULD contain a Contact header field
  containing URIs of new addresses to be tried.  For example, an INVITE




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 97]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  to sip:[email protected] may be ambiguous at a proxy whose
  location service has multiple John Smiths listed.  See Section
  21.4.23 for details.

  Any information in or about the request or the current environment of
  the element MAY be used in the construction of the target set.  For
  instance, different sets may be constructed depending on contents or
  the presence of header fields and bodies, the time of day of the
  request's arrival, the interface on which the request arrived,
  failure of previous requests, or even the element's current level of
  utilization.

  As potential targets are located through these services, their URIs
  are added to the target set.  Targets can only be placed in the
  target set once.  If a target URI is already present in the set
  (based on the definition of equality for the URI type), it MUST NOT
  be added again.

  A proxy MUST NOT add additional targets to the target set if the
  Request-URI of the original request does not indicate a resource this
  proxy is responsible for.

     A proxy can only change the Request-URI of a request during
     forwarding if it is responsible for that URI.  If the proxy is not
     responsible for that URI, it will not recurse on 3xx or 416
     responses as described below.

  If the Request-URI of the original request indicates a resource this
  proxy is responsible for, the proxy MAY continue to add targets to
  the set after beginning Request Forwarding.  It MAY use any
  information obtained during that processing to determine new targets.
  For instance, a proxy may choose to incorporate contacts obtained in
  a redirect response (3xx) into the target set.  If a proxy uses a
  dynamic source of information while building the target set (for
  instance, if it consults a SIP Registrar), it SHOULD monitor that
  source for the duration of processing the request.  New locations
  SHOULD be added to the target set as they become available.  As
  above, any given URI MUST NOT be added to the set more than once.

     Allowing a URI to be added to the set only once reduces
     unnecessary network traffic, and in the case of incorporating
     contacts from redirect requests prevents infinite recursion.

  For example, a trivial location service is a "no-op", where the
  target URI is equal to the incoming request URI.  The request is sent
  to a specific next hop proxy for further processing.  During request





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 98]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  forwarding of Section 16.6, Item 6, the identity of that next hop,
  expressed as a SIP or SIPS URI, is inserted as the top-most Route
  header field value into the request.

  If the Request-URI indicates a resource at this proxy that does not
  exist, the proxy MUST return a 404 (Not Found) response.

  If the target set remains empty after applying all of the above, the
  proxy MUST return an error response, which SHOULD be the 480
  (Temporarily Unavailable) response.

16.6 Request Forwarding

  As soon as the target set is non-empty, a proxy MAY begin forwarding
  the request.  A stateful proxy MAY process the set in any order.  It
  MAY process multiple targets serially, allowing each client
  transaction to complete before starting the next.  It MAY start
  client transactions with every target in parallel.  It also MAY
  arbitrarily divide the set into groups, processing the groups
  serially and processing the targets in each group in parallel.

  A common ordering mechanism is to use the qvalue parameter of targets
  obtained from Contact header fields (see Section 20.10).  Targets are
  processed from highest qvalue to lowest.  Targets with equal qvalues
  may be processed in parallel.

  A stateful proxy must have a mechanism to maintain the target set as
  responses are received and associate the responses to each forwarded
  request with the original request.  For the purposes of this model,
  this mechanism is a "response context" created by the proxy layer
  before forwarding the first request.

  For each target, the proxy forwards the request following these
  steps:

     1.  Make a copy of the received request

     2.  Update the Request-URI

     3.  Update the Max-Forwards header field

     4.  Optionally add a Record-route header field value

     5.  Optionally add additional header fields

     6.  Postprocess routing information

     7.  Determine the next-hop address, port, and transport



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                    [Page 99]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     8.  Add a Via header field value

     9.  Add a Content-Length header field if necessary

     10. Forward the new request

     11. Set timer C

  Each of these steps is detailed below:

     1. Copy request

        The proxy starts with a copy of the received request.  The copy
        MUST initially contain all of the header fields from the
        received request.  Fields not detailed in the processing
        described below MUST NOT be removed.  The copy SHOULD maintain
        the ordering of the header fields as in the received request.
        The proxy MUST NOT reorder field values with a common field
        name (See Section 7.3.1).  The proxy MUST NOT add to, modify,
        or remove the message body.

        An actual implementation need not perform a copy; the primary
        requirement is that the processing for each next hop begin with
        the same request.

     2. Request-URI

        The Request-URI in the copy's start line MUST be replaced with
        the URI for this target.  If the URI contains any parameters
        not allowed in a Request-URI, they MUST be removed.

        This is the essence of a proxy's role.  This is the mechanism
        through which a proxy routes a request toward its destination.

        In some circumstances, the received Request-URI is placed into
        the target set without being modified.  For that target, the
        replacement above is effectively a no-op.

     3. Max-Forwards

        If the copy contains a Max-Forwards header field, the proxy
        MUST decrement its value by one (1).

        If the copy does not contain a Max-Forwards header field, the
        proxy MUST add one with a field value, which SHOULD be 70.

        Some existing UAs will not provide a Max-Forwards header field
        in a request.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 100]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     4. Record-Route

        If this proxy wishes to remain on the path of future requests
        in a dialog created by this request (assuming the request
        creates a dialog), it MUST insert a Record-Route header field
        value into the copy before any existing Record-Route header
        field values, even if a Route header field is already present.

        Requests establishing a dialog may contain a preloaded Route
        header field.

        If this request is already part of a dialog, the proxy SHOULD
        insert a Record-Route header field value if it wishes to remain
        on the path of future requests in the dialog.  In normal
        endpoint operation as described in Section 12, these Record-
        Route header field values will not have any effect on the route
        sets used by the endpoints.

        The proxy will remain on the path if it chooses to not insert a
        Record-Route header field value into requests that are already
        part of a dialog.  However, it would be removed from the path
        when an endpoint that has failed reconstitutes the dialog.

        A proxy MAY insert a Record-Route header field value into any
        request.  If the request does not initiate a dialog, the
        endpoints will ignore the value.  See Section 12 for details on
        how endpoints use the Record-Route header field values to
        construct Route header fields.

        Each proxy in the path of a request chooses whether to add a
        Record-Route header field value independently - the presence of
        a Record-Route header field in a request does not obligate this
        proxy to add a value.

        The URI placed in the Record-Route header field value MUST be a
        SIP or SIPS URI.  This URI MUST contain an lr parameter (see
        Section 19.1.1).  This URI MAY be different for each
        destination the request is forwarded to.  The URI SHOULD NOT
        contain the transport parameter unless the proxy has knowledge
        (such as in a private network) that the next downstream element
        that will be in the path of subsequent requests supports that
        transport.

        The URI this proxy provides will be used by some other element
        to make a routing decision.  This proxy, in general, has no way
        of knowing the capabilities of that element, so it must
        restrict itself to the mandatory elements of a SIP
        implementation: SIP URIs and either the TCP or UDP transports.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 101]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        The URI placed in the Record-Route header field MUST resolve to
        the element inserting it (or a suitable stand-in) when the
        server location procedures of [4] are applied to it, so that
        subsequent requests reach the same SIP element.  If the
        Request-URI contains a SIPS URI, or the topmost Route header
        field value (after the post processing of bullet 6) contains a
        SIPS URI, the URI placed into the Record-Route header field
        MUST be a SIPS URI.  Furthermore, if the request was not
        received over TLS, the proxy MUST insert a Record-Route header
        field.  In a similar fashion, a proxy that receives a request
        over TLS, but generates a request without a SIPS URI in the
        Request-URI or topmost Route header field value (after the post
        processing of bullet 6), MUST insert a Record-Route header
        field that is not a SIPS URI.

        A proxy at a security perimeter must remain on the perimeter
        throughout the dialog.

        If the URI placed in the Record-Route header field needs to be
        rewritten when it passes back through in a response, the URI
        MUST be distinct enough to locate at that time.  (The request
        may spiral through this proxy, resulting in more than one
        Record-Route header field value being added).  Item 8 of
        Section 16.7 recommends a mechanism to make the URI
        sufficiently distinct.

        The proxy MAY include parameters in the Record-Route header
        field value.  These will be echoed in some responses to the
        request such as the 200 (OK) responses to INVITE.  Such
        parameters may be useful for keeping state in the message
        rather than the proxy.

        If a proxy needs to be in the path of any type of dialog (such
        as one straddling a firewall), it SHOULD add a Record-Route
        header field value to every request with a method it does not
        understand since that method may have dialog semantics.

        The URI a proxy places into a Record-Route header field is only
        valid for the lifetime of any dialog created by the transaction
        in which it occurs.  A dialog-stateful proxy, for example, MAY
        refuse to accept future requests with that value in the
        Request-URI after the dialog has terminated.  Non-dialog-
        stateful proxies, of course, have no concept of when the dialog
        has terminated, but they MAY encode enough information in the
        value to compare it against the dialog identifier of future
        requests and MAY reject requests not matching that information.
        Endpoints MUST NOT use a URI obtained from a Record-Route
        header field outside the dialog in which it was provided.  See



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 102]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        Section 12 for more information on an endpoint's use of
        Record-Route header fields.

        Record-routing may be required by certain services where the
        proxy needs to observe all messages in a dialog.  However, it
        slows down processing and impairs scalability and thus proxies
        should only record-route if required for a particular service.

        The Record-Route process is designed to work for any SIP
        request that initiates a dialog.  INVITE is the only such
        request in this specification, but extensions to the protocol
        MAY define others.

     5. Add Additional Header Fields

        The proxy MAY add any other appropriate header fields to the
        copy at this point.

     6. Postprocess routing information

        A proxy MAY have a local policy that mandates that a request
        visit a specific set of proxies before being delivered to the
        destination.  A proxy MUST ensure that all such proxies are
        loose routers.  Generally, this can only be known with
        certainty if the proxies are within the same administrative
        domain.  This set of proxies is represented by a set of URIs
        (each of which contains the lr parameter).  This set MUST be
        pushed into the Route header field of the copy ahead of any
        existing values, if present.  If the Route header field is
        absent, it MUST be added, containing that list of URIs.

        If the proxy has a local policy that mandates that the request
        visit one specific proxy, an alternative to pushing a Route
        value into the Route header field is to bypass the forwarding
        logic of item 10 below, and instead just send the request to
        the address, port, and transport for that specific proxy.  If
        the request has a Route header field, this alternative MUST NOT
        be used unless it is known that next hop proxy is a loose
        router.  Otherwise, this approach MAY be used, but the Route
        insertion mechanism above is preferred for its robustness,
        flexibility, generality and consistency of operation.
        Furthermore, if the Request-URI contains a SIPS URI, TLS MUST
        be used to communicate with that proxy.

        If the copy contains a Route header field, the proxy MUST
        inspect the URI in its first value.  If that URI does not
        contain an lr parameter, the proxy MUST modify the copy as
        follows:



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 103]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        -  The proxy MUST place the Request-URI into the Route header
           field as the last value.

        -  The proxy MUST then place the first Route header field value
           into the Request-URI and remove that value from the Route
           header field.

        Appending the Request-URI to the Route header field is part of
        a mechanism used to pass the information in that Request-URI
        through strict-routing elements.  "Popping" the first Route
        header field value into the Request-URI formats the message the
        way a strict-routing element expects to receive it (with its
        own URI in the Request-URI and the next location to visit in
        the first Route header field value).

     7. Determine Next-Hop Address, Port, and Transport

        The proxy MAY have a local policy to send the request to a
        specific IP address, port, and transport, independent of the
        values of the Route and Request-URI.  Such a policy MUST NOT be
        used if the proxy is not certain that the IP address, port, and
        transport correspond to a server that is a loose router.
        However, this mechanism for sending the request through a
        specific next hop is NOT RECOMMENDED; instead a Route header
        field should be used for that purpose as described above.

        In the absence of such an overriding mechanism, the proxy
        applies the procedures listed in [4] as follows to determine
        where to send the request.  If the proxy has reformatted the
        request to send to a strict-routing element as described in
        step 6 above, the proxy MUST apply those procedures to the
        Request-URI of the request.  Otherwise, the proxy MUST apply
        the procedures to the first value in the Route header field, if
        present, else the Request-URI.  The procedures will produce an
        ordered set of (address, port, transport) tuples.
        Independently of which URI is being used as input to the
        procedures of [4], if the Request-URI specifies a SIPS
        resource, the proxy MUST follow the procedures of [4] as if the
        input URI were a SIPS URI.

        As described in [4], the proxy MUST attempt to deliver the
        message to the first tuple in that set, and proceed through the
        set in order until the delivery attempt succeeds.

        For each tuple attempted, the proxy MUST format the message as
        appropriate for the tuple and send the request using a new
        client transaction as detailed in steps 8 through 10.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 104]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        Since each attempt uses a new client transaction, it represents
        a new branch.  Thus, the branch parameter provided with the Via
        header field inserted in step 8 MUST be different for each
        attempt.

        If the client transaction reports failure to send the request
        or a timeout from its state machine, the proxy continues to the
        next address in that ordered set.  If the ordered set is
        exhausted, the request cannot be forwarded to this element in
        the target set.  The proxy does not need to place anything in
        the response context, but otherwise acts as if this element of
        the target set returned a 408 (Request Timeout) final response.

     8. Add a Via header field value

        The proxy MUST insert a Via header field value into the copy
        before the existing Via header field values.  The construction
        of this value follows the same guidelines of Section 8.1.1.7.
        This implies that the proxy will compute its own branch
        parameter, which will be globally unique for that branch, and
        contain the requisite magic cookie. Note that this implies that
        the branch parameter will be different for different instances
        of a spiraled or looped request through a proxy.

        Proxies choosing to detect loops have an additional constraint
        in the value they use for construction of the branch parameter.
        A proxy choosing to detect loops SHOULD create a branch
        parameter separable into two parts by the implementation.  The
        first part MUST satisfy the constraints of Section 8.1.1.7 as
        described above.  The second is used to perform loop detection
        and distinguish loops from spirals.

        Loop detection is performed by verifying that, when a request
        returns to a proxy, those fields having an impact on the
        processing of the request have not changed.  The value placed
        in this part of the branch parameter SHOULD reflect all of
        those fields (including any Route, Proxy-Require and Proxy-
        Authorization header fields).  This is to ensure that if the
        request is routed back to the proxy and one of those fields
        changes, it is treated as a spiral and not a loop (see Section
        16.3).  A common way to create this value is to compute a
        cryptographic hash of the To tag, From tag, Call-ID header
        field, the Request-URI of the request received (before
        translation), the topmost Via header, and the sequence number
        from the CSeq header field, in addition to any Proxy-Require
        and Proxy-Authorization header fields that may be present.  The





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 105]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        algorithm used to compute the hash is implementation-dependent,
        but MD5 (RFC 1321 [35]), expressed in hexadecimal, is a
        reasonable choice.  (Base64 is not permissible for a token.)

        If a proxy wishes to detect loops, the "branch" parameter it
        supplies MUST depend on all information affecting processing of
        a request, including the incoming Request-URI and any header
        fields affecting the request's admission or routing.  This is
        necessary to distinguish looped requests from requests whose
        routing parameters have changed before returning to this
        server.

        The request method MUST NOT be included in the calculation of
        the branch parameter.  In particular, CANCEL and ACK requests
        (for non-2xx responses) MUST have the same branch value as the
        corresponding request they cancel or acknowledge.  The branch
        parameter is used in correlating those requests at the server
        handling them (see Sections 17.2.3 and 9.2).

     9. Add a Content-Length header field if necessary

        If the request will be sent to the next hop using a stream-
        based transport and the copy contains no Content-Length header
        field, the proxy MUST insert one with the correct value for the
        body of the request (see Section 20.14).

     10. Forward Request

        A stateful proxy MUST create a new client transaction for this
        request as described in Section 17.1 and instructs the
        transaction to send the request using the address, port and
        transport determined in step 7.

     11. Set timer C

        In order to handle the case where an INVITE request never
        generates a final response, the TU uses a timer which is called
        timer C.  Timer C MUST be set for each client transaction when
        an INVITE request is proxied.  The timer MUST be larger than 3
        minutes.  Section 16.7 bullet 2 discusses how this timer is
        updated with provisional responses, and Section 16.8 discusses
        processing when it fires.









Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 106]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


16.7 Response Processing

  When a response is received by an element, it first tries to locate a
  client transaction (Section 17.1.3) matching the response.  If none
  is found, the element MUST process the response (even if it is an
  informational response) as a stateless proxy (described below).  If a
  match is found, the response is handed to the client transaction.

     Forwarding responses for which a client transaction (or more
     generally any knowledge of having sent an associated request) is
     not found improves robustness.  In particular, it ensures that
     "late" 2xx responses to INVITE requests are forwarded properly.

  As client transactions pass responses to the proxy layer, the
  following processing MUST take place:

     1.  Find the appropriate response context

     2.  Update timer C for provisional responses

     3.  Remove the topmost Via

     4.  Add the response to the response context

     5.  Check to see if this response should be forwarded immediately

     6.  When necessary, choose the best final response from the
         response context

  If no final response has been forwarded after every client
  transaction associated with the response context has been terminated,
  the proxy must choose and forward the "best" response from those it
  has seen so far.

  The following processing MUST be performed on each response that is
  forwarded.  It is likely that more than one response to each request
  will be forwarded: at least each provisional and one final response.

     7.  Aggregate authorization header field values if necessary

     8.  Optionally rewrite Record-Route header field values

     9.  Forward the response

     10. Generate any necessary CANCEL requests






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 107]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Each of the above steps are detailed below:

     1.  Find Context

        The proxy locates the "response context" it created before
        forwarding the original request using the key described in
        Section 16.6.  The remaining processing steps take place in
        this context.

     2.  Update timer C for provisional responses

        For an INVITE transaction, if the response is a provisional
        response with status codes 101 to 199 inclusive (i.e., anything
        but 100), the proxy MUST reset timer C for that client
        transaction.  The timer MAY be reset to a different value, but
        this value MUST be greater than 3 minutes.

     3.  Via

        The proxy removes the topmost Via header field value from the
        response.

        If no Via header field values remain in the response, the
        response was meant for this element and MUST NOT be forwarded.
        The remainder of the processing described in this section is
        not performed on this message, the UAC processing rules
        described in Section 8.1.3 are followed instead (transport
        layer processing has already occurred).

        This will happen, for instance, when the element generates
        CANCEL requests as described in Section 10.

     4.  Add response to context

        Final responses received are stored in the response context
        until a final response is generated on the server transaction
        associated with this context.  The response may be a candidate
        for the best final response to be returned on that server
        transaction.  Information from this response may be needed in
        forming the best response, even if this response is not chosen.

        If the proxy chooses to recurse on any contacts in a 3xx
        response by adding them to the target set, it MUST remove them
        from the response before adding the response to the response
        context.  However, a proxy SHOULD NOT recurse to a non-SIPS URI
        if the Request-URI of the original request was a SIPS URI.  If





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 108]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        the proxy recurses on all of the contacts in a 3xx response,
        the proxy SHOULD NOT add the resulting contactless response to
        the response context.

        Removing the contact before adding the response to the response
        context prevents the next element upstream from retrying a
        location this proxy has already attempted.

        3xx responses may contain a mixture of SIP, SIPS, and non-SIP
        URIs.  A proxy may choose to recurse on the SIP and SIPS URIs
        and place the remainder into the response context to be
        returned, potentially in the final response.

        If a proxy receives a 416 (Unsupported URI Scheme) response to
        a request whose Request-URI scheme was not SIP, but the scheme
        in the original received request was SIP or SIPS (that is, the
        proxy changed the scheme from SIP or SIPS to something else
        when it proxied a request), the proxy SHOULD add a new URI to
        the target set.  This URI SHOULD be a SIP URI version of the
        non-SIP URI that was just tried.  In the case of the tel URL,
        this is accomplished by placing the telephone-subscriber part
        of the tel URL into the user part of the SIP URI, and setting
        the hostpart to the domain where the prior request was sent.
        See Section 19.1.6 for more detail on forming SIP URIs from tel
        URLs.

        As with a 3xx response, if a proxy "recurses" on the 416 by
        trying a SIP or SIPS URI instead, the 416 response SHOULD NOT
        be added to the response context.

     5.  Check response for forwarding

        Until a final response has been sent on the server transaction,
        the following responses MUST be forwarded immediately:

        -  Any provisional response other than 100 (Trying)

        -  Any 2xx response

        If a 6xx response is received, it is not immediately forwarded,
        but the stateful proxy SHOULD cancel all client pending
        transactions as described in Section 10, and it MUST NOT create
        any new branches in this context.

        This is a change from RFC 2543, which mandated that the proxy
        was to forward the 6xx response immediately.  For an INVITE
        transaction, this approach had the problem that a 2xx response
        could arrive on another branch, in which case the proxy would



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 109]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        have to forward the 2xx.  The result was that the UAC could
        receive a 6xx response followed by a 2xx response, which should
        never be allowed to happen.  Under the new rules, upon
        receiving a 6xx, a proxy will issue a CANCEL request, which
        will generally result in 487 responses from all outstanding
        client transactions, and then at that point the 6xx is
        forwarded upstream.

        After a final response has been sent on the server transaction,
        the following responses MUST be forwarded immediately:

        -  Any 2xx response to an INVITE request

        A stateful proxy MUST NOT immediately forward any other
        responses.  In particular, a stateful proxy MUST NOT forward
        any 100 (Trying) response.  Those responses that are candidates
        for forwarding later as the "best" response have been gathered
        as described in step "Add Response to Context".

        Any response chosen for immediate forwarding MUST be processed
        as described in steps "Aggregate Authorization Header Field
        Values" through "Record-Route".

        This step, combined with the next, ensures that a stateful
        proxy will forward exactly one final response to a non-INVITE
        request, and either exactly one non-2xx response or one or more
        2xx responses to an INVITE request.

     6.  Choosing the best response

        A stateful proxy MUST send a final response to a response
        context's server transaction if no final responses have been
        immediately forwarded by the above rules and all client
        transactions in this response context have been terminated.

        The stateful proxy MUST choose the "best" final response among
        those received and stored in the response context.

        If there are no final responses in the context, the proxy MUST
        send a 408 (Request Timeout) response to the server
        transaction.

        Otherwise, the proxy MUST forward a response from the responses
        stored in the response context.  It MUST choose from the 6xx
        class responses if any exist in the context.  If no 6xx class
        responses are present, the proxy SHOULD choose from the lowest
        response class stored in the response context.  The proxy MAY
        select any response within that chosen class.  The proxy SHOULD



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 110]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        give preference to responses that provide information affecting
        resubmission of this request, such as 401, 407, 415, 420, and
        484 if the 4xx class is chosen.

        A proxy which receives a 503 (Service Unavailable) response
        SHOULD NOT forward it upstream unless it can determine that any
        subsequent requests it might proxy will also generate a 503.
        In other words, forwarding a 503 means that the proxy knows it
        cannot service any requests, not just the one for the Request-
        URI in the request which generated the 503.  If the only
        response that was received is a 503, the proxy SHOULD generate
        a 500 response and forward that upstream.

        The forwarded response MUST be processed as described in steps
        "Aggregate Authorization Header Field Values" through "Record-
        Route".

        For example, if a proxy forwarded a request to 4 locations, and
        received 503, 407, 501, and 404 responses, it may choose to
        forward the 407 (Proxy Authentication Required) response.

        1xx and 2xx responses may be involved in the establishment of
        dialogs.  When a request does not contain a To tag, the To tag
        in the response is used by the UAC to distinguish multiple
        responses to a dialog creating request.  A proxy MUST NOT
        insert a tag into the To header field of a 1xx or 2xx response
        if the request did not contain one.  A proxy MUST NOT modify
        the tag in the To header field of a 1xx or 2xx response.

        Since a proxy may not insert a tag into the To header field of
        a 1xx response to a request that did not contain one, it cannot
        issue non-100 provisional responses on its own.  However, it
        can branch the request to a UAS sharing the same element as the
        proxy.  This UAS can return its own provisional responses,
        entering into an early dialog with the initiator of the
        request.  The UAS does not have to be a discreet process from
        the proxy.  It could be a virtual UAS implemented in the same
        code space as the proxy.

        3-6xx responses are delivered hop-by-hop.  When issuing a 3-6xx
        response, the element is effectively acting as a UAS, issuing
        its own response, usually based on the responses received from
        downstream elements.  An element SHOULD preserve the To tag
        when simply forwarding a 3-6xx response to a request that did
        not contain a To tag.

        A proxy MUST NOT modify the To tag in any forwarded response to
        a request that contains a To tag.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 111]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        While it makes no difference to the upstream elements if the
        proxy replaced the To tag in a forwarded 3-6xx response,
        preserving the original tag may assist with debugging.

        When the proxy is aggregating information from several
        responses, choosing a To tag from among them is arbitrary, and
        generating a new To tag may make debugging easier.  This
        happens, for instance, when combining 401 (Unauthorized) and
        407 (Proxy Authentication Required) challenges, or combining
        Contact values from unencrypted and unauthenticated 3xx
        responses.

     7.  Aggregate Authorization Header Field Values

        If the selected response is a 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy
        Authentication Required), the proxy MUST collect any WWW-
        Authenticate and Proxy-Authenticate header field values from
        all other 401 (Unauthorized) and 407 (Proxy Authentication
        Required) responses received so far in this response context
        and add them to this response without modification before
        forwarding.  The resulting 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy
        Authentication Required) response could have several WWW-
        Authenticate AND Proxy-Authenticate header field values.

        This is necessary because any or all of the destinations the
        request was forwarded to may have requested credentials.  The
        client needs to receive all of those challenges and supply
        credentials for each of them when it retries the request.
        Motivation for this behavior is provided in Section 26.

     8.  Record-Route

        If the selected response contains a Record-Route header field
        value originally provided by this proxy, the proxy MAY choose
        to rewrite the value before forwarding the response.  This
        allows the proxy to provide different URIs for itself to the
        next upstream and downstream elements.  A proxy may choose to
        use this mechanism for any reason.  For instance, it is useful
        for multi-homed hosts.

        If the proxy received the request over TLS, and sent it out
        over a non-TLS connection, the proxy MUST rewrite the URI in
        the Record-Route header field to be a SIPS URI.  If the proxy
        received the request over a non-TLS connection, and sent it out
        over TLS, the proxy MUST rewrite the URI in the Record-Route
        header field to be a SIP URI.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 112]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        The new URI provided by the proxy MUST satisfy the same
        constraints on URIs placed in Record-Route header fields in
        requests (see Step 4 of Section 16.6) with the following
        modifications:

        The URI SHOULD NOT contain the transport parameter unless the
        proxy has knowledge that the next upstream (as opposed to
        downstream) element that will be in the path of subsequent
        requests supports that transport.

        When a proxy does decide to modify the Record-Route header
        field in the response, one of the operations it performs is
        locating the Record-Route value that it had inserted.  If the
        request spiraled, and the proxy inserted a Record-Route value
        in each iteration of the spiral, locating the correct value in
        the response (which must be the proper iteration in the reverse
        direction) is tricky.  The rules above recommend that a proxy
        wishing to rewrite Record-Route header field values insert
        sufficiently distinct URIs into the Record-Route header field
        so that the right one may be selected for rewriting.  A
        RECOMMENDED mechanism to achieve this is for the proxy to
        append a unique identifier for the proxy instance to the user
        portion of the URI.

        When the response arrives, the proxy modifies the first
        Record-Route whose identifier matches the proxy instance.  The
        modification results in a URI without this piece of data
        appended to the user portion of the URI.  Upon the next
        iteration, the same algorithm (find the topmost Record-Route
        header field value with the parameter) will correctly extract
        the next Record-Route header field value inserted by that
        proxy.

        Not every response to a request to which a proxy adds a
        Record-Route header field value will contain a Record-Route
        header field.  If the response does contain a Record-Route
        header field, it will contain the value the proxy added.

     9.  Forward response

        After performing the processing described in steps "Aggregate
        Authorization Header Field Values" through "Record-Route", the
        proxy MAY perform any feature specific manipulations on the
        selected response.  The proxy MUST NOT add to, modify, or
        remove the message body.  Unless otherwise specified, the proxy
        MUST NOT remove any header field values other than the Via
        header field value discussed in Section 16.7 Item 3.  In
        particular, the proxy MUST NOT remove any "received" parameter



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 113]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        it may have added to the next Via header field value while
        processing the request associated with this response.  The
        proxy MUST pass the response to the server transaction
        associated with the response context.  This will result in the
        response being sent to the location now indicated in the
        topmost Via header field value.  If the server transaction is
        no longer available to handle the transmission, the element
        MUST forward the response statelessly by sending it to the
        server transport.  The server transaction might indicate
        failure to send the response or signal a timeout in its state
        machine.  These errors would be logged for diagnostic purposes
        as appropriate, but the protocol requires no remedial action
        from the proxy.

        The proxy MUST maintain the response context until all of its
        associated transactions have been terminated, even after
        forwarding a final response.

     10. Generate CANCELs

        If the forwarded response was a final response, the proxy MUST
        generate a CANCEL request for all pending client transactions
        associated with this response context.  A proxy SHOULD also
        generate a CANCEL request for all pending client transactions
        associated with this response context when it receives a 6xx
        response.  A pending client transaction is one that has
        received a provisional response, but no final response (it is
        in the proceeding state) and has not had an associated CANCEL
        generated for it.  Generating CANCEL requests is described in
        Section 9.1.

        The requirement to CANCEL pending client transactions upon
        forwarding a final response does not guarantee that an endpoint
        will not receive multiple 200 (OK) responses to an INVITE.  200
        (OK) responses on more than one branch may be generated before
        the CANCEL requests can be sent and processed.  Further, it is
        reasonable to expect that a future extension may override this
        requirement to issue CANCEL requests.

16.8 Processing Timer C

  If timer C should fire, the proxy MUST either reset the timer with
  any value it chooses, or terminate the client transaction.  If the
  client transaction has received a provisional response, the proxy
  MUST generate a CANCEL request matching that transaction.  If the
  client transaction has not received a provisional response, the proxy
  MUST behave as if the transaction received a 408 (Request Timeout)
  response.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 114]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Allowing the proxy to reset the timer allows the proxy to dynamically
  extend the transaction's lifetime based on current conditions (such
  as utilization) when the timer fires.

16.9 Handling Transport Errors

  If the transport layer notifies a proxy of an error when it tries to
  forward a request (see Section 18.4), the proxy MUST behave as if the
  forwarded request received a 503 (Service Unavailable) response.

  If the proxy is notified of an error when forwarding a response, it
  drops the response.  The proxy SHOULD NOT cancel any outstanding
  client transactions associated with this response context due to this
  notification.

     If a proxy cancels its outstanding client transactions, a single
     malicious or misbehaving client can cause all transactions to fail
     through its Via header field.

16.10 CANCEL Processing

  A stateful proxy MAY generate a CANCEL to any other request it has
  generated at any time (subject to receiving a provisional response to
  that request as described in section 9.1).  A proxy MUST cancel any
  pending client transactions associated with a response context when
  it receives a matching CANCEL request.

  A stateful proxy MAY generate CANCEL requests for pending INVITE
  client transactions based on the period specified in the INVITE's
  Expires header field elapsing.  However, this is generally
  unnecessary since the endpoints involved will take care of signaling
  the end of the transaction.

  While a CANCEL request is handled in a stateful proxy by its own
  server transaction, a new response context is not created for it.
  Instead, the proxy layer searches its existing response contexts for
  the server transaction handling the request associated with this
  CANCEL.  If a matching response context is found, the element MUST
  immediately return a 200 (OK) response to the CANCEL request.  In
  this case, the element is acting as a user agent server as defined in
  Section 8.2.  Furthermore, the element MUST generate CANCEL requests
  for all pending client transactions in the context as described in
  Section 16.7 step 10.

  If a response context is not found, the element does not have any
  knowledge of the request to apply the CANCEL to.  It MUST statelessly
  forward the CANCEL request (it may have statelessly forwarded the
  associated request previously).



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 115]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


16.11 Stateless Proxy

  When acting statelessly, a proxy is a simple message forwarder.  Much
  of the processing performed when acting statelessly is the same as
  when behaving statefully.  The differences are detailed here.

  A stateless proxy does not have any notion of a transaction, or of
  the response context used to describe stateful proxy behavior.
  Instead, the stateless proxy takes messages, both requests and
  responses, directly from the transport layer (See section 18).  As a
  result, stateless proxies do not retransmit messages on their own.
  They do, however, forward all retransmissions they receive (they do
  not have the ability to distinguish a retransmission from the
  original message).  Furthermore, when handling a request statelessly,
  an element MUST NOT generate its own 100 (Trying) or any other
  provisional response.

  A stateless proxy MUST validate a request as described in Section
  16.3

  A stateless proxy MUST follow the request processing steps described
  in Sections 16.4 through 16.5 with the following exception:

     o  A stateless proxy MUST choose one and only one target from the
        target set.  This choice MUST only rely on fields in the
        message and time-invariant properties of the server.  In
        particular, a retransmitted request MUST be forwarded to the
        same destination each time it is processed.  Furthermore,
        CANCEL and non-Routed ACK requests MUST generate the same
        choice as their associated INVITE.

  A stateless proxy MUST follow the request processing steps described
  in Section 16.6 with the following exceptions:

     o  The requirement for unique branch IDs across space and time
        applies to stateless proxies as well.  However, a stateless
        proxy cannot simply use a random number generator to compute
        the first component of the branch ID, as described in Section
        16.6 bullet 8.  This is because retransmissions of a request
        need to have the same value, and a stateless proxy cannot tell
        a retransmission from the original request.  Therefore, the
        component of the branch parameter that makes it unique MUST be
        the same each time a retransmitted request is forwarded.  Thus
        for a stateless proxy, the branch parameter MUST be computed as
        a combinatoric function of message parameters which are
        invariant on retransmission.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 116]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        The stateless proxy MAY use any technique it likes to guarantee
        uniqueness of its branch IDs across transactions.  However, the
        following procedure is RECOMMENDED.  The proxy examines the
        branch ID in the topmost Via header field of the received
        request.  If it begins with the magic cookie, the first
        component of the branch ID of the outgoing request is computed
        as a hash of the received branch ID.  Otherwise, the first
        component of the branch ID is computed as a hash of the topmost
        Via, the tag in the To header field, the tag in the From header
        field, the Call-ID header field, the CSeq number (but not
        method), and the Request-URI from the received request.  One of
        these fields will always vary across two different
        transactions.

     o  All other message transformations specified in Section 16.6
        MUST result in the same transformation of a retransmitted
        request.  In particular, if the proxy inserts a Record-Route
        value or pushes URIs into the Route header field, it MUST place
        the same values in retransmissions of the request.  As for the
        Via branch parameter, this implies that the transformations
        MUST be based on time-invariant configuration or
        retransmission-invariant properties of the request.

     o  A stateless proxy determines where to forward the request as
        described for stateful proxies in Section 16.6 Item 10.  The
        request is sent directly to the transport layer instead of
        through a client transaction.

        Since a stateless proxy must forward retransmitted requests to
        the same destination and add identical branch parameters to
        each of them, it can only use information from the message
        itself and time-invariant configuration data for those
        calculations.  If the configuration state is not time-invariant
        (for example, if a routing table is updated) any requests that
        could be affected by the change may not be forwarded
        statelessly during an interval equal to the transaction timeout
        window before or after the change.  The method of processing
        the affected requests in that interval is an implementation
        decision.  A common solution is to forward them transaction
        statefully.

  Stateless proxies MUST NOT perform special processing for CANCEL
  requests.  They are processed by the above rules as any other
  requests.  In particular, a stateless proxy applies the same Route
  header field processing to CANCEL requests that it applies to any
  other request.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 117]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Response processing as described in Section 16.7 does not apply to a
  proxy behaving statelessly.  When a response arrives at a stateless
  proxy, the proxy MUST inspect the sent-by value in the first
  (topmost) Via header field value.  If that address matches the proxy,
  (it equals a value this proxy has inserted into previous requests)
  the proxy MUST remove that header field value from the response and
  forward the result to the location indicated in the next Via header
  field value.  The proxy MUST NOT add to, modify, or remove the
  message body.  Unless specified otherwise, the proxy MUST NOT remove
  any other header field values.  If the address does not match the
  proxy, the message MUST be silently discarded.

16.12 Summary of Proxy Route Processing

  In the absence of local policy to the contrary, the processing a
  proxy performs on a request containing a Route header field can be
  summarized in the following steps.

     1.  The proxy will inspect the Request-URI.  If it indicates a
         resource owned by this proxy, the proxy will replace it with
         the results of running a location service.  Otherwise, the
         proxy will not change the Request-URI.

     2.  The proxy will inspect the URI in the topmost Route header
         field value.  If it indicates this proxy, the proxy removes it
         from the Route header field (this route node has been
         reached).

     3.  The proxy will forward the request to the resource indicated
         by the URI in the topmost Route header field value or in the
         Request-URI if no Route header field is present.  The proxy
         determines the address, port and transport to use when
         forwarding the request by applying the procedures in [4] to
         that URI.

  If no strict-routing elements are encountered on the path of the
  request, the Request-URI will always indicate the target of the
  request.

16.12.1 Examples

16.12.1.1 Basic SIP Trapezoid

  This scenario is the basic SIP trapezoid, U1 -> P1 -> P2 -> U2, with
  both proxies record-routing.  Here is the flow.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 118]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  U1 sends:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: sip:[email protected]

  to P1.  P1 is an outbound proxy.  P1 is not responsible for
  domain.com, so it looks it up in DNS and sends it there.  It also
  adds a Record-Route header field value:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: sip:[email protected]
     Record-Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>

  P2 gets this.  It is responsible for domain.com so it runs a location
  service and rewrites the Request-URI.  It also adds a Record-Route
  header field value.  There is no Route header field, so it resolves
  the new Request-URI to determine where to send the request:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: sip:[email protected]
     Record-Route: <sip:p2.domain.com;lr>
     Record-Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>

  The callee at u2.domain.com gets this and responds with a 200 OK:

     SIP/2.0 200 OK
     Contact: sip:[email protected]
     Record-Route: <sip:p2.domain.com;lr>
     Record-Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>

  The callee at u2 also sets its dialog state's remote target URI to
  sip:[email protected] and its route set to:

     (<sip:p2.domain.com;lr>,<sip:p1.example.com;lr>)

  This is forwarded by P2 to P1 to U1 as normal.  Now, U1 sets its
  dialog state's remote target URI to sip:[email protected] and its
  route set to:

     (<sip:p1.example.com;lr>,<sip:p2.domain.com;lr>)

  Since all the route set elements contain the lr parameter, U1
  constructs the following BYE request:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>,<sip:p2.domain.com;lr>





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 119]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  As any other element (including proxies) would do, it resolves the
  URI in the topmost Route header field value using DNS to determine
  where to send the request.  This goes to P1.  P1 notices that it is
  not responsible for the resource indicated in the Request-URI so it
  doesn't change it.  It does see that it is the first value in the
  Route header field, so it removes that value, and forwards the
  request to P2:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p2.domain.com;lr>

  P2 also notices it is not responsible for the resource indicated by
  the Request-URI (it is responsible for domain.com, not
  u2.domain.com), so it doesn't change it.  It does see itself in the
  first Route header field value, so it removes it and forwards the
  following to u2.domain.com based on a DNS lookup against the
  Request-URI:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0

16.12.1.2 Traversing a Strict-Routing Proxy

  In this scenario, a dialog is established across four proxies, each
  of which adds Record-Route header field values.  The third proxy
  implements the strict-routing procedures specified in RFC 2543 and
  many works in progress.

     U1->P1->P2->P3->P4->U2

  The INVITE arriving at U2 contains:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: sip:[email protected]
     Record-Route: <sip:p4.domain.com;lr>
     Record-Route: <sip:p3.middle.com>
     Record-Route: <sip:p2.example.com;lr>
     Record-Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>

  Which U2 responds to with a 200 OK.  Later, U2 sends the following
  BYE request to P4 based on the first Route header field value.

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p4.domain.com;lr>
     Route: <sip:p3.middle.com>
     Route: <sip:p2.example.com;lr>
     Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 120]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  P4 is not responsible for the resource indicated in the Request-URI
  so it will leave it alone.  It notices that it is the element in the
  first Route header field value so it removes it.  It then prepares to
  send the request based on the now first Route header field value of
  sip:p3.middle.com, but it notices that this URI does not contain the
  lr parameter, so before sending, it reformats the request to be:

     BYE sip:p3.middle.com SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p2.example.com;lr>
     Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>

  P3 is a strict router, so it forwards the following to P2:

     BYE sip:p2.example.com;lr SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>
     Route: <sip:[email protected]>

  P2 sees the request-URI is a value it placed into a Record-Route
  header field, so before further processing, it rewrites the request
  to be:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:p1.example.com;lr>

  P2 is not responsible for u1.example.com, so it sends the request to
  P1 based on the resolution of the Route header field value.

  P1 notices itself in the topmost Route header field value, so it
  removes it, resulting in:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0

  Since P1 is not responsible for u1.example.com and there is no Route
  header field, P1 will forward the request to u1.example.com based on
  the Request-URI.

16.12.1.3 Rewriting Record-Route Header Field Values

  In this scenario, U1 and U2 are in different private namespaces and
  they enter a dialog through a proxy P1, which acts as a gateway
  between the namespaces.

     U1->P1->U2







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 121]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  U1 sends:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>

  P1 uses its location service and sends the following to U2:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Record-Route: <sip:gateway.rightprivatespace.com;lr>

  U2 sends this 200 (OK) back to P1:

     SIP/2.0 200 OK
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Record-Route: <sip:gateway.rightprivatespace.com;lr>

  P1 rewrites its Record-Route header parameter to provide a value that
  U1 will find useful, and sends the following to U1:

     SIP/2.0 200 OK
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Record-Route: <sip:gateway.leftprivatespace.com;lr>

  Later, U1 sends the following BYE request to P1:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Route: <sip:gateway.leftprivatespace.com;lr>

  which P1 forwards to U2 as:

     BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0

17 Transactions

  SIP is a transactional protocol: interactions between components take
  place in a series of independent message exchanges.  Specifically, a
  SIP transaction consists of a single request and any responses to
  that request, which include zero or more provisional responses and
  one or more final responses.  In the case of a transaction where the
  request was an INVITE (known as an INVITE transaction), the
  transaction also includes the ACK only if the final response was not
  a 2xx response.  If the response was a 2xx, the ACK is not considered
  part of the transaction.

     The reason for this separation is rooted in the importance of
     delivering all 200 (OK) responses to an INVITE to the UAC.  To
     deliver them all to the UAC, the UAS alone takes responsibility



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 122]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     for retransmitting them (see Section 13.3.1.4), and the UAC alone
     takes responsibility for acknowledging them with ACK (see Section
     13.2.2.4).  Since this ACK is retransmitted only by the UAC, it is
     effectively considered its own transaction.

  Transactions have a client side and a server side.  The client side
  is known as a client transaction and the server side as a server
  transaction.  The client transaction sends the request, and the
  server transaction sends the response.  The client and server
  transactions are logical functions that are embedded in any number of
  elements.  Specifically, they exist within user agents and stateful
  proxy servers.  Consider the example in Section 4.  In this example,
  the UAC executes the client transaction, and its outbound proxy
  executes the server transaction.  The outbound proxy also executes a
  client transaction, which sends the request to a server transaction
  in the inbound proxy.  That proxy also executes a client transaction,
  which in turn sends the request to a server transaction in the UAS.
  This is shown in Figure 4.

  +---------+        +---------+        +---------+        +---------+
  |      +-+|Request |+-+   +-+|Request |+-+   +-+|Request |+-+      |
  |      |C||------->||S|   |C||------->||S|   |C||------->||S|      |
  |      |l||        ||e|   |l||        ||e|   |l||        ||e|      |
  |      |i||        ||r|   |i||        ||r|   |i||        ||r|      |
  |      |e||        ||v|   |e||        ||v|   |e||        ||v|      |
  |      |n||        ||e|   |n||        ||e|   |n||        ||e|      |
  |      |t||        ||r|   |t||        ||r|   |t||        ||r|      |
  |      | ||        || |   | ||        || |   | ||        || |      |
  |      |T||        ||T|   |T||        ||T|   |T||        ||T|      |
  |      |r||        ||r|   |r||        ||r|   |r||        ||r|      |
  |      |a||        ||a|   |a||        ||a|   |a||        ||a|      |
  |      |n||        ||n|   |n||        ||n|   |n||        ||n|      |
  |      |s||Response||s|   |s||Response||s|   |s||Response||s|      |
  |      +-+|<-------|+-+   +-+|<-------|+-+   +-+|<-------|+-+      |
  +---------+        +---------+        +---------+        +---------+
     UAC               Outbound           Inbound              UAS
                       Proxy               Proxy

                 Figure 4: Transaction relationships

  A stateless proxy does not contain a client or server transaction.
  The transaction exists between the UA or stateful proxy on one side,
  and the UA or stateful proxy on the other side.  As far as SIP
  transactions are concerned, stateless proxies are effectively
  transparent.  The purpose of the client transaction is to receive a
  request from the element in which the client is embedded (call this
  element the "Transaction User" or TU; it can be a UA or a stateful
  proxy), and reliably deliver the request to a server transaction.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 123]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The client transaction is also responsible for receiving responses
  and delivering them to the TU, filtering out any response
  retransmissions or disallowed responses (such as a response to ACK).
  Additionally, in the case of an INVITE request, the client
  transaction is responsible for generating the ACK request for any
  final response accepting a 2xx response.

  Similarly, the purpose of the server transaction is to receive
  requests from the transport layer and deliver them to the TU.  The
  server transaction filters any request retransmissions from the
  network.  The server transaction accepts responses from the TU and
  delivers them to the transport layer for transmission over the
  network.  In the case of an INVITE transaction, it absorbs the ACK
  request for any final response excepting a 2xx response.

  The 2xx response and its ACK receive special treatment.  This
  response is retransmitted only by a UAS, and its ACK generated only
  by the UAC.  This end-to-end treatment is needed so that a caller
  knows the entire set of users that have accepted the call.  Because
  of this special handling, retransmissions of the 2xx response are
  handled by the UA core, not the transaction layer.  Similarly,
  generation of the ACK for the 2xx is handled by the UA core.  Each
  proxy along the path merely forwards each 2xx response to INVITE and
  its corresponding ACK.

17.1 Client Transaction

  The client transaction provides its functionality through the
  maintenance of a state machine.

  The TU communicates with the client transaction through a simple
  interface.  When the TU wishes to initiate a new transaction, it
  creates a client transaction and passes it the SIP request to send
  and an IP address, port, and transport to which to send it.  The
  client transaction begins execution of its state machine.  Valid
  responses are passed up to the TU from the client transaction.

  There are two types of client transaction state machines, depending
  on the method of the request passed by the TU.  One handles client
  transactions for INVITE requests.  This type of machine is referred
  to as an INVITE client transaction.  Another type handles client
  transactions for all requests except INVITE and ACK.  This is
  referred to as a non-INVITE client transaction.  There is no client
  transaction for ACK.  If the TU wishes to send an ACK, it passes one
  directly to the transport layer for transmission.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 124]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The INVITE transaction is different from those of other methods
  because of its extended duration.  Normally, human input is required
  in order to respond to an INVITE.  The long delays expected for
  sending a response argue for a three-way handshake.  On the other
  hand, requests of other methods are expected to complete rapidly.
  Because of the non-INVITE transaction's reliance on a two-way
  handshake, TUs SHOULD respond immediately to non-INVITE requests.

17.1.1 INVITE Client Transaction

17.1.1.1 Overview of INVITE Transaction

  The INVITE transaction consists of a three-way handshake.  The client
  transaction sends an INVITE, the server transaction sends responses,
  and the client transaction sends an ACK.  For unreliable transports
  (such as UDP), the client transaction retransmits requests at an
  interval that starts at T1 seconds and doubles after every
  retransmission.  T1 is an estimate of the round-trip time (RTT), and
  it defaults to 500 ms.  Nearly all of the transaction timers
  described here scale with T1, and changing T1 adjusts their values.
  The request is not retransmitted over reliable transports.  After
  receiving a 1xx response, any retransmissions cease altogether, and
  the client waits for further responses.  The server transaction can
  send additional 1xx responses, which are not transmitted reliably by
  the server transaction.  Eventually, the server transaction decides
  to send a final response.  For unreliable transports, that response
  is retransmitted periodically, and for reliable transports, it is
  sent once.  For each final response that is received at the client
  transaction, the client transaction sends an ACK, the purpose of
  which is to quench retransmissions of the response.

17.1.1.2 Formal Description

  The state machine for the INVITE client transaction is shown in
  Figure 5.  The initial state, "calling", MUST be entered when the TU
  initiates a new client transaction with an INVITE request.  The
  client transaction MUST pass the request to the transport layer for
  transmission (see Section 18).  If an unreliable transport is being
  used, the client transaction MUST start timer A with a value of T1.
  If a reliable transport is being used, the client transaction SHOULD
  NOT start timer A (Timer A controls request retransmissions).  For
  any transport, the client transaction MUST start timer B with a value
  of 64*T1 seconds (Timer B controls transaction timeouts).

  When timer A fires, the client transaction MUST retransmit the
  request by passing it to the transport layer, and MUST reset the
  timer with a value of 2*T1.  The formal definition of retransmit




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 125]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  within the context of the transaction layer is to take the message
  previously sent to the transport layer and pass it to the transport
  layer once more.

  When timer A fires 2*T1 seconds later, the request MUST be
  retransmitted again (assuming the client transaction is still in this
  state).  This process MUST continue so that the request is
  retransmitted with intervals that double after each transmission.
  These retransmissions SHOULD only be done while the client
  transaction is in the "calling" state.

  The default value for T1 is 500 ms.  T1 is an estimate of the RTT
  between the client and server transactions.  Elements MAY (though it
  is NOT RECOMMENDED) use smaller values of T1 within closed, private
  networks that do not permit general Internet connection.  T1 MAY be
  chosen larger, and this is RECOMMENDED if it is known in advance
  (such as on high latency access links) that the RTT is larger.
  Whatever the value of T1, the exponential backoffs on retransmissions
  described in this section MUST be used.

  If the client transaction is still in the "Calling" state when timer
  B fires, the client transaction SHOULD inform the TU that a timeout
  has occurred.  The client transaction MUST NOT generate an ACK.  The
  value of 64*T1 is equal to the amount of time required to send seven
  requests in the case of an unreliable transport.

  If the client transaction receives a provisional response while in
  the "Calling" state, it transitions to the "Proceeding" state. In the
  "Proceeding" state, the client transaction SHOULD NOT retransmit the
  request any longer. Furthermore, the provisional response MUST be
  passed to the TU.  Any further provisional responses MUST be passed
  up to the TU while in the "Proceeding" state.

  When in either the "Calling" or "Proceeding" states, reception of a
  response with status code from 300-699 MUST cause the client
  transaction to transition to "Completed".  The client transaction
  MUST pass the received response up to the TU, and the client
  transaction MUST generate an ACK request, even if the transport is
  reliable (guidelines for constructing the ACK from the response are
  given in Section 17.1.1.3) and then pass the ACK to the transport
  layer for transmission.  The ACK MUST be sent to the same address,
  port, and transport to which the original request was sent.  The
  client transaction SHOULD start timer D when it enters the
  "Completed" state, with a value of at least 32 seconds for unreliable
  transports, and a value of zero seconds for reliable transports.
  Timer D reflects the amount of time that the server transaction can
  remain in the "Completed" state when unreliable transports are used.
  This is equal to Timer H in the INVITE server transaction, whose



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 126]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  default is 64*T1.  However, the client transaction does not know the
  value of T1 in use by the server transaction, so an absolute minimum
  of 32s is used instead of basing Timer D on T1.

  Any retransmissions of the final response that are received while in
  the "Completed" state MUST cause the ACK to be re-passed to the
  transport layer for retransmission, but the newly received response
  MUST NOT be passed up to the TU.  A retransmission of the response is
  defined as any response which would match the same client transaction
  based on the rules of Section 17.1.3.









































Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 127]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


                              |INVITE from TU
            Timer A fires     |INVITE sent
            Reset A,          V                      Timer B fires
            INVITE sent +-----------+                or Transport Err.
              +---------|           |---------------+inform TU
              |         |  Calling  |               |
              +-------->|           |-------------->|
                        +-----------+ 2xx           |
                           |  |       2xx to TU     |
                           |  |1xx                  |
   300-699 +---------------+  |1xx to TU            |
  ACK sent |                  |                     |
resp. to TU |  1xx             V                     |
           |  1xx to TU  -----------+               |
           |  +---------|           |               |
           |  |         |Proceeding |-------------->|
           |  +-------->|           | 2xx           |
           |            +-----------+ 2xx to TU     |
           |       300-699    |                     |
           |       ACK sent,  |                     |
           |       resp. to TU|                     |
           |                  |                     |      NOTE:
           |  300-699         V                     |
           |  ACK sent  +-----------+Transport Err. |  transitions
           |  +---------|           |Inform TU      |  labeled with
           |  |         | Completed |-------------->|  the event
           |  +-------->|           |               |  over the action
           |            +-----------+               |  to take
           |              ^   |                     |
           |              |   | Timer D fires       |
           +--------------+   | -                   |
                              |                     |
                              V                     |
                        +-----------+               |
                        |           |               |
                        | Terminated|<--------------+
                        |           |
                        +-----------+

                Figure 5: INVITE client transaction

  If timer D fires while the client transaction is in the "Completed"
  state, the client transaction MUST move to the terminated state.

  When in either the "Calling" or "Proceeding" states, reception of a
  2xx response MUST cause the client transaction to enter the
  "Terminated" state, and the response MUST be passed up to the TU.
  The handling of this response depends on whether the TU is a proxy



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 128]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  core or a UAC core.  A UAC core will handle generation of the ACK for
  this response, while a proxy core will always forward the 200 (OK)
  upstream.  The differing treatment of 200 (OK) between proxy and UAC
  is the reason that handling of it does not take place in the
  transaction layer.

  The client transaction MUST be destroyed the instant it enters the
  "Terminated" state.  This is actually necessary to guarantee correct
  operation.  The reason is that 2xx responses to an INVITE are treated
  differently; each one is forwarded by proxies, and the ACK handling
  in a UAC is different.  Thus, each 2xx needs to be passed to a proxy
  core (so that it can be forwarded) and to a UAC core (so it can be
  acknowledged).  No transaction layer processing takes place.
  Whenever a response is received by the transport, if the transport
  layer finds no matching client transaction (using the rules of
  Section 17.1.3), the response is passed directly to the core.  Since
  the matching client transaction is destroyed by the first 2xx,
  subsequent 2xx will find no match and therefore be passed to the
  core.

17.1.1.3 Construction of the ACK Request

  This section specifies the construction of ACK requests sent within
  the client transaction.  A UAC core that generates an ACK for 2xx
  MUST instead follow the rules described in Section 13.

  The ACK request constructed by the client transaction MUST contain
  values for the Call-ID, From, and Request-URI that are equal to the
  values of those header fields in the request passed to the transport
  by the client transaction (call this the "original request").  The To
  header field in the ACK MUST equal the To header field in the
  response being acknowledged, and therefore will usually differ from
  the To header field in the original request by the addition of the
  tag parameter.  The ACK MUST contain a single Via header field, and
  this MUST be equal to the top Via header field of the original
  request.  The CSeq header field in the ACK MUST contain the same
  value for the sequence number as was present in the original request,
  but the method parameter MUST be equal to "ACK".













Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 129]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  If the INVITE request whose response is being acknowledged had Route
  header fields, those header fields MUST appear in the ACK.  This is
  to ensure that the ACK can be routed properly through any downstream
  stateless proxies.

  Although any request MAY contain a body, a body in an ACK is special
  since the request cannot be rejected if the body is not understood.
  Therefore, placement of bodies in ACK for non-2xx is NOT RECOMMENDED,
  but if done, the body types are restricted to any that appeared in
  the INVITE, assuming that the response to the INVITE was not 415.  If
  it was, the body in the ACK MAY be any type listed in the Accept
  header field in the 415.

  For example, consider the following request:

  INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
  Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKkjshdyff
  To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
  From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=88sja8x
  Max-Forwards: 70
  Call-ID: 987asjd97y7atg
  CSeq: 986759 INVITE

  The ACK request for a non-2xx final response to this request would
  look like this:

  ACK sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
  Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKkjshdyff
  To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=99sa0xk
  From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=88sja8x
  Max-Forwards: 70
  Call-ID: 987asjd97y7atg
  CSeq: 986759 ACK

17.1.2 Non-INVITE Client Transaction

17.1.2.1 Overview of the non-INVITE Transaction

  Non-INVITE transactions do not make use of ACK.  They are simple
  request-response interactions.  For unreliable transports, requests
  are retransmitted at an interval which starts at T1 and doubles until
  it hits T2.  If a provisional response is received, retransmissions
  continue for unreliable transports, but at an interval of T2.  The
  server transaction retransmits the last response it sent, which can
  be a provisional or final response, only when a retransmission of the
  request is received.  This is why request retransmissions need to
  continue even after a provisional response; they are to ensure
  reliable delivery of the final response.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 130]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Unlike an INVITE transaction, a non-INVITE transaction has no special
  handling for the 2xx response.  The result is that only a single 2xx
  response to a non-INVITE is ever delivered to a UAC.

17.1.2.2 Formal Description

  The state machine for the non-INVITE client transaction is shown in
  Figure 6.  It is very similar to the state machine for INVITE.

  The "Trying" state is entered when the TU initiates a new client
  transaction with a request.  When entering this state, the client
  transaction SHOULD set timer F to fire in 64*T1 seconds.  The request
  MUST be passed to the transport layer for transmission.  If an
  unreliable transport is in use, the client transaction MUST set timer
  E to fire in T1 seconds.  If timer E fires while still in this state,
  the timer is reset, but this time with a value of MIN(2*T1, T2).
  When the timer fires again, it is reset to a MIN(4*T1, T2).  This
  process continues so that retransmissions occur with an exponentially
  increasing interval that caps at T2.  The default value of T2 is 4s,
  and it represents the amount of time a non-INVITE server transaction
  will take to respond to a request, if it does not respond
  immediately.  For the default values of T1 and T2, this results in
  intervals of 500 ms, 1 s, 2 s, 4 s, 4 s, 4 s, etc.

  If Timer F fires while the client transaction is still in the
  "Trying" state, the client transaction SHOULD inform the TU about the
  timeout, and then it SHOULD enter the "Terminated" state.  If a
  provisional response is received while in the "Trying" state, the
  response MUST be passed to the TU, and then the client transaction
  SHOULD move to the "Proceeding" state.  If a final response (status
  codes 200-699) is received while in the "Trying" state, the response
  MUST be passed to the TU, and the client transaction MUST transition
  to the "Completed" state.

  If Timer E fires while in the "Proceeding" state, the request MUST be
  passed to the transport layer for retransmission, and Timer E MUST be
  reset with a value of T2 seconds.  If timer F fires while in the
  "Proceeding" state, the TU MUST be informed of a timeout, and the
  client transaction MUST transition to the terminated state.  If a
  final response (status codes 200-699) is received while in the
  "Proceeding" state, the response MUST be passed to the TU, and the
  client transaction MUST transition to the "Completed" state.

  Once the client transaction enters the "Completed" state, it MUST set
  Timer K to fire in T4 seconds for unreliable transports, and zero
  seconds for reliable transports.  The "Completed" state exists to
  buffer any additional response retransmissions that may be received
  (which is why the client transaction remains there only for



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 131]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  unreliable transports).  T4 represents the amount of time the network
  will take to clear messages between client and server transactions.
  The default value of T4 is 5s.  A response is a retransmission when
  it matches the same transaction, using the rules specified in Section
  17.1.3.  If Timer K fires while in this state, the client transaction
  MUST transition to the "Terminated" state.

  Once the transaction is in the terminated state, it MUST be destroyed
  immediately.

17.1.3 Matching Responses to Client Transactions

  When the transport layer in the client receives a response, it has to
  determine which client transaction will handle the response, so that
  the processing of Sections 17.1.1 and 17.1.2 can take place.  The
  branch parameter in the top Via header field is used for this
  purpose.  A response matches a client transaction under two
  conditions:

     1.  If the response has the same value of the branch parameter in
         the top Via header field as the branch parameter in the top
         Via header field of the request that created the transaction.

     2.  If the method parameter in the CSeq header field matches the
         method of the request that created the transaction.  The
         method is needed since a CANCEL request constitutes a
         different transaction, but shares the same value of the branch
         parameter.

  If a request is sent via multicast, it is possible that it will
  generate multiple responses from different servers.  These responses
  will all have the same branch parameter in the topmost Via, but vary
  in the To tag.  The first response received, based on the rules
  above, will be used, and others will be viewed as retransmissions.
  That is not an error; multicast SIP provides only a rudimentary
  "single-hop-discovery-like" service that is limited to processing a
  single response.  See Section 18.1.1 for details.














Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 132]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


17.1.4 Handling Transport Errors

                                  |Request from TU
                                  |send request
              Timer E             V
              send request  +-----------+
                  +---------|           |-------------------+
                  |         |  Trying   |  Timer F          |
                  +-------->|           |  or Transport Err.|
                            +-----------+  inform TU        |
               200-699         |  |                         |
               resp. to TU     |  |1xx                      |
               +---------------+  |resp. to TU              |
               |                  |                         |
               |   Timer E        V       Timer F           |
               |   send req +-----------+ or Transport Err. |
               |  +---------|           | inform TU         |
               |  |         |Proceeding |------------------>|
               |  +-------->|           |-----+             |
               |            +-----------+     |1xx          |
               |              |      ^        |resp to TU   |
               | 200-699      |      +--------+             |
               | resp. to TU  |                             |
               |              |                             |
               |              V                             |
               |            +-----------+                   |
               |            |           |                   |
               |            | Completed |                   |
               |            |           |                   |
               |            +-----------+                   |
               |              ^   |                         |
               |              |   | Timer K                 |
               +--------------+   | -                       |
                                  |                         |
                                  V                         |
            NOTE:           +-----------+                   |
                            |           |                   |
        transitions         | Terminated|<------------------+
        labeled with        |           |
        the event           +-----------+
        over the action
        to take

                Figure 6: non-INVITE client transaction

  When the client transaction sends a request to the transport layer to
  be sent, the following procedures are followed if the transport layer
  indicates a failure.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 133]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The client transaction SHOULD inform the TU that a transport failure
  has occurred, and the client transaction SHOULD transition directly
  to the "Terminated" state.  The TU will handle the failover
  mechanisms described in [4].

17.2 Server Transaction

  The server transaction is responsible for the delivery of requests to
  the TU and the reliable transmission of responses.  It accomplishes
  this through a state machine.  Server transactions are created by the
  core when a request is received, and transaction handling is desired
  for that request (this is not always the case).

  As with the client transactions, the state machine depends on whether
  the received request is an INVITE request.

17.2.1 INVITE Server Transaction

  The state diagram for the INVITE server transaction is shown in
  Figure 7.

  When a server transaction is constructed for a request, it enters the
  "Proceeding" state.  The server transaction MUST generate a 100
  (Trying) response unless it knows that the TU will generate a
  provisional or final response within 200 ms, in which case it MAY
  generate a 100 (Trying) response.  This provisional response is
  needed to quench request retransmissions rapidly in order to avoid
  network congestion.  The 100 (Trying) response is constructed
  according to the procedures in Section 8.2.6, except that the
  insertion of tags in the To header field of the response (when none
  was present in the request) is downgraded from MAY to SHOULD NOT.
  The request MUST be passed to the TU.

  The TU passes any number of provisional responses to the server
  transaction.  So long as the server transaction is in the
  "Proceeding" state, each of these MUST be passed to the transport
  layer for transmission.  They are not sent reliably by the
  transaction layer (they are not retransmitted by it) and do not cause
  a change in the state of the server transaction.  If a request
  retransmission is received while in the "Proceeding" state, the most
  recent provisional response that was received from the TU MUST be
  passed to the transport layer for retransmission.  A request is a
  retransmission if it matches the same server transaction based on the
  rules of Section 17.2.3.

  If, while in the "Proceeding" state, the TU passes a 2xx response to
  the server transaction, the server transaction MUST pass this
  response to the transport layer for transmission.  It is not



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 134]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  retransmitted by the server transaction; retransmissions of 2xx
  responses are handled by the TU.  The server transaction MUST then
  transition to the "Terminated" state.

  While in the "Proceeding" state, if the TU passes a response with
  status code from 300 to 699 to the server transaction, the response
  MUST be passed to the transport layer for transmission, and the state
  machine MUST enter the "Completed" state.  For unreliable transports,
  timer G is set to fire in T1 seconds, and is not set to fire for
  reliable transports.

     This is a change from RFC 2543, where responses were always
     retransmitted, even over reliable transports.

  When the "Completed" state is entered, timer H MUST be set to fire in
  64*T1 seconds for all transports.  Timer H determines when the server
  transaction abandons retransmitting the response.  Its value is
  chosen to equal Timer B, the amount of time a client transaction will
  continue to retry sending a request.  If timer G fires, the response
  is passed to the transport layer once more for retransmission, and
  timer G is set to fire in MIN(2*T1, T2) seconds.  From then on, when
  timer G fires, the response is passed to the transport again for
  transmission, and timer G is reset with a value that doubles, unless
  that value exceeds T2, in which case it is reset with the value of
  T2.  This is identical to the retransmit behavior for requests in the
  "Trying" state of the non-INVITE client transaction.  Furthermore,
  while in the "Completed" state, if a request retransmission is
  received, the server SHOULD pass the response to the transport for
  retransmission.

  If an ACK is received while the server transaction is in the
  "Completed" state, the server transaction MUST transition to the
  "Confirmed" state.  As Timer G is ignored in this state, any
  retransmissions of the response will cease.

  If timer H fires while in the "Completed" state, it implies that the
  ACK was never received.  In this case, the server transaction MUST
  transition to the "Terminated" state, and MUST indicate to the TU
  that a transaction failure has occurred.












Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 135]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


                              |INVITE
                              |pass INV to TU
           INVITE             V send 100 if TU won't in 200ms
           send response+-----------+
               +--------|           |--------+101-199 from TU
               |        | Proceeding|        |send response
               +------->|           |<-------+
                        |           |          Transport Err.
                        |           |          Inform TU
                        |           |--------------->+
                        +-----------+                |
           300-699 from TU |     |2xx from TU        |
           send response   |     |send response      |
                           |     +------------------>+
                           |                         |
           INVITE          V          Timer G fires  |
           send response+-----------+ send response  |
               +--------|           |--------+       |
               |        | Completed |        |       |
               +------->|           |<-------+       |
                        +-----------+                |
                           |     |                   |
                       ACK |     |                   |
                       -   |     +------------------>+
                           |        Timer H fires    |
                           V        or Transport Err.|
                        +-----------+  Inform TU     |
                        |           |                |
                        | Confirmed |                |
                        |           |                |
                        +-----------+                |
                              |                      |
                              |Timer I fires         |
                              |-                     |
                              |                      |
                              V                      |
                        +-----------+                |
                        |           |                |
                        | Terminated|<---------------+
                        |           |
                        +-----------+

             Figure 7: INVITE server transaction








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 136]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The purpose of the "Confirmed" state is to absorb any additional ACK
  messages that arrive, triggered from retransmissions of the final
  response.  When this state is entered, timer I is set to fire in T4
  seconds for unreliable transports, and zero seconds for reliable
  transports.  Once timer I fires, the server MUST transition to the
  "Terminated" state.

  Once the transaction is in the "Terminated" state, it MUST be
  destroyed immediately.  As with client transactions, this is needed
  to ensure reliability of the 2xx responses to INVITE.

17.2.2 Non-INVITE Server Transaction

  The state machine for the non-INVITE server transaction is shown in
  Figure 8.

  The state machine is initialized in the "Trying" state and is passed
  a request other than INVITE or ACK when initialized.  This request is
  passed up to the TU.  Once in the "Trying" state, any further request
  retransmissions are discarded.  A request is a retransmission if it
  matches the same server transaction, using the rules specified in
  Section 17.2.3.

  While in the "Trying" state, if the TU passes a provisional response
  to the server transaction, the server transaction MUST enter the
  "Proceeding" state.  The response MUST be passed to the transport
  layer for transmission.  Any further provisional responses that are
  received from the TU while in the "Proceeding" state MUST be passed
  to the transport layer for transmission.  If a retransmission of the
  request is received while in the "Proceeding" state, the most
  recently sent provisional response MUST be passed to the transport
  layer for retransmission.  If the TU passes a final response (status
  codes 200-699) to the server while in the "Proceeding" state, the
  transaction MUST enter the "Completed" state, and the response MUST
  be passed to the transport layer for transmission.

  When the server transaction enters the "Completed" state, it MUST set
  Timer J to fire in 64*T1 seconds for unreliable transports, and zero
  seconds for reliable transports.  While in the "Completed" state, the
  server transaction MUST pass the final response to the transport
  layer for retransmission whenever a retransmission of the request is
  received.  Any other final responses passed by the TU to the server
  transaction MUST be discarded while in the "Completed" state.  The
  server transaction remains in this state until Timer J fires, at
  which point it MUST transition to the "Terminated" state.

  The server transaction MUST be destroyed the instant it enters the
  "Terminated" state.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 137]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


17.2.3 Matching Requests to Server Transactions

  When a request is received from the network by the server, it has to
  be matched to an existing transaction.  This is accomplished in the
  following manner.

  The branch parameter in the topmost Via header field of the request
  is examined.  If it is present and begins with the magic cookie
  "z9hG4bK", the request was generated by a client transaction
  compliant to this specification.  Therefore, the branch parameter
  will be unique across all transactions sent by that client.  The
  request matches a transaction if:

     1. the branch parameter in the request is equal to the one in the
        top Via header field of the request that created the
        transaction, and

     2. the sent-by value in the top Via of the request is equal to the
        one in the request that created the transaction, and

     3. the method of the request matches the one that created the
        transaction, except for ACK, where the method of the request
        that created the transaction is INVITE.

  This matching rule applies to both INVITE and non-INVITE transactions
  alike.

     The sent-by value is used as part of the matching process because
     there could be accidental or malicious duplication of branch
     parameters from different clients.

  If the branch parameter in the top Via header field is not present,
  or does not contain the magic cookie, the following procedures are
  used.  These exist to handle backwards compatibility with RFC 2543
  compliant implementations.

  The INVITE request matches a transaction if the Request-URI, To tag,
  From tag, Call-ID, CSeq, and top Via header field match those of the
  INVITE request which created the transaction.  In this case, the
  INVITE is a retransmission of the original one that created the
  transaction.  The ACK request matches a transaction if the Request-
  URI, From tag, Call-ID, CSeq number (not the method), and top Via
  header field match those of the INVITE request which created the
  transaction, and the To tag of the ACK matches the To tag of the
  response sent by the server transaction.  Matching is done based on
  the matching rules defined for each of those header fields.
  Inclusion of the tag in the To header field in the ACK matching
  process helps disambiguate ACK for 2xx from ACK for other responses



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 138]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  at a proxy, which may have forwarded both responses (This can occur
  in unusual conditions.  Specifically, when a proxy forked a request,
  and then crashes, the responses may be delivered to another proxy,
  which might end up forwarding multiple responses upstream).  An ACK
  request that matches an INVITE transaction matched by a previous ACK
  is considered a retransmission of that previous ACK.













































Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 139]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


                                 |Request received
                                 |pass to TU
                                 V
                           +-----------+
                           |           |
                           | Trying    |-------------+
                           |           |             |
                           +-----------+             |200-699 from TU
                                 |                   |send response
                                 |1xx from TU        |
                                 |send response      |
                                 |                   |
              Request            V      1xx from TU  |
              send response+-----------+send response|
                  +--------|           |--------+    |
                  |        | Proceeding|        |    |
                  +------->|           |<-------+    |
           +<--------------|           |             |
           |Trnsprt Err    +-----------+             |
           |Inform TU            |                   |
           |                     |                   |
           |                     |200-699 from TU    |
           |                     |send response      |
           |  Request            V                   |
           |  send response+-----------+             |
           |      +--------|           |             |
           |      |        | Completed |<------------+
           |      +------->|           |
           +<--------------|           |
           |Trnsprt Err    +-----------+
           |Inform TU            |
           |                     |Timer J fires
           |                     |-
           |                     |
           |                     V
           |               +-----------+
           |               |           |
           +-------------->| Terminated|
                           |           |
                           +-----------+

               Figure 8: non-INVITE server transaction

  For all other request methods, a request is matched to a transaction
  if the Request-URI, To tag, From tag, Call-ID, CSeq (including the
  method), and top Via header field match those of the request that
  created the transaction.  Matching is done based on the matching




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 140]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  rules defined for each of those header fields.  When a non-INVITE
  request matches an existing transaction, it is a retransmission of
  the request that created that transaction.

  Because the matching rules include the Request-URI, the server cannot
  match a response to a transaction.  When the TU passes a response to
  the server transaction, it must pass it to the specific server
  transaction for which the response is targeted.

17.2.4 Handling Transport Errors

  When the server transaction sends a response to the transport layer
  to be sent, the following procedures are followed if the transport
  layer indicates a failure.

  First, the procedures in [4] are followed, which attempt to deliver
  the response to a backup.  If those should all fail, based on the
  definition of failure in [4], the server transaction SHOULD inform
  the TU that a failure has occurred, and SHOULD transition to the
  terminated state.

18 Transport

  The transport layer is responsible for the actual transmission of
  requests and responses over network transports.  This includes
  determination of the connection to use for a request or response in
  the case of connection-oriented transports.

  The transport layer is responsible for managing persistent
  connections for transport protocols like TCP and SCTP, or TLS over
  those, including ones opened to the transport layer.  This includes
  connections opened by the client or server transports, so that
  connections are shared between client and server transport functions.
  These connections are indexed by the tuple formed from the address,
  port, and transport protocol at the far end of the connection.  When
  a connection is opened by the transport layer, this index is set to
  the destination IP, port and transport.  When the connection is
  accepted by the transport layer, this index is set to the source IP
  address, port number, and transport.  Note that, because the source
  port is often ephemeral, but it cannot be known whether it is
  ephemeral or selected through procedures in [4], connections accepted
  by the transport layer will frequently not be reused.  The result is
  that two proxies in a "peering" relationship using a connection-
  oriented transport frequently will have two connections in use, one
  for transactions initiated in each direction.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 141]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  It is RECOMMENDED that connections be kept open for some
  implementation-defined duration after the last message was sent or
  received over that connection.  This duration SHOULD at least equal
  the longest amount of time the element would need in order to bring a
  transaction from instantiation to the terminated state.  This is to
  make it likely that transactions are completed over the same
  connection on which they are initiated (for example, request,
  response, and in the case of INVITE, ACK for non-2xx responses).
  This usually means at least 64*T1 (see Section 17.1.1.1 for a
  definition of T1).  However, it could be larger in an element that
  has a TU using a large value for timer C (bullet 11 of Section 16.6),
  for example.

  All SIP elements MUST implement UDP and TCP.  SIP elements MAY
  implement other protocols.

     Making TCP mandatory for the UA is a substantial change from RFC
     2543.  It has arisen out of the need to handle larger messages,
     which MUST use TCP, as discussed below.  Thus, even if an element
     never sends large messages, it may receive one and needs to be
     able to handle them.

18.1 Clients

18.1.1 Sending Requests

  The client side of the transport layer is responsible for sending the
  request and receiving responses.  The user of the transport layer
  passes the client transport the request, an IP address, port,
  transport, and possibly TTL for multicast destinations.

  If a request is within 200 bytes of the path MTU, or if it is larger
  than 1300 bytes and the path MTU is unknown, the request MUST be sent
  using an RFC 2914 [43] congestion controlled transport protocol, such
  as TCP. If this causes a change in the transport protocol from the
  one indicated in the top Via, the value in the top Via MUST be
  changed.  This prevents fragmentation of messages over UDP and
  provides congestion control for larger messages.  However,
  implementations MUST be able to handle messages up to the maximum
  datagram packet size.  For UDP, this size is 65,535 bytes, including
  IP and UDP headers.

     The 200 byte "buffer" between the message size and the MTU
     accommodates the fact that the response in SIP can be larger than
     the request.  This happens due to the addition of Record-Route
     header field values to the responses to INVITE, for example.  With
     the extra buffer, the response can be about 170 bytes larger than
     the request, and still not be fragmented on IPv4 (about 30 bytes



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 142]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     is consumed by IP/UDP, assuming no IPSec).  1300 is chosen when
     path MTU is not known, based on the assumption of a 1500 byte
     Ethernet MTU.

  If an element sends a request over TCP because of these message size
  constraints, and that request would have otherwise been sent over
  UDP, if the attempt to establish the connection generates either an
  ICMP Protocol Not Supported, or results in a TCP reset, the element
  SHOULD retry the request, using UDP.  This is only to provide
  backwards compatibility with RFC 2543 compliant implementations that
  do not support TCP.  It is anticipated that this behavior will be
  deprecated in a future revision of this specification.

  A client that sends a request to a multicast address MUST add the
  "maddr" parameter to its Via header field value containing the
  destination multicast address, and for IPv4, SHOULD add the "ttl"
  parameter with a value of 1.  Usage of IPv6 multicast is not defined
  in this specification, and will be a subject of future
  standardization when the need arises.

  These rules result in a purposeful limitation of multicast in SIP.
  Its primary function is to provide a "single-hop-discovery-like"
  service, delivering a request to a group of homogeneous servers,
  where it is only required to process the response from any one of
  them.  This functionality is most useful for registrations.  In fact,
  based on the transaction processing rules in Section 17.1.3, the
  client transaction will accept the first response, and view any
  others as retransmissions because they all contain the same Via
  branch identifier.

  Before a request is sent, the client transport MUST insert a value of
  the "sent-by" field into the Via header field.  This field contains
  an IP address or host name, and port.  The usage of an FQDN is
  RECOMMENDED.  This field is used for sending responses under certain
  conditions, described below.  If the port is absent, the default
  value depends on the transport.  It is 5060 for UDP, TCP and SCTP,
  5061 for TLS.

  For reliable transports, the response is normally sent on the
  connection on which the request was received.  Therefore, the client
  transport MUST be prepared to receive the response on the same
  connection used to send the request.  Under error conditions, the
  server may attempt to open a new connection to send the response.  To
  handle this case, the transport layer MUST also be prepared to
  receive an incoming connection on the source IP address from which
  the request was sent and port number in the "sent-by" field.  It also





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 143]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  MUST be prepared to receive incoming connections on any address and
  port that would be selected by a server based on the procedures
  described in Section 5 of [4].

  For unreliable unicast transports, the client transport MUST be
  prepared to receive responses on the source IP address from which the
  request is sent (as responses are sent back to the source address)
  and the port number in the "sent-by" field.  Furthermore, as with
  reliable transports, in certain cases the response will be sent
  elsewhere.  The client MUST be prepared to receive responses on any
  address and port that would be selected by a server based on the
  procedures described in Section 5 of [4].

  For multicast, the client transport MUST be prepared to receive
  responses on the same multicast group and port to which the request
  is sent (that is, it needs to be a member of the multicast group it
  sent the request to.)

  If a request is destined to an IP address, port, and transport to
  which an existing connection is open, it is RECOMMENDED that this
  connection be used to send the request, but another connection MAY be
  opened and used.

  If a request is sent using multicast, it is sent to the group
  address, port, and TTL provided by the transport user.  If a request
  is sent using unicast unreliable transports, it is sent to the IP
  address and port provided by the transport user.

18.1.2 Receiving Responses

  When a response is received, the client transport examines the top
  Via header field value.  If the value of the "sent-by" parameter in
  that header field value does not correspond to a value that the
  client transport is configured to insert into requests, the response
  MUST be silently discarded.

  If there are any client transactions in existence, the client
  transport uses the matching procedures of Section 17.1.3 to attempt
  to match the response to an existing transaction.  If there is a
  match, the response MUST be passed to that transaction.  Otherwise,
  the response MUST be passed to the core (whether it be stateless
  proxy, stateful proxy, or UA) for further processing.  Handling of
  these "stray" responses is dependent on the core (a proxy will
  forward them, while a UA will discard, for example).







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 144]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


18.2 Servers

18.2.1 Receiving Requests

  A server SHOULD be prepared to receive requests on any IP address,
  port and transport combination that can be the result of a DNS lookup
  on a SIP or SIPS URI [4] that is handed out for the purposes of
  communicating with that server.  In this context, "handing out"
  includes placing a URI in a Contact header field in a REGISTER
  request or a redirect response, or in a Record-Route header field in
  a request or response.  A URI can also be "handed out" by placing it
  on a web page or business card.  It is also RECOMMENDED that a server
  listen for requests on the default SIP ports (5060 for TCP and UDP,
  5061 for TLS over TCP) on all public interfaces.  The typical
  exception would be private networks, or when multiple server
  instances are running on the same host.  For any port and interface
  that a server listens on for UDP, it MUST listen on that same port
  and interface for TCP.  This is because a message may need to be sent
  using TCP, rather than UDP, if it is too large.  As a result, the
  converse is not true.  A server need not listen for UDP on a
  particular address and port just because it is listening on that same
  address and port for TCP.  There may, of course, be other reasons why
  a server needs to listen for UDP on a particular address and port.

  When the server transport receives a request over any transport, it
  MUST examine the value of the "sent-by" parameter in the top Via
  header field value.  If the host portion of the "sent-by" parameter
  contains a domain name, or if it contains an IP address that differs
  from the packet source address, the server MUST add a "received"
  parameter to that Via header field value.  This parameter MUST
  contain the source address from which the packet was received.  This
  is to assist the server transport layer in sending the response,
  since it must be sent to the source IP address from which the request
  came.

  Consider a request received by the server transport which looks like,
  in part:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bobspc.biloxi.com:5060

  The request is received with a source IP address of 192.0.2.4.
  Before passing the request up, the transport adds a "received"
  parameter, so that the request would look like, in part:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bobspc.biloxi.com:5060;received=192.0.2.4




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 145]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Next, the server transport attempts to match the request to a server
  transaction.  It does so using the matching rules described in
  Section 17.2.3.  If a matching server transaction is found, the
  request is passed to that transaction for processing.  If no match is
  found, the request is passed to the core, which may decide to
  construct a new server transaction for that request.  Note that when
  a UAS core sends a 2xx response to INVITE, the server transaction is
  destroyed.  This means that when the ACK arrives, there will be no
  matching server transaction, and based on this rule, the ACK is
  passed to the UAS core, where it is processed.

18.2.2 Sending Responses

  The server transport uses the value of the top Via header field in
  order to determine where to send a response.  It MUST follow the
  following process:

     o  If the "sent-protocol" is a reliable transport protocol such as
        TCP or SCTP, or TLS over those, the response MUST be sent using
        the existing connection to the source of the original request
        that created the transaction, if that connection is still open.
        This requires the server transport to maintain an association
        between server transactions and transport connections.  If that
        connection is no longer open, the server SHOULD open a
        connection to the IP address in the "received" parameter, if
        present, using the port in the "sent-by" value, or the default
        port for that transport, if no port is specified.  If that
        connection attempt fails, the server SHOULD use the procedures
        in [4] for servers in order to determine the IP address and
        port to open the connection and send the response to.

     o  Otherwise, if the Via header field value contains a "maddr"
        parameter, the response MUST be forwarded to the address listed
        there, using the port indicated in "sent-by", or port 5060 if
        none is present.  If the address is a multicast address, the
        response SHOULD be sent using the TTL indicated in the "ttl"
        parameter, or with a TTL of 1 if that parameter is not present.

     o  Otherwise (for unreliable unicast transports), if the top Via
        has a "received" parameter, the response MUST be sent to the
        address in the "received" parameter, using the port indicated
        in the "sent-by" value, or using port 5060 if none is specified
        explicitly.  If this fails, for example, elicits an ICMP "port
        unreachable" response, the procedures of Section 5 of [4]
        SHOULD be used to determine where to send the response.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 146]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     o  Otherwise, if it is not receiver-tagged, the response MUST be
        sent to the address indicated by the "sent-by" value, using the
        procedures in Section 5 of [4].

18.3 Framing

  In the case of message-oriented transports (such as UDP), if the
  message has a Content-Length header field, the message body is
  assumed to contain that many bytes.  If there are additional bytes in
  the transport packet beyond the end of the body, they MUST be
  discarded.  If the transport packet ends before the end of the
  message body, this is considered an error.  If the message is a
  response, it MUST be discarded.  If the message is a request, the
  element SHOULD generate a 400 (Bad Request) response.  If the message
  has no Content-Length header field, the message body is assumed to
  end at the end of the transport packet.

  In the case of stream-oriented transports such as TCP, the Content-
  Length header field indicates the size of the body.  The Content-
  Length header field MUST be used with stream oriented transports.

18.4 Error Handling

  Error handling is independent of whether the message was a request or
  response.

  If the transport user asks for a message to be sent over an
  unreliable transport, and the result is an ICMP error, the behavior
  depends on the type of ICMP error.  Host, network, port or protocol
  unreachable errors, or parameter problem errors SHOULD cause the
  transport layer to inform the transport user of a failure in sending.
  Source quench and TTL exceeded ICMP errors SHOULD be ignored.

  If the transport user asks for a request to be sent over a reliable
  transport, and the result is a connection failure, the transport
  layer SHOULD inform the transport user of a failure in sending.

19 Common Message Components

  There are certain components of SIP messages that appear in various
  places within SIP messages (and sometimes, outside of them) that
  merit separate discussion.









Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 147]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


19.1 SIP and SIPS Uniform Resource Indicators

  A SIP or SIPS URI identifies a communications resource.  Like all
  URIs, SIP and SIPS URIs may be placed in web pages, email messages,
  or printed literature.  They contain sufficient information to
  initiate and maintain a communication session with the resource.

  Examples of communications resources include the following:

     o  a user of an online service

     o  an appearance on a multi-line phone

     o  a mailbox on a messaging system

     o  a PSTN number at a gateway service

     o  a group (such as "sales" or "helpdesk") in an organization

  A SIPS URI specifies that the resource be contacted securely.  This
  means, in particular, that TLS is to be used between the UAC and the
  domain that owns the URI.  From there, secure communications are used
  to reach the user, where the specific security mechanism depends on
  the policy of the domain.  Any resource described by a SIP URI can be
  "upgraded" to a SIPS URI by just changing the scheme, if it is
  desired to communicate with that resource securely.

19.1.1 SIP and SIPS URI Components

  The "sip:" and "sips:" schemes follow the guidelines in RFC 2396 [5].
  They use a form similar to the mailto URL, allowing the specification
  of SIP request-header fields and the SIP message-body.  This makes it
  possible to specify the subject, media type, or urgency of sessions
  initiated by using a URI on a web page or in an email message.  The
  formal syntax for a SIP or SIPS URI is presented in Section 25.  Its
  general form, in the case of a SIP URI, is:

     sip:user:password@host:port;uri-parameters?headers

  The format for a SIPS URI is the same, except that the scheme is
  "sips" instead of sip.  These tokens, and some of the tokens in their
  expansions, have the following meanings:

     user: The identifier of a particular resource at the host being
        addressed.  The term "host" in this context frequently refers
        to a domain.  The "userinfo" of a URI consists of this user
        field, the password field, and the @ sign following them.  The
        userinfo part of a URI is optional and MAY be absent when the



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 148]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        destination host does not have a notion of users or when the
        host itself is the resource being identified.  If the @ sign is
        present in a SIP or SIPS URI, the user field MUST NOT be empty.

        If the host being addressed can process telephone numbers, for
        instance, an Internet telephony gateway, a telephone-
        subscriber field defined in RFC 2806 [9] MAY be used to
        populate the user field.  There are special escaping rules for
        encoding telephone-subscriber fields in SIP and SIPS URIs
        described in Section 19.1.2.

     password: A password associated with the user.  While the SIP and
        SIPS URI syntax allows this field to be present, its use is NOT
        RECOMMENDED, because the passing of authentication information
        in clear text (such as URIs) has proven to be a security risk
        in almost every case where it has been used.  For instance,
        transporting a PIN number in this field exposes the PIN.

        Note that the password field is just an extension of the user
        portion.  Implementations not wishing to give special
        significance to the password portion of the field MAY simply
        treat "user:password" as a single string.

     host: The host providing the SIP resource.  The host part contains
        either a fully-qualified domain name or numeric IPv4 or IPv6
        address.  Using the fully-qualified domain name form is
        RECOMMENDED whenever possible.

     port: The port number where the request is to be sent.

     URI parameters: Parameters affecting a request constructed from
        the URI.

        URI parameters are added after the hostport component and are
        separated by semi-colons.

        URI parameters take the form:

           parameter-name "=" parameter-value

        Even though an arbitrary number of URI parameters may be
        included in a URI, any given parameter-name MUST NOT appear
        more than once.

        This extensible mechanism includes the transport, maddr, ttl,
        user, method and lr parameters.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 149]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        The transport parameter determines the transport mechanism to
        be used for sending SIP messages, as specified in [4].  SIP can
        use any network transport protocol.  Parameter names are
        defined for UDP (RFC 768 [14]), TCP (RFC 761 [15]), and SCTP
        (RFC 2960 [16]).  For a SIPS URI, the transport parameter MUST
        indicate a reliable transport.

        The maddr parameter indicates the server address to be
        contacted for this user, overriding any address derived from
        the host field.  When an maddr parameter is present, the port
        and transport components of the URI apply to the address
        indicated in the maddr parameter value.  [4] describes the
        proper interpretation of the transport, maddr, and hostport in
        order to obtain the destination address, port, and transport
        for sending a request.

        The maddr field has been used as a simple form of loose source
        routing.  It allows a URI to specify a proxy that must be
        traversed en-route to the destination.  Continuing to use the
        maddr parameter this way is strongly discouraged (the
        mechanisms that enable it are deprecated).  Implementations
        should instead use the Route mechanism described in this
        document, establishing a pre-existing route set if necessary
        (see Section 8.1.1.1).  This provides a full URI to describe
        the node to be traversed.

        The ttl parameter determines the time-to-live value of the UDP
        multicast packet and MUST only be used if maddr is a multicast
        address and the transport protocol is UDP.  For example, to
        specify a call to [email protected] using multicast to
        239.255.255.1 with a ttl of 15, the following URI would be
        used:

           sip:[email protected];maddr=239.255.255.1;ttl=15

        The set of valid telephone-subscriber strings is a subset of
        valid user strings.  The user URI parameter exists to
        distinguish telephone numbers from user names that happen to
        look like telephone numbers.  If the user string contains a
        telephone number formatted as a telephone-subscriber, the user
        parameter value "phone" SHOULD be present.  Even without this
        parameter, recipients of SIP and SIPS URIs MAY interpret the
        pre-@ part as a telephone number if local restrictions on the
        name space for user name allow it.

        The method of the SIP request constructed from the URI can be
        specified with the method parameter.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 150]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        The lr parameter, when present, indicates that the element
        responsible for this resource implements the routing mechanisms
        specified in this document.  This parameter will be used in the
        URIs proxies place into Record-Route header field values, and
        may appear in the URIs in a pre-existing route set.

        This parameter is used to achieve backwards compatibility with
        systems implementing the strict-routing mechanisms of RFC 2543
        and the rfc2543bis drafts up to bis-05.  An element preparing
        to send a request based on a URI not containing this parameter
        can assume the receiving element implements strict-routing and
        reformat the message to preserve the information in the
        Request-URI.

        Since the uri-parameter mechanism is extensible, SIP elements
        MUST silently ignore any uri-parameters that they do not
        understand.

     Headers: Header fields to be included in a request constructed
        from the URI.

        Headers fields in the SIP request can be specified with the "?"
        mechanism within a URI.  The header names and values are
        encoded in ampersand separated hname = hvalue pairs.  The
        special hname "body" indicates that the associated hvalue is
        the message-body of the SIP request.

  Table 1 summarizes the use of SIP and SIPS URI components based on
  the context in which the URI appears.  The external column describes
  URIs appearing anywhere outside of a SIP message, for instance on a
  web page or business card.  Entries marked "m" are mandatory, those
  marked "o" are optional, and those marked "-" are not allowed.
  Elements processing URIs SHOULD ignore any disallowed components if
  they are present.  The second column indicates the default value of
  an optional element if it is not present.  "--" indicates that the
  element is either not optional, or has no default value.

  URIs in Contact header fields have different restrictions depending
  on the context in which the header field appears.  One set applies to
  messages that establish and maintain dialogs (INVITE and its 200 (OK)
  response).  The other applies to registration and redirection
  messages (REGISTER, its 200 (OK) response, and 3xx class responses to
  any method).








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 151]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


19.1.2 Character Escaping Requirements

                                                      dialog
                                         reg./redir. Contact/
             default  Req.-URI  To  From  Contact   R-R/Route  external
user          --          o      o    o       o          o         o
password      --          o      o    o       o          o         o
host          --          m      m    m       m          m         m
port          (1)         o      -    -       o          o         o
user-param    ip          o      o    o       o          o         o
method        INVITE      -      -    -       -          -         o
maddr-param   --          o      -    -       o          o         o
ttl-param     1           o      -    -       o          -         o
transp.-param (2)         o      -    -       o          o         o
lr-param      --          o      -    -       -          o         o
other-param   --          o      o    o       o          o         o
headers       --          -      -    -       o          -         o

  (1): The default port value is transport and scheme dependent.  The
  default  is  5060  for  sip: using UDP, TCP, or SCTP.  The default is
  5061 for sip: using TLS over TCP and sips: over TCP.

  (2): The default transport is scheme dependent.  For sip:, it is UDP.
  For sips:, it is TCP.

  Table 1: Use and default values of URI components for SIP header
  field values, Request-URI and references

  SIP follows the requirements and guidelines of RFC 2396 [5] when
  defining the set of characters that must be escaped in a SIP URI, and
  uses its ""%" HEX HEX" mechanism for escaping.  From RFC 2396 [5]:

     The set of characters actually reserved within any given URI
     component is defined by that component.  In general, a character
     is reserved if the semantics of the URI changes if the character
     is replaced with its escaped US-ASCII encoding [5].  Excluded US-
     ASCII characters (RFC 2396 [5]), such as space and control
     characters and characters used as URI delimiters, also MUST be
     escaped.  URIs MUST NOT contain unescaped space and control
     characters.

  For each component, the set of valid BNF expansions defines exactly
  which characters may appear unescaped.  All other characters MUST be
  escaped.

  For example, "@" is not in the set of characters in the user
  component, so the user "j@s0n" must have at least the @ sign encoded,
  as in "j%40s0n".



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 152]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Expanding the hname and hvalue tokens in Section 25 show that all URI
  reserved characters in header field names and values MUST be escaped.

  The telephone-subscriber subset of the user component has special
  escaping considerations.  The set of characters not reserved in the
  RFC 2806 [9] description of telephone-subscriber contains a number of
  characters in various syntax elements that need to be escaped when
  used in SIP URIs.  Any characters occurring in a telephone-subscriber
  that do not appear in an expansion of the BNF for the user rule MUST
  be escaped.

  Note that character escaping is not allowed in the host component of
  a SIP or SIPS URI (the % character is not valid in its expansion).
  This is likely to change in the future as requirements for
  Internationalized Domain Names are finalized.  Current
  implementations MUST NOT attempt to improve robustness by treating
  received escaped characters in the host component as literally
  equivalent to their unescaped counterpart.  The behavior required to
  meet the requirements of IDN may be significantly different.

19.1.3 Example SIP and SIPS URIs

  sip:[email protected]
  sip:alice:[email protected];transport=tcp
  sips:[email protected]?subject=project%20x&priority=urgent
  sip:+1-212-555-1212:[email protected];user=phone
  sips:[email protected]
  sip:[email protected]
  sip:atlanta.com;method=REGISTER?to=alice%40atlanta.com
  sip:alice;[email protected]

  The last sample URI above has a user field value of
  "alice;day=tuesday".  The escaping rules defined above allow a
  semicolon to appear unescaped in this field.  For the purposes of
  this protocol, the field is opaque.  The structure of that value is
  only useful to the SIP element responsible for the resource.

19.1.4 URI Comparison

  Some operations in this specification require determining whether two
  SIP or SIPS URIs are equivalent.  In this specification, registrars
  need to compare bindings in Contact URIs in REGISTER requests (see
  Section 10.3.).  SIP and SIPS URIs are compared for equality
  according to the following rules:

     o  A SIP and SIPS URI are never equivalent.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 153]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     o  Comparison of the userinfo of SIP and SIPS URIs is case-
        sensitive.  This includes userinfo containing passwords or
        formatted as telephone-subscribers.  Comparison of all other
        components of the URI is case-insensitive unless explicitly
        defined otherwise.

     o  The ordering of parameters and header fields is not significant
        in comparing SIP and SIPS URIs.

     o  Characters other than those in the "reserved" set (see RFC 2396
        [5]) are equivalent to their ""%" HEX HEX" encoding.

     o  An IP address that is the result of a DNS lookup of a host name
        does not match that host name.

     o  For two URIs to be equal, the user, password, host, and port
        components must match.

        A URI omitting the user component will not match a URI that
        includes one.  A URI omitting the password component will not
        match a URI that includes one.

        A URI omitting any component with a default value will not
        match a URI explicitly containing that component with its
        default value.  For instance, a URI omitting the optional port
        component will not match a URI explicitly declaring port 5060.
        The same is true for the transport-parameter, ttl-parameter,
        user-parameter, and method components.

           Defining sip:user@host to not be equivalent to
           sip:user@host:5060 is a change from RFC 2543.  When deriving
           addresses from URIs, equivalent addresses are expected from
           equivalent URIs.  The URI sip:user@host:5060 will always
           resolve to port 5060.  The URI sip:user@host may resolve to
           other ports through the DNS SRV mechanisms detailed in [4].

     o  URI uri-parameter components are compared as follows:

        -  Any uri-parameter appearing in both URIs must match.

        -  A user, ttl, or method uri-parameter appearing in only one
           URI never matches, even if it contains the default value.

        -  A URI that includes an maddr parameter will not match a URI
           that contains no maddr parameter.

        -  All other uri-parameters appearing in only one URI are
           ignored when comparing the URIs.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 154]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     o  URI header components are never ignored.  Any present header
        component MUST be present in both URIs and match for the URIs
        to match.  The matching rules are defined for each header field
        in Section 20.

  The URIs within each of the following sets are equivalent:

  sip:%[email protected];transport=TCP
  sip:[email protected];Transport=tcp

  sip:[email protected]
  sip:[email protected];newparam=5
  sip:[email protected];security=on

  sip:biloxi.com;transport=tcp;method=REGISTER?to=sip:bob%40biloxi.com
  sip:biloxi.com;method=REGISTER;transport=tcp?to=sip:bob%40biloxi.com

  sip:[email protected]?subject=project%20x&priority=urgent
  sip:[email protected]?priority=urgent&subject=project%20x

  The URIs within each of the following sets are not equivalent:

  SIP:[email protected];Transport=udp             (different usernames)
  sip:[email protected];Transport=UDP

  sip:[email protected]                   (can resolve to different ports)
  sip:[email protected]:5060

  sip:[email protected]              (can resolve to different transports)
  sip:[email protected];transport=udp

  sip:[email protected]     (can resolve to different port and transports)
  sip:[email protected]:6000;transport=tcp

  sip:[email protected]                    (different header component)
  sip:[email protected]?Subject=next%20meeting

  sip:[email protected]   (even though that's what
  sip:[email protected]                 phone21.boxesbybob.com resolves to)

  Note that equality is not transitive:

     o  sip:[email protected] and sip:[email protected];security=on are
        equivalent

     o  sip:[email protected] and sip:[email protected];security=off
        are equivalent




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 155]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     o  sip:[email protected];security=on and
        sip:[email protected];security=off are not equivalent

19.1.5 Forming Requests from a URI

  An implementation needs to take care when forming requests directly
  from a URI.  URIs from business cards, web pages, and even from
  sources inside the protocol such as registered contacts may contain
  inappropriate header fields or body parts.

  An implementation MUST include any provided transport, maddr, ttl, or
  user parameter in the Request-URI of the formed request.  If the URI
  contains a method parameter, its value MUST be used as the method of
  the request.  The method parameter MUST NOT be placed in the
  Request-URI.  Unknown URI parameters MUST be placed in the message's
  Request-URI.

  An implementation SHOULD treat the presence of any headers or body
  parts in the URI as a desire to include them in the message, and
  choose to honor the request on a per-component basis.

  An implementation SHOULD NOT honor these obviously dangerous header
  fields: From, Call-ID, CSeq, Via, and Record-Route.

  An implementation SHOULD NOT honor any requested Route header field
  values in order to not be used as an unwitting agent in malicious
  attacks.

  An implementation SHOULD NOT honor requests to include header fields
  that may cause it to falsely advertise its location or capabilities.
  These include: Accept, Accept-Encoding, Accept-Language, Allow,
  Contact (in its dialog usage), Organization, Supported, and User-
  Agent.

  An implementation SHOULD verify the accuracy of any requested
  descriptive header fields, including: Content-Disposition, Content-
  Encoding, Content-Language, Content-Length, Content-Type, Date,
  Mime-Version, and Timestamp.

  If the request formed from constructing a message from a given URI is
  not a valid SIP request, the URI is invalid.  An implementation MUST
  NOT proceed with transmitting the request.  It should instead pursue
  the course of action due an invalid URI in the context it occurs.

     The constructed request can be invalid in many ways.  These
     include, but are not limited to, syntax error in header fields,
     invalid combinations of URI parameters, or an incorrect
     description of the message body.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 156]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Sending a request formed from a given URI may require capabilities
  unavailable to the implementation.  The URI might indicate use of an
  unimplemented transport or extension, for example.  An implementation
  SHOULD refuse to send these requests rather than modifying them to
  match their capabilities.  An implementation MUST NOT send a request
  requiring an extension that it does not support.

     For example, such a request can be formed through the presence of
     a Require header parameter or a method URI parameter with an
     unknown or explicitly unsupported value.

19.1.6 Relating SIP URIs and tel URLs

  When a tel URL (RFC 2806 [9]) is converted to a SIP or SIPS URI, the
  entire telephone-subscriber portion of the tel URL, including any
  parameters, is placed into the userinfo part of the SIP or SIPS URI.

  Thus, tel:+358-555-1234567;postd=pp22 becomes

     sip:+358-555-1234567;[email protected];user=phone

  or
     sips:+358-555-1234567;[email protected];user=phone

  not
     sip:[email protected];postd=pp22;user=phone

  or

     sips:[email protected];postd=pp22;user=phone

  In general, equivalent "tel" URLs converted to SIP or SIPS URIs in
  this fashion may not produce equivalent SIP or SIPS URIs.  The
  userinfo of SIP and SIPS URIs are compared as a case-sensitive
  string.  Variance in case-insensitive portions of tel URLs and
  reordering of tel URL parameters does not affect tel URL equivalence,
  but does affect the equivalence of SIP URIs formed from them.

  For example,

     tel:+358-555-1234567;postd=pp22
     tel:+358-555-1234567;POSTD=PP22

  are equivalent, while

     sip:+358-555-1234567;[email protected];user=phone
     sip:+358-555-1234567;[email protected];user=phone




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 157]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  are not.

  Likewise,

     tel:+358-555-1234567;postd=pp22;isub=1411
     tel:+358-555-1234567;isub=1411;postd=pp22

  are equivalent, while

     sip:+358-555-1234567;postd=pp22;[email protected];user=phone
     sip:+358-555-1234567;isub=1411;[email protected];user=phone

  are not.

  To mitigate this problem, elements constructing telephone-subscriber
  fields to place in the userinfo part of a SIP or SIPS URI SHOULD fold
  any case-insensitive portion of telephone-subscriber to lower case,
  and order the telephone-subscriber parameters lexically by parameter
  name, excepting isdn-subaddress and post-dial, which occur first and
  in that order.  (All components of a tel URL except for future-
  extension parameters are defined to be compared case-insensitive.)

  Following this suggestion, both

     tel:+358-555-1234567;postd=pp22
     tel:+358-555-1234567;POSTD=PP22

     become

       sip:+358-555-1234567;[email protected];user=phone

  and both

       tel:+358-555-1234567;tsp=a.b;phone-context=5
       tel:+358-555-1234567;phone-context=5;tsp=a.b

     become

       sip:+358-555-1234567;phone-context=5;[email protected];user=phone

19.2 Option Tags

  Option tags are unique identifiers used to designate new options
  (extensions) in SIP.  These tags are used in Require (Section 20.32),
  Proxy-Require (Section 20.29), Supported (Section 20.37) and
  Unsupported (Section 20.40) header fields.  Note that these options
  appear as parameters in those header fields in an option-tag = token
  form (see Section 25 for the definition of token).



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 158]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Option tags are defined in standards track RFCs.  This is a change
  from past practice, and is instituted to ensure continuing multi-
  vendor interoperability (see discussion in Section 20.32 and Section
  20.37).  An IANA registry of option tags is used to ensure easy
  reference.

19.3 Tags

  The "tag" parameter is used in the To and From header fields of SIP
  messages.  It serves as a general mechanism to identify a dialog,
  which is the combination of the Call-ID along with two tags, one from
  each participant in the dialog.  When a UA sends a request outside of
  a dialog, it contains a From tag only, providing "half" of the dialog
  ID.  The dialog is completed from the response(s), each of which
  contributes the second half in the To header field.  The forking of
  SIP requests means that multiple dialogs can be established from a
  single request.  This also explains the need for the two-sided dialog
  identifier; without a contribution from the recipients, the
  originator could not disambiguate the multiple dialogs established
  from a single request.

  When a tag is generated by a UA for insertion into a request or
  response, it MUST be globally unique and cryptographically random
  with at least 32 bits of randomness.  A property of this selection
  requirement is that a UA will place a different tag into the From
  header of an INVITE than it would place into the To header of the
  response to the same INVITE.  This is needed in order for a UA to
  invite itself to a session, a common case for "hairpinning" of calls
  in PSTN gateways.  Similarly, two INVITEs for different calls will
  have different From tags, and two responses for different calls will
  have different To tags.

  Besides the requirement for global uniqueness, the algorithm for
  generating a tag is implementation-specific.  Tags are helpful in
  fault tolerant systems, where a dialog is to be recovered on an
  alternate server after a failure.  A UAS can select the tag in such a
  way that a backup can recognize a request as part of a dialog on the
  failed server, and therefore determine that it should attempt to
  recover the dialog and any other state associated with it.

20 Header Fields

  The general syntax for header fields is covered in Section 7.3.  This
  section lists the full set of header fields along with notes on
  syntax, meaning, and usage.  Throughout this section, we use [HX.Y]
  to refer to Section X.Y of the current HTTP/1.1 specification RFC
  2616 [8].  Examples of each header field are given.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 159]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Information about header fields in relation to methods and proxy
  processing is summarized in Tables 2 and 3.

  The "where" column describes the request and response types in which
  the header field can be used.  Values in this column are:

     R: header field may only appear in requests;

     r: header field may only appear in responses;

     2xx, 4xx, etc.: A numerical value or range indicates response
          codes with which the header field can be used;

     c: header field is copied from the request to the response.

     An empty entry in the "where" column indicates that the header
          field may be present in all requests and responses.

  The "proxy" column describes the operations a proxy may perform on a
  header field:

     a: A proxy can add or concatenate the header field if not present.

     m: A proxy can modify an existing header field value.

     d: A proxy can delete a header field value.

     r: A proxy must be able to read the header field, and thus this
          header field cannot be encrypted.

  The next six columns relate to the presence of a header field in a
  method:

     c: Conditional; requirements on the header field depend on the
          context of the message.

     m: The header field is mandatory.

     m*: The header field SHOULD be sent, but clients/servers need to
          be prepared to receive messages without that header field.

     o: The header field is optional.

     t: The header field SHOULD be sent, but clients/servers need to be
          prepared to receive messages without that header field.

          If a stream-based protocol (such as TCP) is used as a
          transport, then the header field MUST be sent.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 160]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     *: The header field is required if the message body is not empty.
          See Sections 20.14, 20.15 and 7.4 for details.

     -: The header field is not applicable.

  "Optional" means that an element MAY include the header field in a
  request or response, and a UA MAY ignore the header field if present
  in the request or response (The exception to this rule is the Require
  header field discussed in 20.32).  A "mandatory" header field MUST be
  present in a request, and MUST be understood by the UAS receiving the
  request.  A mandatory response header field MUST be present in the
  response, and the header field MUST be understood by the UAC
  processing the response.  "Not applicable" means that the header
  field MUST NOT be present in a request.  If one is placed in a
  request by mistake, it MUST be ignored by the UAS receiving the
  request.  Similarly, a header field labeled "not applicable" for a
  response means that the UAS MUST NOT place the header field in the
  response, and the UAC MUST ignore the header field in the response.

  A UA SHOULD ignore extension header parameters that are not
  understood.

  A compact form of some common header field names is also defined for
  use when overall message size is an issue.

  The Contact, From, and To header fields contain a URI.  If the URI
  contains a comma, question mark or semicolon, the URI MUST be
  enclosed in angle brackets (< and >).  Any URI parameters are
  contained within these brackets.  If the URI is not enclosed in angle
  brackets, any semicolon-delimited parameters are header-parameters,
  not URI parameters.

20.1 Accept

  The Accept header field follows the syntax defined in [H14.1].  The
  semantics are also identical, with the exception that if no Accept
  header field is present, the server SHOULD assume a default value of
  application/sdp.

  An empty Accept header field means that no formats are acceptable.











Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 161]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     Header field          where   proxy ACK BYE CAN INV OPT REG
     ___________________________________________________________
     Accept                  R            -   o   -   o   m*  o
     Accept                 2xx           -   -   -   o   m*  o
     Accept                 415           -   c   -   c   c   c
     Accept-Encoding         R            -   o   -   o   o   o
     Accept-Encoding        2xx           -   -   -   o   m*  o
     Accept-Encoding        415           -   c   -   c   c   c
     Accept-Language         R            -   o   -   o   o   o
     Accept-Language        2xx           -   -   -   o   m*  o
     Accept-Language        415           -   c   -   c   c   c
     Alert-Info              R      ar    -   -   -   o   -   -
     Alert-Info             180     ar    -   -   -   o   -   -
     Allow                   R            -   o   -   o   o   o
     Allow                  2xx           -   o   -   m*  m*  o
     Allow                   r            -   o   -   o   o   o
     Allow                  405           -   m   -   m   m   m
     Authentication-Info    2xx           -   o   -   o   o   o
     Authorization           R            o   o   o   o   o   o
     Call-ID                 c       r    m   m   m   m   m   m
     Call-Info                      ar    -   -   -   o   o   o
     Contact                 R            o   -   -   m   o   o
     Contact                1xx           -   -   -   o   -   -
     Contact                2xx           -   -   -   m   o   o
     Contact                3xx      d    -   o   -   o   o   o
     Contact                485           -   o   -   o   o   o
     Content-Disposition                  o   o   -   o   o   o
     Content-Encoding                     o   o   -   o   o   o
     Content-Language                     o   o   -   o   o   o
     Content-Length                 ar    t   t   t   t   t   t
     Content-Type                         *   *   -   *   *   *
     CSeq                    c       r    m   m   m   m   m   m
     Date                            a    o   o   o   o   o   o
     Error-Info           300-699    a    -   o   o   o   o   o
     Expires                              -   -   -   o   -   o
     From                    c       r    m   m   m   m   m   m
     In-Reply-To             R            -   -   -   o   -   -
     Max-Forwards            R      amr   m   m   m   m   m   m
     Min-Expires            423           -   -   -   -   -   m
     MIME-Version                         o   o   -   o   o   o
     Organization                   ar    -   -   -   o   o   o

            Table 2: Summary of header fields, A--O






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 162]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Header field              where       proxy ACK BYE CAN INV OPT REG
  ___________________________________________________________________
  Priority                    R          ar    -   -   -   o   -   -
  Proxy-Authenticate         407         ar    -   m   -   m   m   m
  Proxy-Authenticate         401         ar    -   o   o   o   o   o
  Proxy-Authorization         R          dr    o   o   -   o   o   o
  Proxy-Require               R          ar    -   o   -   o   o   o
  Record-Route                R          ar    o   o   o   o   o   -
  Record-Route             2xx,18x       mr    -   o   o   o   o   -
  Reply-To                                     -   -   -   o   -   -
  Require                                ar    -   c   -   c   c   c
  Retry-After          404,413,480,486         -   o   o   o   o   o
                           500,503             -   o   o   o   o   o
                           600,603             -   o   o   o   o   o
  Route                       R          adr   c   c   c   c   c   c
  Server                      r                -   o   o   o   o   o
  Subject                     R                -   -   -   o   -   -
  Supported                   R                -   o   o   m*  o   o
  Supported                  2xx               -   o   o   m*  m*  o
  Timestamp                                    o   o   o   o   o   o
  To                        c(1)          r    m   m   m   m   m   m
  Unsupported                420               -   m   -   m   m   m
  User-Agent                                   o   o   o   o   o   o
  Via                         R          amr   m   m   m   m   m   m
  Via                        rc          dr    m   m   m   m   m   m
  Warning                     r                -   o   o   o   o   o
  WWW-Authenticate           401         ar    -   m   -   m   m   m
  WWW-Authenticate           407         ar    -   o   -   o   o   o

  Table 3: Summary of header fields, P--Z; (1): copied with possible
  addition of tag

     Accept: application/sdp;level=1, application/x-private, text/html

20.2 Accept-Encoding

  The Accept-Encoding header field is similar to Accept, but restricts
  the content-codings [H3.5] that are acceptable in the response.  See
  [H14.3].  The semantics in SIP are identical to those defined in
  [H14.3].

  An empty Accept-Encoding header field is permissible.  It is
  equivalent to Accept-Encoding: identity, that is, only the identity
  encoding, meaning no encoding, is permissible.

  If no Accept-Encoding header field is present, the server SHOULD
  assume a default value of identity.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 163]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  This differs slightly from the HTTP definition, which indicates that
  when not present, any encoding can be used, but the identity encoding
  is preferred.

  Example:

     Accept-Encoding: gzip

20.3 Accept-Language

  The Accept-Language header field is used in requests to indicate the
  preferred languages for reason phrases, session descriptions, or
  status responses carried as message bodies in the response.  If no
  Accept-Language header field is present, the server SHOULD assume all
  languages are acceptable to the client.

  The Accept-Language header field follows the syntax defined in
  [H14.4].  The rules for ordering the languages based on the "q"
  parameter apply to SIP as well.

  Example:

     Accept-Language: da, en-gb;q=0.8, en;q=0.7

20.4 Alert-Info

  When present in an INVITE request, the Alert-Info header field
  specifies an alternative ring tone to the UAS.  When present in a 180
  (Ringing) response, the Alert-Info header field specifies an
  alternative ringback tone to the UAC.  A typical usage is for a proxy
  to insert this header field to provide a distinctive ring feature.

  The Alert-Info header field can introduce security risks.  These
  risks and the ways to handle them are discussed in Section 20.9,
  which discusses the Call-Info header field since the risks are
  identical.

  In addition, a user SHOULD be able to disable this feature
  selectively.

     This helps prevent disruptions that could result from the use of
     this header field by untrusted elements.

  Example:

     Alert-Info: <http://www.example.com/sounds/moo.wav>





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 164]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


20.5 Allow

  The Allow header field lists the set of methods supported by the UA
  generating the message.

  All methods, including ACK and CANCEL, understood by the UA MUST be
  included in the list of methods in the Allow header field, when
  present.  The absence of an Allow header field MUST NOT be
  interpreted to mean that the UA sending the message supports no
  methods.   Rather, it implies that the UA is not providing any
  information on what methods it supports.

  Supplying an Allow header field in responses to methods other than
  OPTIONS reduces the number of messages needed.

  Example:

     Allow: INVITE, ACK, OPTIONS, CANCEL, BYE

20.6 Authentication-Info

  The Authentication-Info header field provides for mutual
  authentication with HTTP Digest.  A UAS MAY include this header field
  in a 2xx response to a request that was successfully authenticated
  using digest based on the Authorization header field.

  Syntax and semantics follow those specified in RFC 2617 [17].

  Example:

     Authentication-Info: nextnonce="47364c23432d2e131a5fb210812c"

20.7 Authorization

  The Authorization header field contains authentication credentials of
  a UA.  Section 22.2 overviews the use of the Authorization header
  field, and Section 22.4 describes the syntax and semantics when used
  with HTTP authentication.

  This header field, along with Proxy-Authorization, breaks the general
  rules about multiple header field values.  Although not a comma-
  separated list, this header field name may be present multiple times,
  and MUST NOT be combined into a single header line using the usual
  rules described in Section 7.3.







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 165]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  In the example below, there are no quotes around the Digest
  parameter:

     Authorization: Digest username="Alice", realm="atlanta.com",
      nonce="84a4cc6f3082121f32b42a2187831a9e",
      response="7587245234b3434cc3412213e5f113a5432"

20.8 Call-ID

  The Call-ID header field uniquely identifies a particular invitation
  or all registrations of a particular client.  A single multimedia
  conference can give rise to several calls with different Call-IDs,
  for example, if a user invites a single individual several times to
  the same (long-running) conference.  Call-IDs are case-sensitive and
  are simply compared byte-by-byte.

  The compact form of the Call-ID header field is i.

  Examples:

     Call-ID: [email protected]
     i:[email protected]

20.9 Call-Info

  The Call-Info header field provides additional information about the
  caller or callee, depending on whether it is found in a request or
  response.  The purpose of the URI is described by the "purpose"
  parameter.  The "icon" parameter designates an image suitable as an
  iconic representation of the caller or callee.  The "info" parameter
  describes the caller or callee in general, for example, through a web
  page.  The "card" parameter provides a business card, for example, in
  vCard [36] or LDIF [37] formats.  Additional tokens can be registered
  using IANA and the procedures in Section 27.

  Use of the Call-Info header field can pose a security risk.  If a
  callee fetches the URIs provided by a malicious caller, the callee
  may be at risk for displaying inappropriate or offensive content,
  dangerous or illegal content, and so on.  Therefore, it is
  RECOMMENDED that a UA only render the information in the Call-Info
  header field if it can verify the authenticity of the element that
  originated the header field and trusts that element.  This need not
  be the peer UA; a proxy can insert this header field into requests.

  Example:

  Call-Info: <http://wwww.example.com/alice/photo.jpg> ;purpose=icon,
    <http://www.example.com/alice/> ;purpose=info



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 166]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


20.10 Contact

  A Contact header field value provides a URI whose meaning depends on
  the type of request or response it is in.

  A Contact header field value can contain a display name, a URI with
  URI parameters, and header parameters.

  This document defines the Contact parameters "q" and "expires".
  These parameters are only used when the Contact is present in a
  REGISTER request or response, or in a 3xx response.  Additional
  parameters may be defined in other specifications.

  When the header field value contains a display name, the URI
  including all URI parameters is enclosed in "<" and ">".  If no "<"
  and ">" are present, all parameters after the URI are header
  parameters, not URI parameters.  The display name can be tokens, or a
  quoted string, if a larger character set is desired.

  Even if the "display-name" is empty, the "name-addr" form MUST be
  used if the "addr-spec" contains a comma, semicolon, or question
  mark.  There may or may not be LWS between the display-name and the
  "<".

  These rules for parsing a display name, URI and URI parameters, and
  header parameters also apply for the header fields To and From.

     The Contact header field has a role similar to the Location header
     field in HTTP.  However, the HTTP header field only allows one
     address, unquoted.  Since URIs can contain commas and semicolons
     as reserved characters, they can be mistaken for header or
     parameter delimiters, respectively.

  The compact form of the Contact header field is m (for "moved").

  Examples:

     Contact: "Mr. Watson" <sip:[email protected]>
        ;q=0.7; expires=3600,
        "Mr. Watson" <mailto:[email protected]> ;q=0.1
     m: <sips:[email protected]>;expires=60










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 167]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


20.11 Content-Disposition

  The Content-Disposition header field describes how the message body
  or, for multipart messages, a message body part is to be interpreted
  by the UAC or UAS.  This SIP header field extends the MIME Content-
  Type (RFC 2183 [18]).

  Several new "disposition-types" of the Content-Disposition header are
  defined by SIP.  The value "session" indicates that the body part
  describes a session, for either calls or early (pre-call) media.  The
  value "render" indicates that the body part should be displayed or
  otherwise rendered to the user.  Note that the value "render" is used
  rather than "inline" to avoid the connotation that the MIME body is
  displayed as a part of the rendering of the entire message (since the
  MIME bodies of SIP messages oftentimes are not displayed to users).
  For backward-compatibility, if the Content-Disposition header field
  is missing, the server SHOULD assume bodies of Content-Type
  application/sdp are the disposition "session", while other content
  types are "render".

  The disposition type "icon" indicates that the body part contains an
  image suitable as an iconic representation of the caller or callee
  that could be rendered informationally by a user agent when a message
  has been received, or persistently while a dialog takes place.  The
  value "alert" indicates that the body part contains information, such
  as an audio clip, that should be rendered by the user agent in an
  attempt to alert the user to the receipt of a request, generally a
  request that initiates a dialog; this alerting body could for example
  be rendered as a ring tone for a phone call after a 180 Ringing
  provisional response has been sent.

  Any MIME body with a "disposition-type" that renders content to the
  user should only be processed when a message has been properly
  authenticated.

  The handling parameter, handling-param, describes how the UAS should
  react if it receives a message body whose content type or disposition
  type it does not understand.  The parameter has defined values of
  "optional" and "required".  If the handling parameter is missing, the
  value "required" SHOULD be assumed.  The handling parameter is
  described in RFC 3204 [19].

  If this header field is missing, the MIME type determines the default
  content disposition.  If there is none, "render" is assumed.

  Example:

     Content-Disposition: session



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 168]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


20.12 Content-Encoding

  The Content-Encoding header field is used as a modifier to the
  "media-type".  When present, its value indicates what additional
  content codings have been applied to the entity-body, and thus what
  decoding mechanisms MUST be applied in order to obtain the media-type
  referenced by the Content-Type header field.  Content-Encoding is
  primarily used to allow a body to be compressed without losing the
  identity of its underlying media type.

  If multiple encodings have been applied to an entity-body, the
  content codings MUST be listed in the order in which they were
  applied.

  All content-coding values are case-insensitive.  IANA acts as a
  registry for content-coding value tokens.  See [H3.5] for a
  definition of the syntax for content-coding.

  Clients MAY apply content encodings to the body in requests.  A
  server MAY apply content encodings to the bodies in responses.  The
  server MUST only use encodings listed in the Accept-Encoding header
  field in the request.

  The compact form of the Content-Encoding header field is e.
  Examples:

     Content-Encoding: gzip
     e: tar

20.13 Content-Language

  See [H14.12]. Example:

     Content-Language: fr

20.14 Content-Length

  The Content-Length header field indicates the size of the message-
  body, in decimal number of octets, sent to the recipient.
  Applications SHOULD use this field to indicate the size of the
  message-body to be transferred, regardless of the media type of the
  entity.  If a stream-based protocol (such as TCP) is used as
  transport, the header field MUST be used.

  The size of the message-body does not include the CRLF separating
  header fields and body.  Any Content-Length greater than or equal to
  zero is a valid value.  If no body is present in a message, then the
  Content-Length header field value MUST be set to zero.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 169]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     The ability to omit Content-Length simplifies the creation of
     cgi-like scripts that dynamically generate responses.

  The compact form of the header field is l.

  Examples:

     Content-Length: 349
     l: 173

20.15 Content-Type

  The Content-Type header field indicates the media type of the
  message-body sent to the recipient.  The "media-type" element is
  defined in [H3.7].  The Content-Type header field MUST be present if
  the body is not empty.  If the body is empty, and a Content-Type
  header field is present, it indicates that the body of the specific
  type has zero length (for example, an empty audio file).

  The compact form of the header field is c.

  Examples:

     Content-Type: application/sdp
     c: text/html; charset=ISO-8859-4

20.16 CSeq

  A CSeq header field in a request contains a single decimal sequence
  number and the request method.  The sequence number MUST be
  expressible as a 32-bit unsigned integer.  The method part of CSeq is
  case-sensitive.  The CSeq header field serves to order transactions
  within a dialog, to provide a means to uniquely identify
  transactions, and to differentiate between new requests and request
  retransmissions.  Two CSeq header fields are considered equal if the
  sequence number and the request method are identical.  Example:

     CSeq: 4711 INVITE

20.17 Date

  The Date header field contains the date and time.  Unlike HTTP/1.1,
  SIP only supports the most recent RFC 1123 [20] format for dates.  As
  in [H3.3], SIP restricts the time zone in SIP-date to "GMT", while
  RFC 1123 allows any time zone.  An RFC 1123 date is case-sensitive.

  The Date header field reflects the time when the request or response
  is first sent.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 170]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     The Date header field can be used by simple end systems without a
     battery-backed clock to acquire a notion of current time.
     However, in its GMT form, it requires clients to know their offset
     from GMT.

  Example:

     Date: Sat, 13 Nov 2010 23:29:00 GMT

20.18 Error-Info

  The Error-Info header field provides a pointer to additional
  information about the error status response.

     SIP UACs have user interface capabilities ranging from pop-up
     windows and audio on PC softclients to audio-only on "black"
     phones or endpoints connected via gateways.  Rather than forcing a
     server generating an error to choose between sending an error
     status code with a detailed reason phrase and playing an audio
     recording, the Error-Info header field allows both to be sent.
     The UAC then has the choice of which error indicator to render to
     the caller.

  A UAC MAY treat a SIP or SIPS URI in an Error-Info header field as if
  it were a Contact in a redirect and generate a new INVITE, resulting
  in a recorded announcement session being established.  A non-SIP URI
  MAY be rendered to the user.

  Examples:

     SIP/2.0 404 The number you have dialed is not in service
     Error-Info: <sip:[email protected]>

20.19 Expires

  The Expires header field gives the relative time after which the
  message (or content) expires.

  The precise meaning of this is method dependent.

  The expiration time in an INVITE does not affect the duration of the
  actual session that may result from the invitation.  Session
  description protocols may offer the ability to express time limits on
  the session duration, however.

  The value of this field is an integral number of seconds (in decimal)
  between 0 and (2**32)-1, measured from the receipt of the request.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 171]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     Expires: 5

20.20 From

  The From header field indicates the initiator of the request.  This
  may be different from the initiator of the dialog.  Requests sent by
  the callee to the caller use the callee's address in the From header
  field.

  The optional "display-name" is meant to be rendered by a human user
  interface.  A system SHOULD use the display name "Anonymous" if the
  identity of the client is to remain hidden.  Even if the "display-
  name" is empty, the "name-addr" form MUST be used if the "addr-spec"
  contains a comma, question mark, or semicolon.  Syntax issues are
  discussed in Section 7.3.1.

  Two From header fields are equivalent if their URIs match, and their
  parameters match. Extension parameters in one header field, not
  present in the other are ignored for the purposes of comparison. This
  means that the display name and presence or absence of angle brackets
  do not affect matching.

  See Section 20.10 for the rules for parsing a display name, URI and
  URI parameters, and header field parameters.

  The compact form of the From header field is f.

  Examples:

     From: "A. G. Bell" <sip:[email protected]> ;tag=a48s
     From: sip:[email protected];tag=887s
     f: Anonymous <sip:[email protected]>;tag=hyh8

20.21 In-Reply-To

  The In-Reply-To header field enumerates the Call-IDs that this call
  references or returns.  These Call-IDs may have been cached by the
  client then included in this header field in a return call.

     This allows automatic call distribution systems to route return
     calls to the originator of the first call.  This also allows
     callees to filter calls, so that only return calls for calls they
     originated will be accepted.  This field is not a substitute for
     request authentication.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 172]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     In-Reply-To: [email protected], [email protected]

20.22 Max-Forwards

  The Max-Forwards header field must be used with any SIP method to
  limit the number of proxies or gateways that can forward the request
  to the next downstream server.  This can also be useful when the
  client is attempting to trace a request chain that appears to be
  failing or looping in mid-chain.

  The Max-Forwards value is an integer in the range 0-255 indicating
  the remaining number of times this request message is allowed to be
  forwarded.  This count is decremented by each server that forwards
  the request.  The recommended initial value is 70.

  This header field should be inserted by elements that can not
  otherwise guarantee loop detection.  For example, a B2BUA should
  insert a Max-Forwards header field.

  Example:

     Max-Forwards: 6

20.23 Min-Expires

  The Min-Expires header field conveys the minimum refresh interval
  supported for soft-state elements managed by that server.  This
  includes Contact header fields that are stored by a registrar.  The
  header field contains a decimal integer number of seconds from 0 to
  (2**32)-1.  The use of the header field in a 423 (Interval Too Brief)
  response is described in Sections 10.2.8, 10.3, and 21.4.17.

  Example:

     Min-Expires: 60

20.24 MIME-Version

  See [H19.4.1].

  Example:

     MIME-Version: 1.0






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 173]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


20.25 Organization

  The Organization header field conveys the name of the organization to
  which the SIP element issuing the request or response belongs.

     The field MAY be used by client software to filter calls.

  Example:

     Organization: Boxes by Bob

20.26 Priority

  The Priority header field indicates the urgency of the request as
  perceived by the client.  The Priority header field describes the
  priority that the SIP request should have to the receiving human or
  its agent.  For example, it may be factored into decisions about call
  routing and acceptance.  For these decisions, a message containing no
  Priority header field SHOULD be treated as if it specified a Priority
  of "normal".  The Priority header field does not influence the use of
  communications resources such as packet forwarding priority in
  routers or access to circuits in PSTN gateways.  The header field can
  have the values "non-urgent", "normal", "urgent", and "emergency",
  but additional values can be defined elsewhere.  It is RECOMMENDED
  that the value of "emergency" only be used when life, limb, or
  property are in imminent danger.  Otherwise, there are no semantics
  defined for this header field.

     These are the values of RFC 2076 [38], with the addition of
     "emergency".

  Examples:

     Subject: A tornado is heading our way!
     Priority: emergency

  or

     Subject: Weekend plans
     Priority: non-urgent

20.27 Proxy-Authenticate

  A Proxy-Authenticate header field value contains an authentication
  challenge.

  The use of this header field is defined in [H14.33].  See Section
  22.3 for further details on its usage.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 174]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     Proxy-Authenticate: Digest realm="atlanta.com",
      domain="sip:ss1.carrier.com", qop="auth",
      nonce="f84f1cec41e6cbe5aea9c8e88d359",
      opaque="", stale=FALSE, algorithm=MD5

20.28 Proxy-Authorization

  The Proxy-Authorization header field allows the client to identify
  itself (or its user) to a proxy that requires authentication.  A
  Proxy-Authorization field value consists of credentials containing
  the authentication information of the user agent for the proxy and/or
  realm of the resource being requested.

  See Section 22.3 for a definition of the usage of this header field.

  This header field, along with Authorization, breaks the general rules
  about multiple header field names.  Although not a comma-separated
  list, this header field name may be present multiple times, and MUST
  NOT be combined into a single header line using the usual rules
  described in Section 7.3.1.

  Example:

  Proxy-Authorization: Digest username="Alice", realm="atlanta.com",
     nonce="c60f3082ee1212b402a21831ae",
     response="245f23415f11432b3434341c022"

20.29 Proxy-Require

  The Proxy-Require header field is used to indicate proxy-sensitive
  features that must be supported by the proxy.  See Section 20.32 for
  more details on the mechanics of this message and a usage example.

  Example:

     Proxy-Require: foo

20.30 Record-Route

  The Record-Route header field is inserted by proxies in a request to
  force future requests in the dialog to be routed through the proxy.

  Examples of its use with the Route header field are described in
  Sections 16.12.1.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 175]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     Record-Route: <sip:server10.biloxi.com;lr>,
                   <sip:bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;lr>

20.31 Reply-To

  The Reply-To header field contains a logical return URI that may be
  different from the From header field.  For example, the URI MAY be
  used to return missed calls or unestablished sessions.  If the user
  wished to remain anonymous, the header field SHOULD either be omitted
  from the request or populated in such a way that does not reveal any
  private information.

  Even if the "display-name" is empty, the "name-addr" form MUST be
  used if the "addr-spec" contains a comma, question mark, or
  semicolon.  Syntax issues are discussed in Section 7.3.1.

  Example:

     Reply-To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>

20.32 Require

  The Require header field is used by UACs to tell UASs about options
  that the UAC expects the UAS to support in order to process the
  request.  Although an optional header field, the Require MUST NOT be
  ignored if it is present.

  The Require header field contains a list of option tags, described in
  Section 19.2.  Each option tag defines a SIP extension that MUST be
  understood to process the request.  Frequently, this is used to
  indicate that a specific set of extension header fields need to be
  understood.  A UAC compliant to this specification MUST only include
  option tags corresponding to standards-track RFCs.

  Example:

     Require: 100rel

20.33 Retry-After

  The Retry-After header field can be used with a 500 (Server Internal
  Error) or 503 (Service Unavailable) response to indicate how long the
  service is expected to be unavailable to the requesting client and
  with a 404 (Not Found), 413 (Request Entity Too Large), 480
  (Temporarily Unavailable), 486 (Busy Here), 600 (Busy), or 603




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 176]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  (Decline) response to indicate when the called party anticipates
  being available again.  The value of this field is a positive integer
  number of seconds (in decimal) after the time of the response.

  An optional comment can be used to indicate additional information
  about the time of callback.  An optional "duration" parameter
  indicates how long the called party will be reachable starting at the
  initial time of availability.  If no duration parameter is given, the
  service is assumed to be available indefinitely.

  Examples:

     Retry-After: 18000;duration=3600
     Retry-After: 120 (I'm in a meeting)

20.34 Route

  The Route header field is used to force routing for a request through
  the listed set of proxies.  Examples of the use of the Route header
  field are in Section 16.12.1.

  Example:

     Route: <sip:bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;lr>,
            <sip:server10.biloxi.com;lr>

20.35 Server

  The Server header field contains information about the software used
  by the UAS to handle the request.

  Revealing the specific software version of the server might allow the
  server to become more vulnerable to attacks against software that is
  known to contain security holes.  Implementers SHOULD make the Server
  header field a configurable option.

  Example:

     Server: HomeServer v2

20.36 Subject

  The Subject header field provides a summary or indicates the nature
  of the call, allowing call filtering without having to parse the
  session description.  The session description does not have to use
  the same subject indication as the invitation.

  The compact form of the Subject header field is s.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 177]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Example:

     Subject: Need more boxes
     s: Tech Support

20.37 Supported

  The Supported header field enumerates all the extensions supported by
  the UAC or UAS.

  The Supported header field contains a list of option tags, described
  in Section 19.2, that are understood by the UAC or UAS.  A UA
  compliant to this specification MUST only include option tags
  corresponding to standards-track RFCs.  If empty, it means that no
  extensions are supported.

  The compact form of the Supported header field is k.

  Example:

     Supported: 100rel

20.38 Timestamp

  The Timestamp header field describes when the UAC sent the request to
  the UAS.

  See Section 8.2.6 for details on how to generate a response to a
  request that contains the header field.  Although there is no
  normative behavior defined here that makes use of the header, it
  allows for extensions or SIP applications to obtain RTT estimates.

  Example:

     Timestamp: 54

20.39 To

  The To header field specifies the logical recipient of the request.

  The optional "display-name" is meant to be rendered by a human-user
  interface.  The "tag" parameter serves as a general mechanism for
  dialog identification.

  See Section 19.3 for details of the "tag" parameter.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 178]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Comparison of To header fields for equality is identical to
  comparison of From header fields.  See Section 20.10 for the rules
  for parsing a display name, URI and URI parameters, and header field
  parameters.

  The compact form of the To header field is t.

  The following are examples of valid To header fields:

     To: The Operator <sip:[email protected]>;tag=287447
     t: sip:[email protected]

20.40 Unsupported

  The Unsupported header field lists the features not supported by the
  UAS.  See Section 20.32 for motivation.

  Example:

     Unsupported: foo

20.41 User-Agent

  The User-Agent header field contains information about the UAC
  originating the request.  The semantics of this header field are
  defined in [H14.43].

  Revealing the specific software version of the user agent might allow
  the user agent to become more vulnerable to attacks against software
  that is known to contain security holes.  Implementers SHOULD make
  the User-Agent header field a configurable option.

  Example:

     User-Agent: Softphone Beta1.5

20.42 Via

  The Via header field indicates the path taken by the request so far
  and indicates the path that should be followed in routing responses.
  The branch ID parameter in the Via header field values serves as a
  transaction identifier, and is used by proxies to detect loops.

  A Via header field value contains the transport protocol used to send
  the message, the client's host name or network address, and possibly
  the port number at which it wishes to receive responses.  A Via
  header field value can also contain parameters such as "maddr",
  "ttl", "received", and "branch", whose meaning and use are described



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 179]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  in other sections.  For implementations compliant to this
  specification, the value of the branch parameter MUST start with the
  magic cookie "z9hG4bK", as discussed in Section 8.1.1.7.

  Transport protocols defined here are "UDP", "TCP", "TLS", and "SCTP".
  "TLS" means TLS over TCP.  When a request is sent to a SIPS URI, the
  protocol still indicates "SIP", and the transport protocol is TLS.

Via: SIP/2.0/UDP erlang.bell-telephone.com:5060;branch=z9hG4bK87asdks7
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP 192.0.2.1:5060 ;received=192.0.2.207
    ;branch=z9hG4bK77asjd

  The compact form of the Via header field is v.

  In this example, the message originated from a multi-homed host with
  two addresses, 192.0.2.1 and 192.0.2.207.  The sender guessed wrong
  as to which network interface would be used.  Erlang.bell-
  telephone.com noticed the mismatch and added a parameter to the
  previous hop's Via header field value, containing the address that
  the packet actually came from.

  The host or network address and port number are not required to
  follow the SIP URI syntax.  Specifically, LWS on either side of the
  ":" or "/" is allowed, as shown here:

     Via: SIP / 2.0 / UDP first.example.com: 4000;ttl=16
       ;maddr=224.2.0.1 ;branch=z9hG4bKa7c6a8dlze.1

  Even though this specification mandates that the branch parameter be
  present in all requests, the BNF for the header field indicates that
  it is optional.  This allows interoperation with RFC 2543 elements,
  which did not have to insert the branch parameter.

  Two Via header fields are equal if their sent-protocol and sent-by
  fields are equal, both have the same set of parameters, and the
  values of all parameters are equal.

20.43 Warning

  The Warning header field is used to carry additional information
  about the status of a response.  Warning header field values are sent
  with responses and contain a three-digit warning code, host name, and
  warning text.

  The "warn-text" should be in a natural language that is most likely
  to be intelligible to the human user receiving the response.  This
  decision can be based on any available knowledge, such as the
  location of the user, the Accept-Language field in a request, or the



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 180]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Content-Language field in a response.  The default language is i-
  default [21].

  The currently-defined "warn-code"s are listed below, with a
  recommended warn-text in English and a description of their meaning.
  These warnings describe failures induced by the session description.
  The first digit of warning codes beginning with "3" indicates
  warnings specific to SIP.  Warnings 300 through 329 are reserved for
  indicating problems with keywords in the session description, 330
  through 339 are warnings related to basic network services requested
  in the session description, 370 through 379 are warnings related to
  quantitative QoS parameters requested in the session description, and
  390 through 399 are miscellaneous warnings that do not fall into one
  of the above categories.

     300 Incompatible network protocol: One or more network protocols
         contained in the session description are not available.

     301 Incompatible network address formats: One or more network
         address formats contained in the session description are not
         available.

     302 Incompatible transport protocol: One or more transport
         protocols described in the session description are not
         available.

     303 Incompatible bandwidth units: One or more bandwidth
         measurement units contained in the session description were
         not understood.

     304 Media type not available: One or more media types contained in
         the session description are not available.

     305 Incompatible media format: One or more media formats contained
         in the session description are not available.

     306 Attribute not understood: One or more of the media attributes
         in the session description are not supported.

     307 Session description parameter not understood: A parameter
         other than those listed above was not understood.

     330 Multicast not available: The site where the user is located
         does not support multicast.

     331 Unicast not available: The site where the user is located does
         not support unicast communication (usually due to the presence
         of a firewall).



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 181]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     370 Insufficient bandwidth: The bandwidth specified in the session
         description or defined by the media exceeds that known to be
         available.

     399 Miscellaneous warning: The warning text can include arbitrary
         information to be presented to a human user or logged.  A
         system receiving this warning MUST NOT take any automated
         action.

            1xx and 2xx have been taken by HTTP/1.1.

  Additional "warn-code"s can be defined through IANA, as defined in
  Section 27.2.

  Examples:

     Warning: 307 isi.edu "Session parameter 'foo' not understood"
     Warning: 301 isi.edu "Incompatible network address type 'E.164'"

20.44 WWW-Authenticate

  A WWW-Authenticate header field value contains an authentication
  challenge.  See Section 22.2 for further details on its usage.

  Example:

     WWW-Authenticate: Digest realm="atlanta.com",
       domain="sip:boxesbybob.com", qop="auth",
       nonce="f84f1cec41e6cbe5aea9c8e88d359",
       opaque="", stale=FALSE, algorithm=MD5

21 Response Codes

  The response codes are consistent with, and extend, HTTP/1.1 response
  codes.  Not all HTTP/1.1 response codes are appropriate, and only
  those that are appropriate are given here.  Other HTTP/1.1 response
  codes SHOULD NOT be used.  Also, SIP defines a new class, 6xx.

21.1 Provisional 1xx

  Provisional responses, also known as informational responses,
  indicate that the server contacted is performing some further action
  and does not yet have a definitive response.  A server sends a 1xx
  response if it expects to take more than 200 ms to obtain a final
  response.  Note that 1xx responses are not transmitted reliably.
  They never cause the client to send an ACK.  Provisional (1xx)
  responses MAY contain message bodies, including session descriptions.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 182]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.1.1 100 Trying

  This response indicates that the request has been received by the
  next-hop server and that some unspecified action is being taken on
  behalf of this call (for example, a database is being consulted).
  This response, like all other provisional responses, stops
  retransmissions of an INVITE by a UAC.  The 100 (Trying) response is
  different from other provisional responses, in that it is never
  forwarded upstream by a stateful proxy.

21.1.2 180 Ringing

  The UA receiving the INVITE is trying to alert the user.  This
  response MAY be used to initiate local ringback.

21.1.3 181 Call Is Being Forwarded

  A server MAY use this status code to indicate that the call is being
  forwarded to a different set of destinations.

21.1.4 182 Queued

  The called party is temporarily unavailable, but the server has
  decided to queue the call rather than reject it.  When the callee
  becomes available, it will return the appropriate final status
  response.  The reason phrase MAY give further details about the
  status of the call, for example, "5 calls queued; expected waiting
  time is 15 minutes".  The server MAY issue several 182 (Queued)
  responses to update the caller about the status of the queued call.

21.1.5 183 Session Progress

  The 183 (Session Progress) response is used to convey information
  about the progress of the call that is not otherwise classified.  The
  Reason-Phrase, header fields, or message body MAY be used to convey
  more details about the call progress.

21.2 Successful 2xx

  The request was successful.

21.2.1 200 OK

  The request has succeeded.  The information returned with the
  response depends on the method used in the request.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 183]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.3 Redirection 3xx

  3xx responses give information about the user's new location, or
  about alternative services that might be able to satisfy the call.

21.3.1 300 Multiple Choices

  The address in the request resolved to several choices, each with its
  own specific location, and the user (or UA) can select a preferred
  communication end point and redirect its request to that location.

  The response MAY include a message body containing a list of resource
  characteristics and location(s) from which the user or UA can choose
  the one most appropriate, if allowed by the Accept request header
  field.  However, no MIME types have been defined for this message
  body.

  The choices SHOULD also be listed as Contact fields (Section 20.10).
  Unlike HTTP, the SIP response MAY contain several Contact fields or a
  list of addresses in a Contact field.  UAs MAY use the Contact header
  field value for automatic redirection or MAY ask the user to confirm
  a choice.  However, this specification does not define any standard
  for such automatic selection.

     This status response is appropriate if the callee can be reached
     at several different locations and the server cannot or prefers
     not to proxy the request.

21.3.2 301 Moved Permanently

  The user can no longer be found at the address in the Request-URI,
  and the requesting client SHOULD retry at the new address given by
  the Contact header field (Section 20.10).  The requestor SHOULD
  update any local directories, address books, and user location caches
  with this new value and redirect future requests to the address(es)
  listed.

21.3.3 302 Moved Temporarily

  The requesting client SHOULD retry the request at the new address(es)
  given by the Contact header field (Section 20.10).  The Request-URI
  of the new request uses the value of the Contact header field in the
  response.








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 184]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The duration of the validity of the Contact URI can be indicated
  through an Expires (Section 20.19) header field or an expires
  parameter in the Contact header field.  Both proxies and UAs MAY
  cache this URI for the duration of the expiration time.  If there is
  no explicit expiration time, the address is only valid once for
  recursing, and MUST NOT be cached for future transactions.

  If the URI cached from the Contact header field fails, the Request-
  URI from the redirected request MAY be tried again a single time.

     The temporary URI may have become out-of-date sooner than the
     expiration time, and a new temporary URI may be available.

21.3.4 305 Use Proxy

  The requested resource MUST be accessed through the proxy given by
  the Contact field.  The Contact field gives the URI of the proxy.
  The recipient is expected to repeat this single request via the
  proxy.  305 (Use Proxy) responses MUST only be generated by UASs.

21.3.5 380 Alternative Service

  The call was not successful, but alternative services are possible.

  The alternative services are described in the message body of the
  response.  Formats for such bodies are not defined here, and may be
  the subject of future standardization.

21.4 Request Failure 4xx

  4xx responses are definite failure responses from a particular
  server.  The client SHOULD NOT retry the same request without
  modification (for example, adding appropriate authorization).
  However, the same request to a different server might be successful.

21.4.1 400 Bad Request

  The request could not be understood due to malformed syntax.  The
  Reason-Phrase SHOULD identify the syntax problem in more detail, for
  example, "Missing Call-ID header field".

21.4.2 401 Unauthorized

  The request requires user authentication.  This response is issued by
  UASs and registrars, while 407 (Proxy Authentication Required) is
  used by proxy servers.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 185]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.4.3 402 Payment Required

  Reserved for future use.

21.4.4 403 Forbidden

  The server understood the request, but is refusing to fulfill it.
  Authorization will not help, and the request SHOULD NOT be repeated.

21.4.5 404 Not Found

  The server has definitive information that the user does not exist at
  the domain specified in the Request-URI.  This status is also
  returned if the domain in the Request-URI does not match any of the
  domains handled by the recipient of the request.

21.4.6 405 Method Not Allowed

  The method specified in the Request-Line is understood, but not
  allowed for the address identified by the Request-URI.

  The response MUST include an Allow header field containing a list of
  valid methods for the indicated address.

21.4.7 406 Not Acceptable

  The resource identified by the request is only capable of generating
  response entities that have content characteristics not acceptable
  according to the Accept header field sent in the request.

21.4.8 407 Proxy Authentication Required

  This code is similar to 401 (Unauthorized), but indicates that the
  client MUST first authenticate itself with the proxy.  SIP access
  authentication is explained in Sections 26 and 22.3.

  This status code can be used for applications where access to the
  communication channel (for example, a telephony gateway) rather than
  the callee requires authentication.

21.4.9 408 Request Timeout

  The server could not produce a response within a suitable amount of
  time, for example, if it could not determine the location of the user
  in time.  The client MAY repeat the request without modifications at
  any later time.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 186]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.4.10 410 Gone

  The requested resource is no longer available at the server and no
  forwarding address is known.  This condition is expected to be
  considered permanent.  If the server does not know, or has no
  facility to determine, whether or not the condition is permanent, the
  status code 404 (Not Found) SHOULD be used instead.

21.4.11 413 Request Entity Too Large

  The server is refusing to process a request because the request
  entity-body is larger than the server is willing or able to process.
  The server MAY close the connection to prevent the client from
  continuing the request.

  If the condition is temporary, the server SHOULD include a Retry-
  After header field to indicate that it is temporary and after what
  time the client MAY try again.

21.4.12 414 Request-URI Too Long

  The server is refusing to service the request because the Request-URI
  is longer than the server is willing to interpret.

21.4.13 415 Unsupported Media Type

  The server is refusing to service the request because the message
  body of the request is in a format not supported by the server for
  the requested method.  The server MUST return a list of acceptable
  formats using the Accept, Accept-Encoding, or Accept-Language header
  field, depending on the specific problem with the content.  UAC
  processing of this response is described in Section 8.1.3.5.

21.4.14 416 Unsupported URI Scheme

  The server cannot process the request because the scheme of the URI
  in the Request-URI is unknown to the server.  Client processing of
  this response is described in Section 8.1.3.5.

21.4.15 420 Bad Extension

  The server did not understand the protocol extension specified in a
  Proxy-Require (Section 20.29) or Require (Section 20.32) header
  field.  The server MUST include a list of the unsupported extensions
  in an Unsupported header field in the response.  UAC processing of
  this response is described in Section 8.1.3.5.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 187]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.4.16 421 Extension Required

  The UAS needs a particular extension to process the request, but this
  extension is not listed in a Supported header field in the request.
  Responses with this status code MUST contain a Require header field
  listing the required extensions.

  A UAS SHOULD NOT use this response unless it truly cannot provide any
  useful service to the client.  Instead, if a desirable extension is
  not listed in the Supported header field, servers SHOULD process the
  request using baseline SIP capabilities and any extensions supported
  by the client.

21.4.17 423 Interval Too Brief

  The server is rejecting the request because the expiration time of
  the resource refreshed by the request is too short.  This response
  can be used by a registrar to reject a registration whose Contact
  header field expiration time was too small.  The use of this response
  and the related Min-Expires header field are described in Sections
  10.2.8, 10.3, and 20.23.

21.4.18 480 Temporarily Unavailable

  The callee's end system was contacted successfully but the callee is
  currently unavailable (for example, is not logged in, logged in but
  in a state that precludes communication with the callee, or has
  activated the "do not disturb" feature).  The response MAY indicate a
  better time to call in the Retry-After header field.  The user could
  also be available elsewhere (unbeknownst to this server).  The reason
  phrase SHOULD indicate a more precise cause as to why the callee is
  unavailable.  This value SHOULD be settable by the UA.  Status 486
  (Busy Here) MAY be used to more precisely indicate a particular
  reason for the call failure.

  This status is also returned by a redirect or proxy server that
  recognizes the user identified by the Request-URI, but does not
  currently have a valid forwarding location for that user.

21.4.19 481 Call/Transaction Does Not Exist

  This status indicates that the UAS received a request that does not
  match any existing dialog or transaction.

21.4.20 482 Loop Detected

  The server has detected a loop (Section 16.3 Item 4).




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 188]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.4.21 483 Too Many Hops

  The server received a request that contains a Max-Forwards (Section
  20.22) header field with the value zero.

21.4.22 484 Address Incomplete

  The server received a request with a Request-URI that was incomplete.
  Additional information SHOULD be provided in the reason phrase.

     This status code allows overlapped dialing.  With overlapped
     dialing, the client does not know the length of the dialing
     string.  It sends strings of increasing lengths, prompting the
     user for more input, until it no longer receives a 484 (Address
     Incomplete) status response.

21.4.23 485 Ambiguous

  The Request-URI was ambiguous.  The response MAY contain a listing of
  possible unambiguous addresses in Contact header fields.  Revealing
  alternatives can infringe on privacy of the user or the organization.
  It MUST be possible to configure a server to respond with status 404
  (Not Found) or to suppress the listing of possible choices for
  ambiguous Request-URIs.

  Example response to a request with the Request-URI
  sip:[email protected]:

     SIP/2.0 485 Ambiguous
     Contact: Carol Lee <sip:[email protected]>
     Contact: Ping Lee <sip:[email protected]>
     Contact: Lee M. Foote <sips:[email protected]>

     Some email and voice mail systems provide this functionality.  A
     status code separate from 3xx is used since the semantics are
     different: for 300, it is assumed that the same person or service
     will be reached by the choices provided.  While an automated
     choice or sequential search makes sense for a 3xx response, user
     intervention is required for a 485 (Ambiguous) response.

21.4.24 486 Busy Here

  The callee's end system was contacted successfully, but the callee is
  currently not willing or able to take additional calls at this end
  system.  The response MAY indicate a better time to call in the
  Retry-After header field.  The user could also be available





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 189]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  elsewhere, such as through a voice mail service.  Status 600 (Busy
  Everywhere) SHOULD be used if the client knows that no other end
  system will be able to accept this call.

21.4.25 487 Request Terminated

  The request was terminated by a BYE or CANCEL request.  This response
  is never returned for a CANCEL request itself.

21.4.26 488 Not Acceptable Here

  The response has the same meaning as 606 (Not Acceptable), but only
  applies to the specific resource addressed by the Request-URI and the
  request may succeed elsewhere.

  A message body containing a description of media capabilities MAY be
  present in the response, which is formatted according to the Accept
  header field in the INVITE (or application/sdp if not present), the
  same as a message body in a 200 (OK) response to an OPTIONS request.

21.4.27 491 Request Pending

  The request was received by a UAS that had a pending request within
  the same dialog.  Section 14.2 describes how such "glare" situations
  are resolved.

21.4.28 493 Undecipherable

  The request was received by a UAS that contained an encrypted MIME
  body for which the recipient does not possess or will not provide an
  appropriate decryption key.  This response MAY have a single body
  containing an appropriate public key that should be used to encrypt
  MIME bodies sent to this UA.  Details of the usage of this response
  code can be found in Section 23.2.

21.5 Server Failure 5xx

  5xx responses are failure responses given when a server itself has
  erred.

21.5.1 500 Server Internal Error

  The server encountered an unexpected condition that prevented it from
  fulfilling the request.  The client MAY display the specific error
  condition and MAY retry the request after several seconds.

  If the condition is temporary, the server MAY indicate when the
  client may retry the request using the Retry-After header field.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 190]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.5.2 501 Not Implemented

  The server does not support the functionality required to fulfill the
  request.  This is the appropriate response when a UAS does not
  recognize the request method and is not capable of supporting it for
  any user.  (Proxies forward all requests regardless of method.)

  Note that a 405 (Method Not Allowed) is sent when the server
  recognizes the request method, but that method is not allowed or
  supported.

21.5.3 502 Bad Gateway

  The server, while acting as a gateway or proxy, received an invalid
  response from the downstream server it accessed in attempting to
  fulfill the request.

21.5.4 503 Service Unavailable

  The server is temporarily unable to process the request due to a
  temporary overloading or maintenance of the server.  The server MAY
  indicate when the client should retry the request in a Retry-After
  header field.  If no Retry-After is given, the client MUST act as if
  it had received a 500 (Server Internal Error) response.

  A client (proxy or UAC) receiving a 503 (Service Unavailable) SHOULD
  attempt to forward the request to an alternate server.  It SHOULD NOT
  forward any other requests to that server for the duration specified
  in the Retry-After header field, if present.

  Servers MAY refuse the connection or drop the request instead of
  responding with 503 (Service Unavailable).

21.5.5 504 Server Time-out

  The server did not receive a timely response from an external server
  it accessed in attempting to process the request.  408 (Request
  Timeout) should be used instead if there was no response within the
  period specified in the Expires header field from the upstream
  server.

21.5.6 505 Version Not Supported

  The server does not support, or refuses to support, the SIP protocol
  version that was used in the request.  The server is indicating that
  it is unable or unwilling to complete the request using the same
  major version as the client, other than with this error message.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 191]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


21.5.7 513 Message Too Large

  The server was unable to process the request since the message length
  exceeded its capabilities.

21.6 Global Failures 6xx

  6xx responses indicate that a server has definitive information about
  a particular user, not just the particular instance indicated in the
  Request-URI.

21.6.1 600 Busy Everywhere

  The callee's end system was contacted successfully but the callee is
  busy and does not wish to take the call at this time.  The response
  MAY indicate a better time to call in the Retry-After header field.
  If the callee does not wish to reveal the reason for declining the
  call, the callee uses status code 603 (Decline) instead.  This status
  response is returned only if the client knows that no other end point
  (such as a voice mail system) will answer the request.  Otherwise,
  486 (Busy Here) should be returned.

21.6.2 603 Decline

  The callee's machine was successfully contacted but the user
  explicitly does not wish to or cannot participate.  The response MAY
  indicate a better time to call in the Retry-After header field.  This
  status response is returned only if the client knows that no other
  end point will answer the request.

21.6.3 604 Does Not Exist Anywhere

  The server has authoritative information that the user indicated in
  the Request-URI does not exist anywhere.

21.6.4 606 Not Acceptable

  The user's agent was contacted successfully but some aspects of the
  session description such as the requested media, bandwidth, or
  addressing style were not acceptable.

  A 606 (Not Acceptable) response means that the user wishes to
  communicate, but cannot adequately support the session described.
  The 606 (Not Acceptable) response MAY contain a list of reasons in a
  Warning header field describing why the session described cannot be
  supported.  Warning reason codes are listed in Section 20.43.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 192]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  A message body containing a description of media capabilities MAY be
  present in the response, which is formatted according to the Accept
  header field in the INVITE (or application/sdp if not present), the
  same as a message body in a 200 (OK) response to an OPTIONS request.

  It is hoped that negotiation will not frequently be needed, and when
  a new user is being invited to join an already existing conference,
  negotiation may not be possible.  It is up to the invitation
  initiator to decide whether or not to act on a 606 (Not Acceptable)
  response.

  This status response is returned only if the client knows that no
  other end point will answer the request.

22 Usage of HTTP Authentication

  SIP provides a stateless, challenge-based mechanism for
  authentication that is based on authentication in HTTP.  Any time
  that a proxy server or UA receives a request (with the exceptions
  given in Section 22.1), it MAY challenge the initiator of the request
  to provide assurance of its identity.  Once the originator has been
  identified, the recipient of the request SHOULD ascertain whether or
  not this user is authorized to make the request in question.  No
  authorization systems are recommended or discussed in this document.

  The "Digest" authentication mechanism described in this section
  provides message authentication and replay protection only, without
  message integrity or confidentiality.  Protective measures above and
  beyond those provided by Digest need to be taken to prevent active
  attackers from modifying SIP requests and responses.

  Note that due to its weak security, the usage of "Basic"
  authentication has been deprecated.  Servers MUST NOT accept
  credentials using the "Basic" authorization scheme, and servers also
  MUST NOT challenge with "Basic".  This is a change from RFC 2543.

22.1 Framework

  The framework for SIP authentication closely parallels that of HTTP
  (RFC 2617 [17]).  In particular, the BNF for auth-scheme, auth-param,
  challenge, realm, realm-value, and credentials is identical (although
  the usage of "Basic" as a scheme is not permitted).  In SIP, a UAS
  uses the 401 (Unauthorized) response to challenge the identity of a
  UAC.  Additionally, registrars and redirect servers MAY make use of
  401 (Unauthorized) responses for authentication, but proxies MUST
  NOT, and instead MAY use the 407 (Proxy Authentication Required)





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 193]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  response.  The requirements for inclusion of the Proxy-Authenticate,
  Proxy-Authorization, WWW-Authenticate, and Authorization in the
  various messages are identical to those described in RFC 2617 [17].

  Since SIP does not have the concept of a canonical root URL, the
  notion of protection spaces is interpreted differently in SIP.  The
  realm string alone defines the protection domain.  This is a change
  from RFC 2543, in which the Request-URI and the realm together
  defined the protection domain.

     This previous definition of protection domain caused some amount
     of confusion since the Request-URI sent by the UAC and the
     Request-URI received by the challenging server might be different,
     and indeed the final form of the Request-URI might not be known to
     the UAC.  Also, the previous definition depended on the presence
     of a SIP URI in the Request-URI and seemed to rule out alternative
     URI schemes (for example, the tel URL).

  Operators of user agents or proxy servers that will authenticate
  received requests MUST adhere to the following guidelines for
  creation of a realm string for their server:

     o  Realm strings MUST be globally unique.  It is RECOMMENDED that
        a realm string contain a hostname or domain name, following the
        recommendation in Section 3.2.1 of RFC 2617 [17].

     o  Realm strings SHOULD present a human-readable identifier that
        can be rendered to a user.

  For example:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Authorization: Digest realm="biloxi.com", <...>

  Generally, SIP authentication is meaningful for a specific realm, a
  protection domain.  Thus, for Digest authentication, each such
  protection domain has its own set of usernames and passwords.  If a
  server does not require authentication for a particular request, it
  MAY accept a default username, "anonymous", which has no password
  (password of "").  Similarly, UACs representing many users, such as
  PSTN gateways, MAY have their own device-specific username and
  password, rather than accounts for particular users, for their realm.

  While a server can legitimately challenge most SIP requests, there
  are two requests defined by this document that require special
  handling for authentication: ACK and CANCEL.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 194]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Under an authentication scheme that uses responses to carry values
  used to compute nonces (such as Digest), some problems come up for
  any requests that take no response, including ACK.  For this reason,
  any credentials in the INVITE that were accepted by a server MUST be
  accepted by that server for the ACK.  UACs creating an ACK message
  will duplicate all of the Authorization and Proxy-Authorization
  header field values that appeared in the INVITE to which the ACK
  corresponds.  Servers MUST NOT attempt to challenge an ACK.

  Although the CANCEL method does take a response (a 2xx), servers MUST
  NOT attempt to challenge CANCEL requests since these requests cannot
  be resubmitted.  Generally, a CANCEL request SHOULD be accepted by a
  server if it comes from the same hop that sent the request being
  canceled (provided that some sort of transport or network layer
  security association, as described in Section 26.2.1, is in place).

  When a UAC receives a challenge, it SHOULD render to the user the
  contents of the "realm" parameter in the challenge (which appears in
  either a WWW-Authenticate header field or Proxy-Authenticate header
  field) if the UAC device does not already know of a credential for
  the realm in question.  A service provider that pre-configures UAs
  with credentials for its realm should be aware that users will not
  have the opportunity to present their own credentials for this realm
  when challenged at a pre-configured device.

  Finally, note that even if a UAC can locate credentials that are
  associated with the proper realm, the potential exists that these
  credentials may no longer be valid or that the challenging server
  will not accept these credentials for whatever reason (especially
  when "anonymous" with no password is submitted).  In this instance a
  server may repeat its challenge, or it may respond with a 403
  Forbidden.  A UAC MUST NOT re-attempt requests with the credentials
  that have just been rejected (though the request may be retried if
  the nonce was stale).

22.2 User-to-User Authentication

  When a UAS receives a request from a UAC, the UAS MAY authenticate
  the originator before the request is processed.  If no credentials
  (in the Authorization header field) are provided in the request, the
  UAS can challenge the originator to provide credentials by rejecting
  the request with a 401 (Unauthorized) status code.

  The WWW-Authenticate response-header field MUST be included in 401
  (Unauthorized) response messages.  The field value consists of at
  least one challenge that indicates the authentication scheme(s) and
  parameters applicable to the realm.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 195]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  An example of the WWW-Authenticate header field in a 401 challenge
  is:

     WWW-Authenticate: Digest
             realm="biloxi.com",
             qop="auth,auth-int",
             nonce="dcd98b7102dd2f0e8b11d0f600bfb0c093",
             opaque="5ccc069c403ebaf9f0171e9517f40e41"

  When the originating UAC receives the 401 (Unauthorized), it SHOULD,
  if it is able, re-originate the request with the proper credentials.
  The UAC may require input from the originating user before
  proceeding.  Once authentication credentials have been supplied
  (either directly by the user, or discovered in an internal keyring),
  UAs SHOULD cache the credentials for a given value of the To header
  field and "realm" and attempt to re-use these values on the next
  request for that destination.  UAs MAY cache credentials in any way
  they would like.

  If no credentials for a realm can be located, UACs MAY attempt to
  retry the request with a username of "anonymous" and no password (a
  password of "").

  Once credentials have been located, any UA that wishes to
  authenticate itself with a UAS or registrar -- usually, but not
  necessarily, after receiving a 401 (Unauthorized) response -- MAY do
  so by including an Authorization header field with the request.  The
  Authorization field value consists of credentials containing the
  authentication information of the UA for the realm of the resource
  being requested as well as parameters required in support of
  authentication and replay protection.

  An example of the Authorization header field is:

     Authorization: Digest username="bob",
             realm="biloxi.com",
             nonce="dcd98b7102dd2f0e8b11d0f600bfb0c093",
             uri="sip:[email protected]",
             qop=auth,
             nc=00000001,
             cnonce="0a4f113b",
             response="6629fae49393a05397450978507c4ef1",
             opaque="5ccc069c403ebaf9f0171e9517f40e41"

  When a UAC resubmits a request with its credentials after receiving a
  401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy Authentication Required) response,
  it MUST increment the CSeq header field value as it would normally
  when sending an updated request.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 196]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


22.3 Proxy-to-User Authentication

  Similarly, when a UAC sends a request to a proxy server, the proxy
  server MAY authenticate the originator before the request is
  processed.  If no credentials (in the Proxy-Authorization header
  field) are provided in the request, the proxy can challenge the
  originator to provide credentials by rejecting the request with a 407
  (Proxy Authentication Required) status code.  The proxy MUST populate
  the 407 (Proxy Authentication Required) message with a Proxy-
  Authenticate header field value applicable to the proxy for the
  requested resource.

  The use of Proxy-Authenticate and Proxy-Authorization parallel that
  described in [17], with one difference.  Proxies MUST NOT add values
  to the Proxy-Authorization header field.  All 407 (Proxy
  Authentication Required) responses MUST be forwarded upstream toward
  the UAC following the procedures for any other response.  It is the
  UAC's responsibility to add the Proxy-Authorization header field
  value containing credentials for the realm of the proxy that has
  asked for authentication.

     If a proxy were to resubmit a request adding a Proxy-Authorization
     header field value, it would need to increment the CSeq in the new
     request.  However, this would cause the UAC that submitted the
     original request to discard a response from the UAS, as the CSeq
     value would be different.

  When the originating UAC receives the 407 (Proxy Authentication
  Required) it SHOULD, if it is able, re-originate the request with the
  proper credentials.  It should follow the same procedures for the
  display of the "realm" parameter that are given above for responding
  to 401.

  If no credentials for a realm can be located, UACs MAY attempt to
  retry the request with a username of "anonymous" and no password (a
  password of "").

  The UAC SHOULD also cache the credentials used in the re-originated
  request.

  The following rule is RECOMMENDED for proxy credential caching:

  If a UA receives a Proxy-Authenticate header field value in a 401/407
  response to a request with a particular Call-ID, it should
  incorporate credentials for that realm in all subsequent requests
  that contain the same Call-ID.  These credentials MUST NOT be cached
  across dialogs; however, if a UA is configured with the realm of its
  local outbound proxy, when one exists, then the UA MAY cache



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 197]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  credentials for that realm across dialogs.  Note that this does mean
  a future request in a dialog could contain credentials that are not
  needed by any proxy along the Route header path.

  Any UA that wishes to authenticate itself to a proxy server --
  usually, but not necessarily, after receiving a 407 (Proxy
  Authentication Required) response -- MAY do so by including a Proxy-
  Authorization header field value with the request.  The Proxy-
  Authorization request-header field allows the client to identify
  itself (or its user) to a proxy that requires authentication.  The
  Proxy-Authorization header field value consists of credentials
  containing the authentication information of the UA for the proxy
  and/or realm of the resource being requested.

  A Proxy-Authorization header field value applies only to the proxy
  whose realm is identified in the "realm" parameter (this proxy may
  previously have demanded authentication using the Proxy-Authenticate
  field).  When multiple proxies are used in a chain, a Proxy-
  Authorization header field value MUST NOT be consumed by any proxy
  whose realm does not match the "realm" parameter specified in that
  value.

  Note that if an authentication scheme that does not support realms is
  used in the Proxy-Authorization header field, a proxy server MUST
  attempt to parse all Proxy-Authorization header field values to
  determine whether one of them has what the proxy server considers to
  be valid credentials.  Because this is potentially very time-
  consuming in large networks, proxy servers SHOULD use an
  authentication scheme that supports realms in the Proxy-Authorization
  header field.

  If a request is forked (as described in Section 16.7), various proxy
  servers and/or UAs may wish to challenge the UAC.  In this case, the
  forking proxy server is responsible for aggregating these challenges
  into a single response.  Each WWW-Authenticate and Proxy-Authenticate
  value received in responses to the forked request MUST be placed into
  the single response that is sent by the forking proxy to the UA; the
  ordering of these header field values is not significant.

     When a proxy server issues a challenge in response to a request,
     it will not proxy the request until the UAC has retried the
     request with valid credentials.  A forking proxy may forward a
     request simultaneously to multiple proxy servers that require
     authentication, each of which in turn will not forward the request
     until the originating UAC has authenticated itself in their
     respective realm.  If the UAC does not provide credentials for





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 198]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     each challenge, the proxy servers that issued the challenges will
     not forward requests to the UA where the destination user might be
     located, and therefore, the virtues of forking are largely lost.

  When resubmitting its request in response to a 401 (Unauthorized) or
  407 (Proxy Authentication Required) that contains multiple
  challenges, a UAC MAY include an Authorization value for each WWW-
  Authenticate value and a Proxy-Authorization value for each Proxy-
  Authenticate value for which the UAC wishes to supply a credential.
  As noted above, multiple credentials in a request SHOULD be
  differentiated by the "realm" parameter.

  It is possible for multiple challenges associated with the same realm
  to appear in the same 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy Authentication
  Required).  This can occur, for example, when multiple proxies within
  the same administrative domain, which use a common realm, are reached
  by a forking request.  When it retries a request, a UAC MAY therefore
  supply multiple credentials in Authorization or Proxy-Authorization
  header fields with the same "realm" parameter value.  The same
  credentials SHOULD be used for the same realm.

22.4 The Digest Authentication Scheme

  This section describes the modifications and clarifications required
  to apply the HTTP Digest authentication scheme to SIP.  The SIP
  scheme usage is almost completely identical to that for HTTP [17].

  Since RFC 2543 is based on HTTP Digest as defined in RFC 2069 [39],
  SIP servers supporting RFC 2617 MUST ensure they are backwards
  compatible with RFC 2069.  Procedures for this backwards
  compatibility are specified in RFC 2617.  Note, however, that SIP
  servers MUST NOT accept or request Basic authentication.

  The rules for Digest authentication follow those defined in [17],
  with "HTTP/1.1" replaced by "SIP/2.0" in addition to the following
  differences:

     1.  The URI included in the challenge has the following BNF:

         URI  =  SIP-URI / SIPS-URI

     2.  The BNF in RFC 2617 has an error in that the 'uri' parameter
         of the Authorization header field for HTTP Digest








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 199]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


         authentication is not enclosed in quotation marks.  (The
         example in Section 3.5 of RFC 2617 is correct.)  For SIP, the
         'uri' MUST be enclosed in quotation marks.

     3.  The BNF for digest-uri-value is:

         digest-uri-value  =  Request-URI ; as defined in Section 25

     4.  The example procedure for choosing a nonce based on Etag does
         not work for SIP.

     5.  The text in RFC 2617 [17] regarding cache operation does not
         apply to SIP.

     6.  RFC 2617 [17] requires that a server check that the URI in the
         request line and the URI included in the Authorization header
         field point to the same resource.  In a SIP context, these two
         URIs may refer to different users, due to forwarding at some
         proxy.  Therefore, in SIP, a server MAY check that the
         Request-URI in the Authorization header field value
         corresponds to a user for whom the server is willing to accept
         forwarded or direct requests, but it is not necessarily a
         failure if the two fields are not equivalent.

     7.  As a clarification to the calculation of the A2 value for
         message integrity assurance in the Digest authentication
         scheme, implementers should assume, when the entity-body is
         empty (that is, when SIP messages have no body) that the hash
         of the entity-body resolves to the MD5 hash of an empty
         string, or:

            H(entity-body) = MD5("") =
         "d41d8cd98f00b204e9800998ecf8427e"

     8.  RFC 2617 notes that a cnonce value MUST NOT be sent in an
         Authorization (and by extension Proxy-Authorization) header
         field if no qop directive has been sent.  Therefore, any
         algorithms that have a dependency on the cnonce (including
         "MD5-Sess") require that the qop directive be sent.  Use of
         the "qop" parameter is optional in RFC 2617 for the purposes
         of backwards compatibility with RFC 2069; since RFC 2543 was
         based on RFC 2069, the "qop" parameter must unfortunately
         remain optional for clients and servers to receive.  However,
         servers MUST always send a "qop" parameter in WWW-Authenticate
         and Proxy-Authenticate header field values.  If a client
         receives a "qop" parameter in a challenge header field, it
         MUST send the "qop" parameter in any resulting authorization
         header field.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 200]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  RFC 2543 did not allow usage of the Authentication-Info header field
  (it effectively used RFC 2069).  However, we now allow usage of this
  header field, since it provides integrity checks over the bodies and
  provides mutual authentication.  RFC 2617 [17] defines mechanisms for
  backwards compatibility using the qop attribute in the request.
  These mechanisms MUST be used by a server to determine if the client
  supports the new mechanisms in RFC 2617 that were not specified in
  RFC 2069.

23 S/MIME

  SIP messages carry MIME bodies and the MIME standard includes
  mechanisms for securing MIME contents to ensure both integrity and
  confidentiality (including the 'multipart/signed' and
  'application/pkcs7-mime' MIME types, see RFC 1847 [22], RFC 2630 [23]
  and RFC 2633 [24]).  Implementers should note, however, that there
  may be rare network intermediaries (not typical proxy servers) that
  rely on viewing or modifying the bodies of SIP messages (especially
  SDP), and that secure MIME may prevent these sorts of intermediaries
  from functioning.

     This applies particularly to certain types of firewalls.

     The PGP mechanism for encrypting the header fields and bodies of
     SIP messages described in RFC 2543 has been deprecated.

23.1 S/MIME Certificates

  The certificates that are used to identify an end-user for the
  purposes of S/MIME differ from those used by servers in one important
  respect - rather than asserting that the identity of the holder
  corresponds to a particular hostname, these certificates assert that
  the holder is identified by an end-user address.  This address is
  composed of the concatenation of the "userinfo" "@" and "domainname"
  portions of a SIP or SIPS URI (in other words, an email address of
  the form "[email protected]"), most commonly corresponding to a user's
  address-of-record.

  These certificates are also associated with keys that are used to
  sign or encrypt bodies of SIP messages.  Bodies are signed with the
  private key of the sender (who may include their public key with the
  message as appropriate), but bodies are encrypted with the public key
  of the intended recipient.  Obviously, senders must have
  foreknowledge of the public key of recipients in order to encrypt
  message bodies.  Public keys can be stored within a UA on a virtual
  keyring.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 201]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Each user agent that supports S/MIME MUST contain a keyring
  specifically for end-users' certificates.  This keyring should map
  between addresses of record and corresponding certificates.  Over
  time, users SHOULD use the same certificate when they populate the
  originating URI of signaling (the From header field) with the same
  address-of-record.

  Any mechanisms depending on the existence of end-user certificates
  are seriously limited in that there is virtually no consolidated
  authority today that provides certificates for end-user applications.
  However, users SHOULD acquire certificates from known public
  certificate authorities.  As an alternative, users MAY create self-
  signed certificates.  The implications of self-signed certificates
  are explored further in Section 26.4.2.  Implementations may also use
  pre-configured certificates in deployments in which a previous trust
  relationship exists between all SIP entities.

  Above and beyond the problem of acquiring an end-user certificate,
  there are few well-known centralized directories that distribute
  end-user certificates.  However, the holder of a certificate SHOULD
  publish their certificate in any public directories as appropriate.
  Similarly, UACs SHOULD support a mechanism for importing (manually or
  automatically) certificates discovered in public directories
  corresponding to the target URIs of SIP requests.

23.2 S/MIME Key Exchange

  SIP itself can also be used as a means to distribute public keys in
  the following manner.

  Whenever the CMS SignedData message is used in S/MIME for SIP, it
  MUST contain the certificate bearing the public key necessary to
  verify the signature.

  When a UAC sends a request containing an S/MIME body that initiates a
  dialog, or sends a non-INVITE request outside the context of a
  dialog, the UAC SHOULD structure the body as an S/MIME
  'multipart/signed' CMS SignedData body.  If the desired CMS service
  is EnvelopedData (and the public key of the target user is known),
  the UAC SHOULD send the EnvelopedData message encapsulated within a
  SignedData message.

  When a UAS receives a request containing an S/MIME CMS body that
  includes a certificate, the UAS SHOULD first validate the
  certificate, if possible, with any available root certificates for
  certificate authorities.  The UAS SHOULD also determine the subject
  of the certificate (for S/MIME, the SubjectAltName will contain the
  appropriate identity) and compare this value to the From header field



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 202]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  of the request.  If the certificate cannot be verified, because it is
  self-signed, or signed by no known authority, or if it is verifiable
  but its subject does not correspond to the From header field of
  request, the UAS MUST notify its user of the status of the
  certificate (including the subject of the certificate, its signer,
  and any key fingerprint information) and request explicit permission
  before proceeding.  If the certificate was successfully verified and
  the subject of the certificate corresponds to the From header field
  of the SIP request, or if the user (after notification) explicitly
  authorizes the use of the certificate, the UAS SHOULD add this
  certificate to a local keyring, indexed by the address-of-record of
  the holder of the certificate.

  When a UAS sends a response containing an S/MIME body that answers
  the first request in a dialog, or a response to a non-INVITE request
  outside the context of a dialog, the UAS SHOULD structure the body as
  an S/MIME 'multipart/signed' CMS SignedData body.  If the desired CMS
  service is EnvelopedData, the UAS SHOULD send the EnvelopedData
  message encapsulated within a SignedData message.

  When a UAC receives a response containing an S/MIME CMS body that
  includes a certificate, the UAC SHOULD first validate the
  certificate, if possible, with any appropriate root certificate.  The
  UAC SHOULD also determine the subject of the certificate and compare
  this value to the To field of the response; although the two may very
  well be different, and this is not necessarily indicative of a
  security breach.  If the certificate cannot be verified because it is
  self-signed, or signed by no known authority, the UAC MUST notify its
  user of the status of the certificate (including the subject of the
  certificate, its signator, and any key fingerprint information) and
  request explicit permission before proceeding.  If the certificate
  was successfully verified, and the subject of the certificate
  corresponds to the To header field in the response, or if the user
  (after notification) explicitly authorizes the use of the
  certificate, the UAC SHOULD add this certificate to a local keyring,
  indexed by the address-of-record of the holder of the certificate.
  If the UAC had not transmitted its own certificate to the UAS in any
  previous transaction, it SHOULD use a CMS SignedData body for its
  next request or response.

  On future occasions, when the UA receives requests or responses that
  contain a From header field corresponding to a value in its keyring,
  the UA SHOULD compare the certificate offered in these messages with
  the existing certificate in its keyring.  If there is a discrepancy,
  the UA MUST notify its user of a change of the certificate
  (preferably in terms that indicate that this is a potential security
  breach) and acquire the user's permission before continuing to




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 203]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  process the signaling.  If the user authorizes this certificate, it
  SHOULD be added to the keyring alongside any previous value(s) for
  this address-of-record.

  Note well however, that this key exchange mechanism does not
  guarantee the secure exchange of keys when self-signed certificates,
  or certificates signed by an obscure authority, are used - it is
  vulnerable to well-known attacks.  In the opinion of the authors,
  however, the security it provides is proverbially better than
  nothing; it is in fact comparable to the widely used SSH application.
  These limitations are explored in greater detail in Section 26.4.2.

  If a UA receives an S/MIME body that has been encrypted with a public
  key unknown to the recipient, it MUST reject the request with a 493
  (Undecipherable) response.  This response SHOULD contain a valid
  certificate for the respondent (corresponding, if possible, to any
  address of record given in the To header field of the rejected
  request) within a MIME body with a 'certs-only' "smime-type"
  parameter.

  A 493 (Undecipherable) sent without any certificate indicates that
  the respondent cannot or will not utilize S/MIME encrypted messages,
  though they may still support S/MIME signatures.

  Note that a user agent that receives a request containing an S/MIME
  body that is not optional (with a Content-Disposition header
  "handling" parameter of "required") MUST reject the request with a
  415 Unsupported Media Type response if the MIME type is not
  understood.  A user agent that receives such a response when S/MIME
  is sent SHOULD notify its user that the remote device does not
  support S/MIME, and it MAY subsequently resend the request without
  S/MIME, if appropriate; however, this 415 response may constitute a
  downgrade attack.

  If a user agent sends an S/MIME body in a request, but receives a
  response that contains a MIME body that is not secured, the UAC
  SHOULD notify its user that the session could not be secured.
  However, if a user agent that supports S/MIME receives a request with
  an unsecured body, it SHOULD NOT respond with a secured body, but if
  it expects S/MIME from the sender (for example, because the sender's
  From header field value corresponds to an identity on its keychain),
  the UAS SHOULD notify its user that the session could not be secured.

  A number of conditions that arise in the previous text call for the
  notification of the user when an anomalous certificate-management
  event occurs.  Users might well ask what they should do under these
  circumstances.  First and foremost, an unexpected change in a
  certificate, or an absence of security when security is expected, are



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 204]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  causes for caution but not necessarily indications that an attack is
  in progress.  Users might abort any connection attempt or refuse a
  connection request they have received; in telephony parlance, they
  could hang up and call back.  Users may wish to find an alternate
  means to contact the other party and confirm that their key has
  legitimately changed.  Note that users are sometimes compelled to
  change their certificates, for example when they suspect that the
  secrecy of their private key has been compromised.  When their
  private key is no longer private, users must legitimately generate a
  new key and re-establish trust with any users that held their old
  key.

  Finally, if during the course of a dialog a UA receives a certificate
  in a CMS SignedData message that does not correspond with the
  certificates previously exchanged during a dialog, the UA MUST notify
  its user of the change, preferably in terms that indicate that this
  is a potential security breach.

23.3 Securing MIME bodies

  There are two types of secure MIME bodies that are of interest to
  SIP: use of these bodies should follow the S/MIME specification [24]
  with a few variations.

     o  "multipart/signed" MUST be used only with CMS detached
        signatures.

           This allows backwards compatibility with non-S/MIME-
           compliant recipients.

     o  S/MIME bodies SHOULD have a Content-Disposition header field,
        and the value of the "handling" parameter SHOULD be "required."

     o  If a UAC has no certificate on its keyring associated with the
        address-of-record to which it wants to send a request, it
        cannot send an encrypted "application/pkcs7-mime" MIME message.
        UACs MAY send an initial request such as an OPTIONS message
        with a CMS detached signature in order to solicit the
        certificate of the remote side (the signature SHOULD be over a
        "message/sip" body of the type described in Section 23.4).

           Note that future standardization work on S/MIME may define
           non-certificate based keys.

     o  Senders of S/MIME bodies SHOULD use the "SMIMECapabilities"
        (see Section 2.5.2 of [24]) attribute to express their
        capabilities and preferences for further communications.  Note
        especially that senders MAY use the "preferSignedData"



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 205]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        capability to encourage receivers to respond with CMS
        SignedData messages (for example, when sending an OPTIONS
        request as described above).

     o  S/MIME implementations MUST at a minimum support SHA1 as a
        digital signature algorithm, and 3DES as an encryption
        algorithm.  All other signature and encryption algorithms MAY
        be supported.  Implementations can negotiate support for these
        algorithms with the "SMIMECapabilities" attribute.

     o  Each S/MIME body in a SIP message SHOULD be signed with only
        one certificate.  If a UA receives a message with multiple
        signatures, the outermost signature should be treated as the
        single certificate for this body.  Parallel signatures SHOULD
        NOT be used.

        The following is an example of an encrypted S/MIME SDP body
        within a SIP message:

       INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
       Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
       To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
       From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
       Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
       CSeq: 314159 INVITE
       Max-Forwards: 70
       Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
       Content-Type: application/pkcs7-mime; smime-type=enveloped-data;
            name=smime.p7m
       Content-Disposition: attachment; filename=smime.p7m
          handling=required

     *******************************************************
     * Content-Type: application/sdp                       *
     *                                                     *
     * v=0                                                 *
     * o=alice 53655765 2353687637 IN IP4 pc33.atlanta.com *
     * s=-                                                 *
     * t=0 0                                               *
     * c=IN IP4 pc33.atlanta.com                           *
     * m=audio 3456 RTP/AVP 0 1 3 99                       *
     * a=rtpmap:0 PCMU/8000                                *
     *******************************************************








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 206]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


23.4 SIP Header Privacy and Integrity using S/MIME: Tunneling SIP

  As a means of providing some degree of end-to-end authentication,
  integrity or confidentiality for SIP header fields, S/MIME can
  encapsulate entire SIP messages within MIME bodies of type
  "message/sip" and then apply MIME security to these bodies in the
  same manner as typical SIP bodies.  These encapsulated SIP requests
  and responses do not constitute a separate dialog or transaction,
  they are a copy of the "outer" message that is used to verify
  integrity or to supply additional information.

  If a UAS receives a request that contains a tunneled "message/sip"
  S/MIME body, it SHOULD include a tunneled "message/sip" body in the
  response with the same smime-type.

  Any traditional MIME bodies (such as SDP) SHOULD be attached to the
  "inner" message so that they can also benefit from S/MIME security.
  Note that "message/sip" bodies can be sent as a part of a MIME
  "multipart/mixed" body if any unsecured MIME types should also be
  transmitted in a request.

23.4.1 Integrity and Confidentiality Properties of SIP Headers

  When the S/MIME integrity or confidentiality mechanisms are used,
  there may be discrepancies between the values in the "inner" message
  and values in the "outer" message.  The rules for handling any such
  differences for all of the header fields described in this document
  are given in this section.

  Note that for the purposes of loose timestamping, all SIP messages
  that tunnel "message/sip" SHOULD contain a Date header in both the
  "inner" and "outer" headers.

23.4.1.1 Integrity

  Whenever integrity checks are performed, the integrity of a header
  field should be determined by matching the value of the header field
  in the signed body with that in the "outer" messages using the
  comparison rules of SIP as described in 20.

  Header fields that can be legitimately modified by proxy servers are:
  Request-URI, Via, Record-Route, Route, Max-Forwards, and Proxy-
  Authorization.  If these header fields are not intact end-to-end,
  implementations SHOULD NOT consider this a breach of security.
  Changes to any other header fields defined in this document
  constitute an integrity violation; users MUST be notified of a
  discrepancy.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 207]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


23.4.1.2 Confidentiality

  When messages are encrypted, header fields may be included in the
  encrypted body that are not present in the "outer" message.

  Some header fields must always have a plaintext version because they
  are required header fields in requests and responses - these include:

  To, From, Call-ID, CSeq, Contact.  While it is probably not useful to
  provide an encrypted alternative for the Call-ID, CSeq, or Contact,
  providing an alternative to the information in the "outer" To or From
  is permitted.  Note that the values in an encrypted body are not used
  for the purposes of identifying transactions or dialogs - they are
  merely informational.  If the From header field in an encrypted body
  differs from the value in the "outer" message, the value within the
  encrypted body SHOULD be displayed to the user, but MUST NOT be used
  in the "outer" header fields of any future messages.

  Primarily, a user agent will want to encrypt header fields that have
  an end-to-end semantic, including: Subject, Reply-To, Organization,
  Accept, Accept-Encoding, Accept-Language, Alert-Info, Error-Info,
  Authentication-Info, Expires, In-Reply-To, Require, Supported,
  Unsupported, Retry-After, User-Agent, Server, and Warning.  If any of
  these header fields are present in an encrypted body, they should be
  used instead of any "outer" header fields, whether this entails
  displaying the header field values to users or setting internal
  states in the UA.  They SHOULD NOT however be used in the "outer"
  headers of any future messages.

  If present, the Date header field MUST always be the same in the
  "inner" and "outer" headers.

  Since MIME bodies are attached to the "inner" message,
  implementations will usually encrypt MIME-specific header fields,
  including: MIME-Version, Content-Type, Content-Length, Content-
  Language, Content-Encoding and Content-Disposition.  The "outer"
  message will have the proper MIME header fields for S/MIME bodies.
  These header fields (and any MIME bodies they preface) should be
  treated as normal MIME header fields and bodies received in a SIP
  message.

  It is not particularly useful to encrypt the following header fields:
  Min-Expires, Timestamp, Authorization, Priority, and WWW-
  Authenticate.  This category also includes those header fields that
  can be changed by proxy servers (described in the preceding section).
  UAs SHOULD never include these in an "inner" message if they are not





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 208]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  included in the "outer" message.  UAs that receive any of these
  header fields in an encrypted body SHOULD ignore the encrypted
  values.

  Note that extensions to SIP may define additional header fields; the
  authors of these extensions should describe the integrity and
  confidentiality properties of such header fields.  If a SIP UA
  encounters an unknown header field with an integrity violation, it
  MUST ignore the header field.

23.4.2 Tunneling Integrity and Authentication

  Tunneling SIP messages within S/MIME bodies can provide integrity for
  SIP header fields if the header fields that the sender wishes to
  secure are replicated in a "message/sip" MIME body signed with a CMS
  detached signature.

  Provided that the "message/sip" body contains at least the
  fundamental dialog identifiers (To, From, Call-ID, CSeq), then a
  signed MIME body can provide limited authentication.  At the very
  least, if the certificate used to sign the body is unknown to the
  recipient and cannot be verified, the signature can be used to
  ascertain that a later request in a dialog was transmitted by the
  same certificate-holder that initiated the dialog.  If the recipient
  of the signed MIME body has some stronger incentive to trust the
  certificate (they were able to validate it, they acquired it from a
  trusted repository, or they have used it frequently) then the
  signature can be taken as a stronger assertion of the identity of the
  subject of the certificate.

  In order to eliminate possible confusions about the addition or
  subtraction of entire header fields, senders SHOULD replicate all
  header fields from the request within the signed body.  Any message
  bodies that require integrity protection MUST be attached to the
  "inner" message.

  If a Date header is present in a message with a signed body, the
  recipient SHOULD compare the header field value with its own internal
  clock, if applicable.  If a significant time discrepancy is detected
  (on the order of an hour or more), the user agent SHOULD alert the
  user to the anomaly, and note that it is a potential security breach.

  If an integrity violation in a message is detected by its recipient,
  the message MAY be rejected with a 403 (Forbidden) response if it is
  a request, or any existing dialog MAY be terminated.  UAs SHOULD
  notify users of this circumstance and request explicit guidance on
  how to proceed.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 209]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The following is an example of the use of a tunneled "message/sip"
  body:

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
     To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
     From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
     CSeq: 314159 INVITE
     Max-Forwards: 70
     Date: Thu, 21 Feb 2002 13:02:03 GMT
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Content-Type: multipart/signed;
       protocol="application/pkcs7-signature";
       micalg=sha1; boundary=boundary42
     Content-Length: 568

     --boundary42
     Content-Type: message/sip

     INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
     Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
     To: Bob <[email protected]>
     From: Alice <[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
     Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
     CSeq: 314159 INVITE
     Max-Forwards: 70
     Date: Thu, 21 Feb 2002 13:02:03 GMT
     Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
     Content-Type: application/sdp
     Content-Length: 147

     v=0
     o=UserA 2890844526 2890844526 IN IP4 here.com
     s=Session SDP
     c=IN IP4 pc33.atlanta.com
     t=0 0
     m=audio 49172 RTP/AVP 0
     a=rtpmap:0 PCMU/8000

     --boundary42
     Content-Type: application/pkcs7-signature; name=smime.p7s
     Content-Transfer-Encoding: base64
     Content-Disposition: attachment; filename=smime.p7s;
        handling=required






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 210]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     ghyHhHUujhJhjH77n8HHGTrfvbnj756tbB9HG4VQpfyF467GhIGfHfYT6
     4VQpfyF467GhIGfHfYT6jH77n8HHGghyHhHUujhJh756tbB9HGTrfvbnj
     n8HHGTrfvhJhjH776tbB9HG4VQbnj7567GhIGfHfYT6ghyHhHUujpfyF4
     7GhIGfHfYT64VQbnj756

     --boundary42-

23.4.3 Tunneling Encryption

  It may also be desirable to use this mechanism to encrypt a
  "message/sip" MIME body within a CMS EnvelopedData message S/MIME
  body, but in practice, most header fields are of at least some use to
  the network; the general use of encryption with S/MIME is to secure
  message bodies like SDP rather than message headers.  Some
  informational header fields, such as the Subject or Organization
  could perhaps warrant end-to-end security.  Headers defined by future
  SIP applications might also require obfuscation.

  Another possible application of encrypting header fields is selective
  anonymity.  A request could be constructed with a From header field
  that contains no personal information (for example,
  sip:[email protected]).  However, a second From header
  field containing the genuine address-of-record of the originator
  could be encrypted within a "message/sip" MIME body where it will
  only be visible to the endpoints of a dialog.

     Note that if this mechanism is used for anonymity, the From header
     field will no longer be usable by the recipient of a message as an
     index to their certificate keychain for retrieving the proper
     S/MIME key to associated with the sender.  The message must first
     be decrypted, and the "inner" From header field MUST be used as an
     index.

  In order to provide end-to-end integrity, encrypted "message/sip"
  MIME bodies SHOULD be signed by the sender.  This creates a
  "multipart/signed" MIME body that contains an encrypted body and a
  signature, both of type "application/pkcs7-mime".














Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 211]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  In the following example, of an encrypted and signed message, the
  text boxed in asterisks ("*") is encrypted:

       INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
       Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
       To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
       From: Anonymous <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
       Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
       CSeq: 314159 INVITE
       Max-Forwards: 70
       Date: Thu, 21 Feb 2002 13:02:03 GMT
       Contact: <sip:pc33.atlanta.com>
       Content-Type: multipart/signed;
         protocol="application/pkcs7-signature";
         micalg=sha1; boundary=boundary42
       Content-Length: 568

       --boundary42
       Content-Type: application/pkcs7-mime; smime-type=enveloped-data;
            name=smime.p7m
       Content-Transfer-Encoding: base64
       Content-Disposition: attachment; filename=smime.p7m
          handling=required
       Content-Length: 231

     ***********************************************************
     * Content-Type: message/sip                               *
     *                                                         *
     * INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0                       *
     * Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8 *
     * To: Bob <[email protected]>                                *
     * From: Alice <[email protected]>;tag=1928301774          *
     * Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710                                 *
     * CSeq: 314159 INVITE                                     *
     * Max-Forwards: 70                                        *
     * Date: Thu, 21 Feb 2002 13:02:03 GMT                     *
     * Contact: <sip:[email protected]>                   *
     *                                                         *
     * Content-Type: application/sdp                           *
     *                                                         *
     * v=0                                                     *
     * o=alice 53655765 2353687637 IN IP4 pc33.atlanta.com     *
     * s=Session SDP                                           *
     * t=0 0                                                   *
     * c=IN IP4 pc33.atlanta.com                               *
     * m=audio 3456 RTP/AVP 0 1 3 99                           *
     * a=rtpmap:0 PCMU/8000                                    *
     ***********************************************************



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 212]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


       --boundary42
       Content-Type: application/pkcs7-signature; name=smime.p7s
       Content-Transfer-Encoding: base64
       Content-Disposition: attachment; filename=smime.p7s;
          handling=required

       ghyHhHUujhJhjH77n8HHGTrfvbnj756tbB9HG4VQpfyF467GhIGfHfYT6
       4VQpfyF467GhIGfHfYT6jH77n8HHGghyHhHUujhJh756tbB9HGTrfvbnj
       n8HHGTrfvhJhjH776tbB9HG4VQbnj7567GhIGfHfYT6ghyHhHUujpfyF4
       7GhIGfHfYT64VQbnj756

       --boundary42-

24 Examples

  In the following examples, we often omit the message body and the
  corresponding Content-Length and Content-Type header fields for
  brevity.

24.1 Registration

  Bob registers on start-up.  The message flow is shown in Figure 9.
  Note that the authentication usually required for registration is not
  shown for simplicity.

                 biloxi.com         Bob's
                  registrar       softphone
                     |                |
                     |   REGISTER F1  |
                     |<---------------|
                     |    200 OK F2   |
                     |--------------->|

                 Figure 9: SIP Registration Example

  F1 REGISTER Bob -> Registrar

      REGISTER sip:registrar.biloxi.com SIP/2.0
      Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bobspc.biloxi.com:5060;branch=z9hG4bKnashds7
      Max-Forwards: 70
      To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
      From: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=456248
      Call-ID: 843817637684230@998sdasdh09
      CSeq: 1826 REGISTER
      Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
      Expires: 7200
      Content-Length: 0




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 213]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The registration expires after two hours.  The registrar responds
  with a 200 OK:

  F2 200 OK Registrar -> Bob

       SIP/2.0 200 OK
       Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bobspc.biloxi.com:5060;branch=z9hG4bKnashds7
        ;received=192.0.2.4
       To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=2493k59kd
       From: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=456248
       Call-ID: 843817637684230@998sdasdh09
       CSeq: 1826 REGISTER
       Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
       Expires: 7200
       Content-Length: 0

24.2 Session Setup

  This example contains the full details of the example session setup
  in Section 4.  The message flow is shown in Figure 1.  Note that
  these flows show the minimum required set of header fields - some
  other header fields such as Allow and Supported would normally be
  present.

F1 INVITE Alice -> atlanta.com proxy

INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
Max-Forwards: 70
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 142

(Alice's SDP not shown)













Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 214]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


F2 100 Trying atlanta.com proxy -> Alice

SIP/2.0 100 Trying
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Content-Length: 0

F3 INVITE atlanta.com proxy -> biloxi.com proxy

INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
Max-Forwards: 69
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 142

(Alice's SDP not shown)

F4 100 Trying biloxi.com proxy -> atlanta.com proxy

SIP/2.0 100 Trying
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Content-Length: 0











Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 215]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


F5 INVITE biloxi.com proxy -> Bob

INVITE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP server10.biloxi.com;branch=z9hG4bK4b43c2ff8.1
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
Max-Forwards: 68
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 142

(Alice's SDP not shown)

F6 180 Ringing Bob -> biloxi.com proxy

SIP/2.0 180 Ringing
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP server10.biloxi.com;branch=z9hG4bK4b43c2ff8.1
;received=192.0.2.3
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Content-Length: 0

F7 180 Ringing biloxi.com proxy -> atlanta.com proxy

SIP/2.0 180 Ringing
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Content-Length: 0



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 216]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


F8 180 Ringing atlanta.com proxy -> Alice

SIP/2.0 180 Ringing
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Content-Length: 0

F9 200 OK Bob -> biloxi.com proxy

SIP/2.0 200 OK
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP server10.biloxi.com;branch=z9hG4bK4b43c2ff8.1
;received=192.0.2.3
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 131

(Bob's SDP not shown)

F10 200 OK biloxi.com proxy -> atlanta.com proxy

SIP/2.0 200 OK
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP bigbox3.site3.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bK77ef4c2312983.1
;received=192.0.2.2
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 131

(Bob's SDP not shown)




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 217]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


F11 200 OK atlanta.com proxy -> Alice

SIP/2.0 200 OK
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds8
;received=192.0.2.1
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 INVITE
Contact: <sip:[email protected]>
Content-Type: application/sdp
Content-Length: 131

(Bob's SDP not shown)

F12 ACK Alice -> Bob

ACK sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP pc33.atlanta.com;branch=z9hG4bKnashds9
Max-Forwards: 70
To: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
From: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 314159 ACK
Content-Length: 0

  The media session between Alice and Bob is now established.

  Bob hangs up first.  Note that Bob's SIP phone maintains its own CSeq
  numbering space, which, in this example, begins with 231.  Since Bob
  is making the request, the To and From URIs and tags have been
  swapped.

F13 BYE Bob -> Alice

BYE sip:[email protected] SIP/2.0
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP 192.0.2.4;branch=z9hG4bKnashds10
Max-Forwards: 70
From: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
To: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 231 BYE
Content-Length: 0








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 218]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


F14 200 OK Alice -> Bob

SIP/2.0 200 OK
Via: SIP/2.0/UDP 192.0.2.4;branch=z9hG4bKnashds10
From: Bob <sip:[email protected]>;tag=a6c85cf
To: Alice <sip:[email protected]>;tag=1928301774
Call-ID: a84b4c76e66710
CSeq: 231 BYE
Content-Length: 0

  The SIP Call Flows document [40] contains further examples of SIP
  messages.

25  Augmented BNF for the SIP Protocol

  All of the mechanisms specified in this document are described in
  both prose and an augmented Backus-Naur Form (BNF) defined in RFC
  2234 [10].  Section 6.1 of RFC 2234 defines a set of core rules that
  are used by this specification, and not repeated here.  Implementers
  need to be familiar with the notation and content of RFC 2234 in
  order to understand this specification.  Certain basic rules are in
  uppercase, such as SP, LWS, HTAB, CRLF, DIGIT, ALPHA, etc.  Angle
  brackets are used within definitions to clarify the use of rule
  names.

  The use of square brackets is redundant syntactically.  It is used as
  a semantic hint that the specific parameter is optional to use.

25.1 Basic Rules

  The following rules are used throughout this specification to
  describe basic parsing constructs.  The US-ASCII coded character set
  is defined by ANSI X3.4-1986.

     alphanum  =  ALPHA / DIGIT
















Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 219]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Several rules are incorporated from RFC 2396 [5] but are updated to
  make them compliant with RFC 2234 [10].  These include:

     reserved    =  ";" / "/" / "?" / ":" / "@" / "&" / "=" / "+"
                    / "$" / ","
     unreserved  =  alphanum / mark
     mark        =  "-" / "_" / "." / "!" / "~" / "*" / "'"
                    / "(" / ")"
     escaped     =  "%" HEXDIG HEXDIG

  SIP header field values can be folded onto multiple lines if the
  continuation line begins with a space or horizontal tab.  All linear
  white space, including folding, has the same semantics as SP.  A
  recipient MAY replace any linear white space with a single SP before
  interpreting the field value or forwarding the message downstream.
  This is intended to behave exactly as HTTP/1.1 as described in RFC
  2616 [8].  The SWS construct is used when linear white space is
  optional, generally between tokens and separators.

     LWS  =  [*WSP CRLF] 1*WSP ; linear whitespace
     SWS  =  [LWS] ; sep whitespace

  To separate the header name from the rest of value, a colon is used,
  which, by the above rule, allows whitespace before, but no line
  break, and whitespace after, including a linebreak.  The HCOLON
  defines this construct.

     HCOLON  =  *( SP / HTAB ) ":" SWS

  The TEXT-UTF8 rule is only used for descriptive field contents and
  values that are not intended to be interpreted by the message parser.
  Words of *TEXT-UTF8 contain characters from the UTF-8 charset (RFC
  2279 [7]).  The TEXT-UTF8-TRIM rule is used for descriptive field
  contents that are n t quoted strings, where leading and trailing LWS
  is not meaningful.  In this regard, SIP differs from HTTP, which uses
  the ISO 8859-1 character set.

     TEXT-UTF8-TRIM  =  1*TEXT-UTF8char *(*LWS TEXT-UTF8char)
     TEXT-UTF8char   =  %x21-7E / UTF8-NONASCII
     UTF8-NONASCII   =  %xC0-DF 1UTF8-CONT
                     /  %xE0-EF 2UTF8-CONT
                     /  %xF0-F7 3UTF8-CONT
                     /  %xF8-Fb 4UTF8-CONT
                     /  %xFC-FD 5UTF8-CONT
     UTF8-CONT       =  %x80-BF






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 220]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  A CRLF is allowed in the definition of TEXT-UTF8-TRIM only as part of
  a header field continuation.  It is expected that the folding LWS
  will be replaced with a single SP before interpretation of the TEXT-
  UTF8-TRIM value.

  Hexadecimal numeric characters are used in several protocol elements.
  Some elements (authentication) force hex alphas to be lower case.

     LHEX  =  DIGIT / %x61-66 ;lowercase a-f

  Many SIP header field values consist of words separated by LWS or
  special characters.  Unless otherwise stated, tokens are case-
  insensitive.  These special characters MUST be in a quoted string to
  be used within a parameter value.  The word construct is used in
  Call-ID to allow most separators to be used.

     token       =  1*(alphanum / "-" / "." / "!" / "%" / "*"
                    / "_" / "+" / "`" / "'" / "~" )
     separators  =  "(" / ")" / "<" / ">" / "@" /
                    "," / ";" / ":" / "\" / DQUOTE /
                    "/" / "[" / "]" / "?" / "=" /
                    "{" / "}" / SP / HTAB
     word        =  1*(alphanum / "-" / "." / "!" / "%" / "*" /
                    "_" / "+" / "`" / "'" / "~" /
                    "(" / ")" / "<" / ">" /
                    ":" / "\" / DQUOTE /
                    "/" / "[" / "]" / "?" /
                    "{" / "}" )

  When tokens are used or separators are used between elements,
  whitespace is often allowed before or after these characters:

     STAR    =  SWS "*" SWS ; asterisk
     SLASH   =  SWS "/" SWS ; slash
     EQUAL   =  SWS "=" SWS ; equal
     LPAREN  =  SWS "(" SWS ; left parenthesis
     RPAREN  =  SWS ")" SWS ; right parenthesis
     RAQUOT  =  ">" SWS ; right angle quote
     LAQUOT  =  SWS "<"; left angle quote
     COMMA   =  SWS "," SWS ; comma
     SEMI    =  SWS ";" SWS ; semicolon
     COLON   =  SWS ":" SWS ; colon
     LDQUOT  =  SWS DQUOTE; open double quotation mark
     RDQUOT  =  DQUOTE SWS ; close double quotation mark







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 221]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Comments can be included in some SIP header fields by surrounding the
  comment text with parentheses.  Comments are only allowed in fields
  containing "comment" as part of their field value definition.  In all
  other fields, parentheses are considered part of the field value.

     comment  =  LPAREN *(ctext / quoted-pair / comment) RPAREN
     ctext    =  %x21-27 / %x2A-5B / %x5D-7E / UTF8-NONASCII
                 / LWS

  ctext includes all chars except left and right parens and backslash.
  A string of text is parsed as a single word if it is quoted using
  double-quote marks.  In quoted strings, quotation marks (") and
  backslashes (\) need to be escaped.

     quoted-string  =  SWS DQUOTE *(qdtext / quoted-pair ) DQUOTE
     qdtext         =  LWS / %x21 / %x23-5B / %x5D-7E
                       / UTF8-NONASCII

  The backslash character ("\") MAY be used as a single-character
  quoting mechanism only within quoted-string and comment constructs.
  Unlike HTTP/1.1, the characters CR and LF cannot be escaped by this
  mechanism to avoid conflict with line folding and header separation.

quoted-pair  =  "\" (%x00-09 / %x0B-0C
               / %x0E-7F)

SIP-URI          =  "sip:" [ userinfo ] hostport
                   uri-parameters [ headers ]
SIPS-URI         =  "sips:" [ userinfo ] hostport
                   uri-parameters [ headers ]
userinfo         =  ( user / telephone-subscriber ) [ ":" password ] "@"
user             =  1*( unreserved / escaped / user-unreserved )
user-unreserved  =  "&" / "=" / "+" / "$" / "," / ";" / "?" / "/"
password         =  *( unreserved / escaped /
                   "&" / "=" / "+" / "$" / "," )
hostport         =  host [ ":" port ]
host             =  hostname / IPv4address / IPv6reference
hostname         =  *( domainlabel "." ) toplabel [ "." ]
domainlabel      =  alphanum
                   / alphanum *( alphanum / "-" ) alphanum
toplabel         =  ALPHA / ALPHA *( alphanum / "-" ) alphanum










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 222]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


IPv4address    =  1*3DIGIT "." 1*3DIGIT "." 1*3DIGIT "." 1*3DIGIT
IPv6reference  =  "[" IPv6address "]"
IPv6address    =  hexpart [ ":" IPv4address ]
hexpart        =  hexseq / hexseq "::" [ hexseq ] / "::" [ hexseq ]
hexseq         =  hex4 *( ":" hex4)
hex4           =  1*4HEXDIG
port           =  1*DIGIT

  The BNF for telephone-subscriber can be found in RFC 2806 [9].  Note,
  however, that any characters allowed there that are not allowed in
  the user part of the SIP URI MUST be escaped.

uri-parameters    =  *( ";" uri-parameter)
uri-parameter     =  transport-param / user-param / method-param
                    / ttl-param / maddr-param / lr-param / other-param
transport-param   =  "transport="
                    ( "udp" / "tcp" / "sctp" / "tls"
                    / other-transport)
other-transport   =  token
user-param        =  "user=" ( "phone" / "ip" / other-user)
other-user        =  token
method-param      =  "method=" Method
ttl-param         =  "ttl=" ttl
maddr-param       =  "maddr=" host
lr-param          =  "lr"
other-param       =  pname [ "=" pvalue ]
pname             =  1*paramchar
pvalue            =  1*paramchar
paramchar         =  param-unreserved / unreserved / escaped
param-unreserved  =  "[" / "]" / "/" / ":" / "&" / "+" / "$"

headers         =  "?" header *( "&" header )
header          =  hname "=" hvalue
hname           =  1*( hnv-unreserved / unreserved / escaped )
hvalue          =  *( hnv-unreserved / unreserved / escaped )
hnv-unreserved  =  "[" / "]" / "/" / "?" / ":" / "+" / "$"

SIP-message    =  Request / Response
Request        =  Request-Line
                 *( message-header )
                 CRLF
                 [ message-body ]
Request-Line   =  Method SP Request-URI SP SIP-Version CRLF
Request-URI    =  SIP-URI / SIPS-URI / absoluteURI
absoluteURI    =  scheme ":" ( hier-part / opaque-part )
hier-part      =  ( net-path / abs-path ) [ "?" query ]
net-path       =  "//" authority [ abs-path ]
abs-path       =  "/" path-segments



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 223]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


opaque-part    =  uric-no-slash *uric
uric           =  reserved / unreserved / escaped
uric-no-slash  =  unreserved / escaped / ";" / "?" / ":" / "@"
                 / "&" / "=" / "+" / "$" / ","
path-segments  =  segment *( "/" segment )
segment        =  *pchar *( ";" param )
param          =  *pchar
pchar          =  unreserved / escaped /
                 ":" / "@" / "&" / "=" / "+" / "$" / ","
scheme         =  ALPHA *( ALPHA / DIGIT / "+" / "-" / "." )
authority      =  srvr / reg-name
srvr           =  [ [ userinfo "@" ] hostport ]
reg-name       =  1*( unreserved / escaped / "$" / ","
                 / ";" / ":" / "@" / "&" / "=" / "+" )
query          =  *uric
SIP-Version    =  "SIP" "/" 1*DIGIT "." 1*DIGIT

message-header  =  (Accept
               /  Accept-Encoding
               /  Accept-Language
               /  Alert-Info
               /  Allow
               /  Authentication-Info
               /  Authorization
               /  Call-ID
               /  Call-Info
               /  Contact
               /  Content-Disposition
               /  Content-Encoding
               /  Content-Language
               /  Content-Length
               /  Content-Type
               /  CSeq
               /  Date
               /  Error-Info
               /  Expires
               /  From
               /  In-Reply-To
               /  Max-Forwards
               /  MIME-Version
               /  Min-Expires
               /  Organization
               /  Priority
               /  Proxy-Authenticate
               /  Proxy-Authorization
               /  Proxy-Require
               /  Record-Route
               /  Reply-To



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 224]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


               /  Require
               /  Retry-After
               /  Route
               /  Server
               /  Subject
               /  Supported
               /  Timestamp
               /  To
               /  Unsupported
               /  User-Agent
               /  Via
               /  Warning
               /  WWW-Authenticate
               /  extension-header) CRLF

INVITEm           =  %x49.4E.56.49.54.45 ; INVITE in caps
ACKm              =  %x41.43.4B ; ACK in caps
OPTIONSm          =  %x4F.50.54.49.4F.4E.53 ; OPTIONS in caps
BYEm              =  %x42.59.45 ; BYE in caps
CANCELm           =  %x43.41.4E.43.45.4C ; CANCEL in caps
REGISTERm         =  %x52.45.47.49.53.54.45.52 ; REGISTER in caps
Method            =  INVITEm / ACKm / OPTIONSm / BYEm
                    / CANCELm / REGISTERm
                    / extension-method
extension-method  =  token
Response          =  Status-Line
                    *( message-header )
                    CRLF
                    [ message-body ]

Status-Line     =  SIP-Version SP Status-Code SP Reason-Phrase CRLF
Status-Code     =  Informational
              /   Redirection
              /   Success
              /   Client-Error
              /   Server-Error
              /   Global-Failure
              /   extension-code
extension-code  =  3DIGIT
Reason-Phrase   =  *(reserved / unreserved / escaped
                  / UTF8-NONASCII / UTF8-CONT / SP / HTAB)

Informational  =  "100"  ;  Trying
             /   "180"  ;  Ringing
             /   "181"  ;  Call Is Being Forwarded
             /   "182"  ;  Queued
             /   "183"  ;  Session Progress




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 225]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Success  =  "200"  ;  OK

Redirection  =  "300"  ;  Multiple Choices
           /   "301"  ;  Moved Permanently
           /   "302"  ;  Moved Temporarily
           /   "305"  ;  Use Proxy
           /   "380"  ;  Alternative Service

Client-Error  =  "400"  ;  Bad Request
            /   "401"  ;  Unauthorized
            /   "402"  ;  Payment Required
            /   "403"  ;  Forbidden
            /   "404"  ;  Not Found
            /   "405"  ;  Method Not Allowed
            /   "406"  ;  Not Acceptable
            /   "407"  ;  Proxy Authentication Required
            /   "408"  ;  Request Timeout
            /   "410"  ;  Gone
            /   "413"  ;  Request Entity Too Large
            /   "414"  ;  Request-URI Too Large
            /   "415"  ;  Unsupported Media Type
            /   "416"  ;  Unsupported URI Scheme
            /   "420"  ;  Bad Extension
            /   "421"  ;  Extension Required
            /   "423"  ;  Interval Too Brief
            /   "480"  ;  Temporarily not available
            /   "481"  ;  Call Leg/Transaction Does Not Exist
            /   "482"  ;  Loop Detected
            /   "483"  ;  Too Many Hops
            /   "484"  ;  Address Incomplete
            /   "485"  ;  Ambiguous
            /   "486"  ;  Busy Here
            /   "487"  ;  Request Terminated
            /   "488"  ;  Not Acceptable Here
            /   "491"  ;  Request Pending
            /   "493"  ;  Undecipherable

Server-Error  =  "500"  ;  Internal Server Error
            /   "501"  ;  Not Implemented
            /   "502"  ;  Bad Gateway
            /   "503"  ;  Service Unavailable
            /   "504"  ;  Server Time-out
            /   "505"  ;  SIP Version not supported
            /   "513"  ;  Message Too Large







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 226]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Global-Failure  =  "600"  ;  Busy Everywhere
              /   "603"  ;  Decline
              /   "604"  ;  Does not exist anywhere
              /   "606"  ;  Not Acceptable

Accept         =  "Accept" HCOLON
                  [ accept-range *(COMMA accept-range) ]
accept-range   =  media-range *(SEMI accept-param)
media-range    =  ( "*/*"
                 / ( m-type SLASH "*" )
                 / ( m-type SLASH m-subtype )
                 ) *( SEMI m-parameter )
accept-param   =  ("q" EQUAL qvalue) / generic-param
qvalue         =  ( "0" [ "." 0*3DIGIT ] )
                 / ( "1" [ "." 0*3("0") ] )
generic-param  =  token [ EQUAL gen-value ]
gen-value      =  token / host / quoted-string

Accept-Encoding  =  "Accept-Encoding" HCOLON
                    [ encoding *(COMMA encoding) ]
encoding         =  codings *(SEMI accept-param)
codings          =  content-coding / "*"
content-coding   =  token

Accept-Language  =  "Accept-Language" HCOLON
                    [ language *(COMMA language) ]
language         =  language-range *(SEMI accept-param)
language-range   =  ( ( 1*8ALPHA *( "-" 1*8ALPHA ) ) / "*" )

Alert-Info   =  "Alert-Info" HCOLON alert-param *(COMMA alert-param)
alert-param  =  LAQUOT absoluteURI RAQUOT *( SEMI generic-param )

Allow  =  "Allow" HCOLON [Method *(COMMA Method)]

Authorization     =  "Authorization" HCOLON credentials
credentials       =  ("Digest" LWS digest-response)
                    / other-response
digest-response   =  dig-resp *(COMMA dig-resp)
dig-resp          =  username / realm / nonce / digest-uri
                     / dresponse / algorithm / cnonce
                     / opaque / message-qop
                     / nonce-count / auth-param
username          =  "username" EQUAL username-value
username-value    =  quoted-string
digest-uri        =  "uri" EQUAL LDQUOT digest-uri-value RDQUOT
digest-uri-value  =  rquest-uri ; Equal to request-uri as specified
                    by HTTP/1.1
message-qop       =  "qop" EQUAL qop-value



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 227]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


cnonce            =  "cnonce" EQUAL cnonce-value
cnonce-value      =  nonce-value
nonce-count       =  "nc" EQUAL nc-value
nc-value          =  8LHEX
dresponse         =  "response" EQUAL request-digest
request-digest    =  LDQUOT 32LHEX RDQUOT
auth-param        =  auth-param-name EQUAL
                    ( token / quoted-string )
auth-param-name   =  token
other-response    =  auth-scheme LWS auth-param
                    *(COMMA auth-param)
auth-scheme       =  token

Authentication-Info  =  "Authentication-Info" HCOLON ainfo
                       *(COMMA ainfo)
ainfo                =  nextnonce / message-qop
                        / response-auth / cnonce
                        / nonce-count
nextnonce            =  "nextnonce" EQUAL nonce-value
response-auth        =  "rspauth" EQUAL response-digest
response-digest      =  LDQUOT *LHEX RDQUOT

Call-ID  =  ( "Call-ID" / "i" ) HCOLON callid
callid   =  word [ "@" word ]

Call-Info   =  "Call-Info" HCOLON info *(COMMA info)
info        =  LAQUOT absoluteURI RAQUOT *( SEMI info-param)
info-param  =  ( "purpose" EQUAL ( "icon" / "info"
              / "card" / token ) ) / generic-param

Contact        =  ("Contact" / "m" ) HCOLON
                 ( STAR / (contact-param *(COMMA contact-param)))
contact-param  =  (name-addr / addr-spec) *(SEMI contact-params)
name-addr      =  [ display-name ] LAQUOT addr-spec RAQUOT
addr-spec      =  SIP-URI / SIPS-URI / absoluteURI
display-name   =  *(token LWS)/ quoted-string

contact-params     =  c-p-q / c-p-expires
                     / contact-extension
c-p-q              =  "q" EQUAL qvalue
c-p-expires        =  "expires" EQUAL delta-seconds
contact-extension  =  generic-param
delta-seconds      =  1*DIGIT

Content-Disposition   =  "Content-Disposition" HCOLON
                        disp-type *( SEMI disp-param )
disp-type             =  "render" / "session" / "icon" / "alert"
                        / disp-extension-token



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 228]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


disp-param            =  handling-param / generic-param
handling-param        =  "handling" EQUAL
                        ( "optional" / "required"
                        / other-handling )
other-handling        =  token
disp-extension-token  =  token

Content-Encoding  =  ( "Content-Encoding" / "e" ) HCOLON
                    content-coding *(COMMA content-coding)

Content-Language  =  "Content-Language" HCOLON
                    language-tag *(COMMA language-tag)
language-tag      =  primary-tag *( "-" subtag )
primary-tag       =  1*8ALPHA
subtag            =  1*8ALPHA

Content-Length  =  ( "Content-Length" / "l" ) HCOLON 1*DIGIT
Content-Type     =  ( "Content-Type" / "c" ) HCOLON media-type
media-type       =  m-type SLASH m-subtype *(SEMI m-parameter)
m-type           =  discrete-type / composite-type
discrete-type    =  "text" / "image" / "audio" / "video"
                   / "application" / extension-token
composite-type   =  "message" / "multipart" / extension-token
extension-token  =  ietf-token / x-token
ietf-token       =  token
x-token          =  "x-" token
m-subtype        =  extension-token / iana-token
iana-token       =  token
m-parameter      =  m-attribute EQUAL m-value
m-attribute      =  token
m-value          =  token / quoted-string

CSeq  =  "CSeq" HCOLON 1*DIGIT LWS Method

Date          =  "Date" HCOLON SIP-date
SIP-date      =  rfc1123-date
rfc1123-date  =  wkday "," SP date1 SP time SP "GMT"
date1         =  2DIGIT SP month SP 4DIGIT
                ; day month year (e.g., 02 Jun 1982)
time          =  2DIGIT ":" 2DIGIT ":" 2DIGIT
                ; 00:00:00 - 23:59:59
wkday         =  "Mon" / "Tue" / "Wed"
                / "Thu" / "Fri" / "Sat" / "Sun"
month         =  "Jan" / "Feb" / "Mar" / "Apr"
                / "May" / "Jun" / "Jul" / "Aug"
                / "Sep" / "Oct" / "Nov" / "Dec"

Error-Info  =  "Error-Info" HCOLON error-uri *(COMMA error-uri)



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 229]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


error-uri   =  LAQUOT absoluteURI RAQUOT *( SEMI generic-param )

Expires     =  "Expires" HCOLON delta-seconds
From        =  ( "From" / "f" ) HCOLON from-spec
from-spec   =  ( name-addr / addr-spec )
              *( SEMI from-param )
from-param  =  tag-param / generic-param
tag-param   =  "tag" EQUAL token

In-Reply-To  =  "In-Reply-To" HCOLON callid *(COMMA callid)

Max-Forwards  =  "Max-Forwards" HCOLON 1*DIGIT

MIME-Version  =  "MIME-Version" HCOLON 1*DIGIT "." 1*DIGIT

Min-Expires  =  "Min-Expires" HCOLON delta-seconds

Organization  =  "Organization" HCOLON [TEXT-UTF8-TRIM]

Priority        =  "Priority" HCOLON priority-value
priority-value  =  "emergency" / "urgent" / "normal"
                  / "non-urgent" / other-priority
other-priority  =  token

Proxy-Authenticate  =  "Proxy-Authenticate" HCOLON challenge
challenge           =  ("Digest" LWS digest-cln *(COMMA digest-cln))
                      / other-challenge
other-challenge     =  auth-scheme LWS auth-param
                      *(COMMA auth-param)
digest-cln          =  realm / domain / nonce
                       / opaque / stale / algorithm
                       / qop-options / auth-param
realm               =  "realm" EQUAL realm-value
realm-value         =  quoted-string
domain              =  "domain" EQUAL LDQUOT URI
                      *( 1*SP URI ) RDQUOT
URI                 =  absoluteURI / abs-path
nonce               =  "nonce" EQUAL nonce-value
nonce-value         =  quoted-string
opaque              =  "opaque" EQUAL quoted-string
stale               =  "stale" EQUAL ( "true" / "false" )
algorithm           =  "algorithm" EQUAL ( "MD5" / "MD5-sess"
                      / token )
qop-options         =  "qop" EQUAL LDQUOT qop-value
                      *("," qop-value) RDQUOT
qop-value           =  "auth" / "auth-int" / token

Proxy-Authorization  =  "Proxy-Authorization" HCOLON credentials



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 230]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Proxy-Require  =  "Proxy-Require" HCOLON option-tag
                 *(COMMA option-tag)
option-tag     =  token

Record-Route  =  "Record-Route" HCOLON rec-route *(COMMA rec-route)
rec-route     =  name-addr *( SEMI rr-param )
rr-param      =  generic-param

Reply-To      =  "Reply-To" HCOLON rplyto-spec
rplyto-spec   =  ( name-addr / addr-spec )
                *( SEMI rplyto-param )
rplyto-param  =  generic-param
Require       =  "Require" HCOLON option-tag *(COMMA option-tag)

Retry-After  =  "Retry-After" HCOLON delta-seconds
               [ comment ] *( SEMI retry-param )

retry-param  =  ("duration" EQUAL delta-seconds)
               / generic-param

Route        =  "Route" HCOLON route-param *(COMMA route-param)
route-param  =  name-addr *( SEMI rr-param )

Server           =  "Server" HCOLON server-val *(LWS server-val)
server-val       =  product / comment
product          =  token [SLASH product-version]
product-version  =  token

Subject  =  ( "Subject" / "s" ) HCOLON [TEXT-UTF8-TRIM]

Supported  =  ( "Supported" / "k" ) HCOLON
             [option-tag *(COMMA option-tag)]

Timestamp  =  "Timestamp" HCOLON 1*(DIGIT)
              [ "." *(DIGIT) ] [ LWS delay ]
delay      =  *(DIGIT) [ "." *(DIGIT) ]

To        =  ( "To" / "t" ) HCOLON ( name-addr
            / addr-spec ) *( SEMI to-param )
to-param  =  tag-param / generic-param

Unsupported  =  "Unsupported" HCOLON option-tag *(COMMA option-tag)
User-Agent  =  "User-Agent" HCOLON server-val *(LWS server-val)








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 231]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Via               =  ( "Via" / "v" ) HCOLON via-parm *(COMMA via-parm)
via-parm          =  sent-protocol LWS sent-by *( SEMI via-params )
via-params        =  via-ttl / via-maddr
                    / via-received / via-branch
                    / via-extension
via-ttl           =  "ttl" EQUAL ttl
via-maddr         =  "maddr" EQUAL host
via-received      =  "received" EQUAL (IPv4address / IPv6address)
via-branch        =  "branch" EQUAL token
via-extension     =  generic-param
sent-protocol     =  protocol-name SLASH protocol-version
                    SLASH transport
protocol-name     =  "SIP" / token
protocol-version  =  token
transport         =  "UDP" / "TCP" / "TLS" / "SCTP"
                    / other-transport
sent-by           =  host [ COLON port ]
ttl               =  1*3DIGIT ; 0 to 255

Warning        =  "Warning" HCOLON warning-value *(COMMA warning-value)
warning-value  =  warn-code SP warn-agent SP warn-text
warn-code      =  3DIGIT
warn-agent     =  hostport / pseudonym
                 ;  the name or pseudonym of the server adding
                 ;  the Warning header, for use in debugging
warn-text      =  quoted-string
pseudonym      =  token

WWW-Authenticate  =  "WWW-Authenticate" HCOLON challenge

extension-header  =  header-name HCOLON header-value
header-name       =  token
header-value      =  *(TEXT-UTF8char / UTF8-CONT / LWS)
message-body  =  *OCTET

26 Security Considerations: Threat Model and Security Usage
  Recommendations

  SIP is not an easy protocol to secure.  Its use of intermediaries,
  its multi-faceted trust relationships, its expected usage between
  elements with no trust at all, and its user-to-user operation make
  security far from trivial.  Security solutions are needed that are
  deployable today, without extensive coordination, in a wide variety
  of environments and usages.  In order to meet these diverse needs,
  several distinct mechanisms applicable to different aspects and
  usages of SIP will be required.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 232]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Note that the security of SIP signaling itself has no bearing on the
  security of protocols used in concert with SIP such as RTP, or with
  the security implications of any specific bodies SIP might carry
  (although MIME security plays a substantial role in securing SIP).
  Any media associated with a session can be encrypted end-to-end
  independently of any associated SIP signaling.  Media encryption is
  outside the scope of this document.

  The considerations that follow first examine a set of classic threat
  models that broadly identify the security needs of SIP.  The set of
  security services required to address these threats is then detailed,
  followed by an explanation of several security mechanisms that can be
  used to provide these services.  Next, the requirements for
  implementers of SIP are enumerated, along with exemplary deployments
  in which these security mechanisms could be used to improve the
  security of SIP.  Some notes on privacy conclude this section.

26.1 Attacks and Threat Models

  This section details some threats that should be common to most
  deployments of SIP.  These threats have been chosen specifically to
  illustrate each of the security services that SIP requires.

  The following examples by no means provide an exhaustive list of the
  threats against SIP; rather, these are "classic" threats that
  demonstrate the need for particular security services that can
  potentially prevent whole categories of threats.

  These attacks assume an environment in which attackers can
  potentially read any packet on the network - it is anticipated that
  SIP will frequently be used on the public Internet.  Attackers on the
  network may be able to modify packets (perhaps at some compromised
  intermediary).  Attackers may wish to steal services, eavesdrop on
  communications, or disrupt sessions.

26.1.1 Registration Hijacking

  The SIP registration mechanism allows a user agent to identify itself
  to a registrar as a device at which a user (designated by an address
  of record) is located.  A registrar assesses the identity asserted in
  the From header field of a REGISTER message to determine whether this
  request can modify the contact addresses associated with the
  address-of-record in the To header field.  While these two fields are
  frequently the same, there are many valid deployments in which a
  third-party may register contacts on a user's behalf.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 233]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The From header field of a SIP request, however, can be modified
  arbitrarily by the owner of a UA, and this opens the door to
  malicious registrations.  An attacker that successfully impersonates
  a party authorized to change contacts associated with an address-of-
  record could, for example, de-register all existing contacts for a
  URI and then register their own device as the appropriate contact
  address, thereby directing all requests for the affected user to the
  attacker's device.

  This threat belongs to a family of threats that rely on the absence
  of cryptographic assurance of a request's originator.  Any SIP UAS
  that represents a valuable service (a gateway that interworks SIP
  requests with traditional telephone calls, for example) might want to
  control access to its resources by authenticating requests that it
  receives.  Even end-user UAs, for example SIP phones, have an
  interest in ascertaining the identities of originators of requests.

  This threat demonstrates the need for security services that enable
  SIP entities to authenticate the originators of requests.

26.1.2 Impersonating a Server

  The domain to which a request is destined is generally specified in
  the Request-URI.  UAs commonly contact a server in this domain
  directly in order to deliver a request.  However, there is always a
  possibility that an attacker could impersonate the remote server, and
  that the UA's request could be intercepted by some other party.

  For example, consider a case in which a redirect server at one
  domain, chicago.com, impersonates a redirect server at another
  domain, biloxi.com.  A user agent sends a request to biloxi.com, but
  the redirect server at chicago.com answers with a forged response
  that has appropriate SIP header fields for a response from
  biloxi.com.  The forged contact addresses in the redirection response
  could direct the originating UA to inappropriate or insecure
  resources, or simply prevent requests for biloxi.com from succeeding.

  This family of threats has a vast membership, many of which are
  critical.  As a converse to the registration hijacking threat,
  consider the case in which a registration sent to biloxi.com is
  intercepted by chicago.com, which replies to the intercepted
  registration with a forged 301 (Moved Permanently) response.  This
  response might seem to come from biloxi.com yet designate chicago.com
  as the appropriate registrar.  All future REGISTER requests from the
  originating UA would then go to chicago.com.

  Prevention of this threat requires a means by which UAs can
  authenticate the servers to whom they send requests.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 234]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


26.1.3 Tampering with Message Bodies

  As a matter of course, SIP UAs route requests through trusted proxy
  servers.  Regardless of how that trust is established (authentication
  of proxies is discussed elsewhere in this section), a UA may trust a
  proxy server to route a request, but not to inspect or possibly
  modify the bodies contained in that request.

  Consider a UA that is using SIP message bodies to communicate session
  encryption keys for a media session.  Although it trusts the proxy
  server of the domain it is contacting to deliver signaling properly,
  it may not want the administrators of that domain to be capable of
  decrypting any subsequent media session.  Worse yet, if the proxy
  server were actively malicious, it could modify the session key,
  either acting as a man-in-the-middle, or perhaps changing the
  security characteristics requested by the originating UA.

  This family of threats applies not only to session keys, but to most
  conceivable forms of content carried end-to-end in SIP.  These might
  include MIME bodies that should be rendered to the user, SDP, or
  encapsulated telephony signals, among others.  Attackers might
  attempt to modify SDP bodies, for example, in order to point RTP
  media streams to a wiretapping device in order to eavesdrop on
  subsequent voice communications.

  Also note that some header fields in SIP are meaningful end-to-end,
  for example, Subject.  UAs might be protective of these header fields
  as well as bodies (a malicious intermediary changing the Subject
  header field might make an important request appear to be spam, for
  example).  However, since many header fields are legitimately
  inspected or altered by proxy servers as a request is routed, not all
  header fields should be secured end-to-end.

  For these reasons, the UA might want to secure SIP message bodies,
  and in some limited cases header fields, end-to-end.  The security
  services required for bodies include confidentiality, integrity, and
  authentication.  These end-to-end services should be independent of
  the means used to secure interactions with intermediaries such as
  proxy servers.

26.1.4 Tearing Down Sessions

  Once a dialog has been established by initial messaging, subsequent
  requests can be sent that modify the state of the dialog and/or
  session.  It is critical that principals in a session can be certain
  that such requests are not forged by attackers.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 235]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Consider a case in which a third-party attacker captures some initial
  messages in a dialog shared by two parties in order to learn the
  parameters of the session (To tag, From tag, and so forth) and then
  inserts a BYE request into the session.  The attacker could opt to
  forge the request such that it seemed to come from either
  participant.  Once the BYE is received by its target, the session
  will be torn down prematurely.

  Similar mid-session threats include the transmission of forged re-
  INVITEs that alter the session (possibly to reduce session security
  or redirect media streams as part of a wiretapping attack).

  The most effective countermeasure to this threat is the
  authentication of the sender of the BYE.  In this instance, the
  recipient needs only know that the BYE came from the same party with
  whom the corresponding dialog was established (as opposed to
  ascertaining the absolute identity of the sender).  Also, if the
  attacker is unable to learn the parameters of the session due to
  confidentiality, it would not be possible to forge the BYE.  However,
  some intermediaries (like proxy servers) will need to inspect those
  parameters as the session is established.

26.1.5 Denial of Service and Amplification

  Denial-of-service attacks focus on rendering a particular network
  element unavailable, usually by directing an excessive amount of
  network traffic at its interfaces.  A distributed denial-of-service
  attack allows one network user to cause multiple network hosts to
  flood a target host with a large amount of network traffic.

  In many architectures, SIP proxy servers face the public Internet in
  order to accept requests from worldwide IP endpoints.  SIP creates a
  number of potential opportunities for distributed denial-of-service
  attacks that must be recognized and addressed by the implementers and
  operators of SIP systems.

  Attackers can create bogus requests that contain a falsified source
  IP address and a corresponding Via header field that identify a
  targeted host as the originator of the request and then send this
  request to a large number of SIP network elements, thereby using
  hapless SIP UAs or proxies to generate denial-of-service traffic
  aimed at the target.

  Similarly, attackers might use falsified Route header field values in
  a request that identify the target host and then send such messages
  to forking proxies that will amplify messaging sent to the target.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 236]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Record-Route could be used to similar effect when the attacker is
  certain that the SIP dialog initiated by the request will result in
  numerous transactions originating in the backwards direction.

  A number of denial-of-service attacks open up if REGISTER requests
  are not properly authenticated and authorized by registrars.
  Attackers could de-register some or all users in an administrative
  domain, thereby preventing these users from being invited to new
  sessions.  An attacker could also register a large number of contacts
  designating the same host for a given address-of-record in order to
  use the registrar and any associated proxy servers as amplifiers in a
  denial-of-service attack.  Attackers might also attempt to deplete
  available memory and disk resources of a registrar by registering
  huge numbers of bindings.

  The use of multicast to transmit SIP requests can greatly increase
  the potential for denial-of-service attacks.

  These problems demonstrate a general need to define architectures
  that minimize the risks of denial-of-service, and the need to be
  mindful in recommendations for security mechanisms of this class of
  attacks.

26.2 Security Mechanisms

  From the threats described above, we gather that the fundamental
  security services required for the SIP protocol are: preserving the
  confidentiality and integrity of messaging, preventing replay attacks
  or message spoofing, providing for the authentication and privacy of
  the participants in a session, and preventing denial-of-service
  attacks.  Bodies within SIP messages separately require the security
  services of confidentiality, integrity, and authentication.

  Rather than defining new security mechanisms specific to SIP, SIP
  reuses wherever possible existing security models derived from the
  HTTP and SMTP space.

  Full encryption of messages provides the best means to preserve the
  confidentiality of signaling - it can also guarantee that messages
  are not modified by any malicious intermediaries.  However, SIP
  requests and responses cannot be naively encrypted end-to-end in
  their entirety because message fields such as the Request-URI, Route,
  and Via need to be visible to proxies in most network architectures
  so that SIP requests are routed correctly.  Note that proxy servers
  need to modify some features of messages as well (such as adding Via
  header field values) in order for SIP to function.  Proxy servers
  must therefore be trusted, to some degree, by SIP UAs.  To this
  purpose, low-layer security mechanisms for SIP are recommended, which



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 237]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  encrypt the entire SIP requests or responses on the wire on a hop-
  by-hop basis, and that allow endpoints to verify the identity of
  proxy servers to whom they send requests.

  SIP entities also have a need to identify one another in a secure
  fashion.  When a SIP endpoint asserts the identity of its user to a
  peer UA or to a proxy server, that identity should in some way be
  verifiable.  A cryptographic authentication mechanism is provided in
  SIP to address this requirement.

  An independent security mechanism for SIP message bodies supplies an
  alternative means of end-to-end mutual authentication, as well as
  providing a limit on the degree to which user agents must trust
  intermediaries.

26.2.1 Transport and Network Layer Security

  Transport or network layer security encrypts signaling traffic,
  guaranteeing message confidentiality and integrity.

  Oftentimes, certificates are used in the establishment of lower-layer
  security, and these certificates can also be used to provide a means
  of authentication in many architectures.

  Two popular alternatives for providing security at the transport and
  network layer are, respectively, TLS [25] and IPSec [26].

  IPSec is a set of network-layer protocol tools that collectively can
  be used as a secure replacement for traditional IP (Internet
  Protocol).  IPSec is most commonly used in architectures in which a
  set of hosts or administrative domains have an existing trust
  relationship with one another.  IPSec is usually implemented at the
  operating system level in a host, or on a security gateway that
  provides confidentiality and integrity for all traffic it receives
  from a particular interface (as in a VPN architecture).  IPSec can
  also be used on a hop-by-hop basis.

  In many architectures IPSec does not require integration with SIP
  applications; IPSec is perhaps best suited to deployments in which
  adding security directly to SIP hosts would be arduous.  UAs that
  have a pre-shared keying relationship with their first-hop proxy
  server are also good candidates to use IPSec.  Any deployment of
  IPSec for SIP would require an IPSec profile describing the protocol
  tools that would be required to secure SIP.  No such profile is given
  in this document.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 238]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  TLS provides transport-layer security over connection-oriented
  protocols (for the purposes of this document, TCP); "tls" (signifying
  TLS over TCP) can be specified as the desired transport protocol
  within a Via header field value or a SIP-URI.  TLS is most suited to
  architectures in which hop-by-hop security is required between hosts
  with no pre-existing trust association.  For example, Alice trusts
  her local proxy server, which after a certificate exchange decides to
  trust Bob's local proxy server, which Bob trusts, hence Bob and Alice
  can communicate securely.

  TLS must be tightly coupled with a SIP application.  Note that
  transport mechanisms are specified on a hop-by-hop basis in SIP, thus
  a UA that sends requests over TLS to a proxy server has no assurance
  that TLS will be used end-to-end.

  The TLS_RSA_WITH_AES_128_CBC_SHA ciphersuite [6] MUST be supported at
  a minimum by implementers when TLS is used in a SIP application.  For
  purposes of backwards compatibility, proxy servers, redirect servers,
  and registrars SHOULD support TLS_RSA_WITH_3DES_EDE_CBC_SHA.
  Implementers MAY also support any other ciphersuite.

26.2.2 SIPS URI Scheme

  The SIPS URI scheme adheres to the syntax of the SIP URI (described
  in 19), although the scheme string is "sips" rather than "sip".  The
  semantics of SIPS are very different from the SIP URI, however.  SIPS
  allows resources to specify that they should be reached securely.

  A SIPS URI can be used as an address-of-record for a particular user
  - the URI by which the user is canonically known (on their business
  cards, in the From header field of their requests, in the To header
  field of REGISTER requests).  When used as the Request-URI of a
  request, the SIPS scheme signifies that each hop over which the
  request is forwarded, until the request reaches the SIP entity
  responsible for the domain portion of the Request-URI, must be
  secured with TLS; once it reaches the domain in question it is
  handled in accordance with local security and routing policy, quite
  possibly using TLS for any last hop to a UAS.  When used by the
  originator of a request (as would be the case if they employed a SIPS
  URI as the address-of-record of the target), SIPS dictates that the
  entire request path to the target domain be so secured.

  The SIPS scheme is applicable to many of the other ways in which SIP
  URIs are used in SIP today in addition to the Request-URI, including
  in addresses-of-record, contact addresses (the contents of Contact
  headers, including those of REGISTER methods), and Route headers.  In
  each instance, the SIPS URI scheme allows these existing fields to




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 239]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  designate secure resources.  The manner in which a SIPS URI is
  dereferenced in any of these contexts has its own security properties
  which are detailed in [4].

  The use of SIPS in particular entails that mutual TLS authentication
  SHOULD be employed, as SHOULD the ciphersuite
  TLS_RSA_WITH_AES_128_CBC_SHA.  Certificates received in the
  authentication process SHOULD be validated with root certificates
  held by the client; failure to validate a certificate SHOULD result
  in the failure of the request.

     Note that in the SIPS URI scheme, transport is independent of TLS,
     and thus "sips:[email protected];transport=tcp" and
     "sips:[email protected];transport=sctp" are both valid (although
     note that UDP is not a valid transport for SIPS).  The use of
     "transport=tls" has consequently been deprecated, partly because
     it was specific to a single hop of the request.  This is a change
     since RFC 2543.

  Users that distribute a SIPS URI as an address-of-record may elect to
  operate devices that refuse requests over insecure transports.

26.2.3 HTTP Authentication

  SIP provides a challenge capability, based on HTTP authentication,
  that relies on the 401 and 407 response codes as well as header
  fields for carrying challenges and credentials.  Without significant
  modification, the reuse of the HTTP Digest authentication scheme in
  SIP allows for replay protection and one-way authentication.

  The usage of Digest authentication in SIP is detailed in Section 22.

26.2.4 S/MIME

  As is discussed above, encrypting entire SIP messages end-to-end for
  the purpose of confidentiality is not appropriate because network
  intermediaries (like proxy servers) need to view certain header
  fields in order to route messages correctly, and if these
  intermediaries are excluded from security associations, then SIP
  messages will essentially be non-routable.

  However, S/MIME allows SIP UAs to encrypt MIME bodies within SIP,
  securing these bodies end-to-end without affecting message headers.
  S/MIME can provide end-to-end confidentiality and integrity for
  message bodies, as well as mutual authentication.  It is also
  possible to use S/MIME to provide a form of integrity and
  confidentiality for SIP header fields through SIP message tunneling.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 240]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The usage of S/MIME in SIP is detailed in Section 23.

26.3 Implementing Security Mechanisms

26.3.1 Requirements for Implementers of SIP

  Proxy servers, redirect servers, and registrars MUST implement TLS,
  and MUST support both mutual and one-way authentication.  It is
  strongly RECOMMENDED that UAs be capable initiating TLS; UAs MAY also
  be capable of acting as a TLS server.  Proxy servers, redirect
  servers, and registrars SHOULD possess a site certificate whose
  subject corresponds to their canonical hostname.  UAs MAY have
  certificates of their own for mutual authentication with TLS, but no
  provisions are set forth in this document for their use.  All SIP
  elements that support TLS MUST have a mechanism for validating
  certificates received during TLS negotiation; this entails possession
  of one or more root certificates issued by certificate authorities
  (preferably well-known distributors of site certificates comparable
  to those that issue root certificates for web browsers).

  All SIP elements that support TLS MUST also support the SIPS URI
  scheme.

  Proxy servers, redirect servers, registrars, and UAs MAY also
  implement IPSec or other lower-layer security protocols.

  When a UA attempts to contact a proxy server, redirect server, or
  registrar, the UAC SHOULD initiate a TLS connection over which it
  will send SIP messages.  In some architectures, UASs MAY receive
  requests over such TLS connections as well.

  Proxy servers, redirect servers, registrars, and UAs MUST implement
  Digest Authorization, encompassing all of the aspects required in 22.
  Proxy servers, redirect servers, and registrars SHOULD be configured
  with at least one Digest realm, and at least one "realm" string
  supported by a given server SHOULD correspond to the server's
  hostname or domainname.

  UAs MAY support the signing and encrypting of MIME bodies, and
  transference of credentials with S/MIME as described in Section 23.
  If a UA holds one or more root certificates of certificate
  authorities in order to validate certificates for TLS or IPSec, it
  SHOULD be capable of reusing these to verify S/MIME certificates, as
  appropriate.  A UA MAY hold root certificates specifically for
  validating S/MIME certificates.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 241]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Note that is it anticipated that future security extensions may
     upgrade the normative strength associated with S/MIME as S/MIME
     implementations appear and the problem space becomes better
     understood.

26.3.2 Security Solutions

  The operation of these security mechanisms in concert can follow the
  existing web and email security models to some degree.  At a high
  level, UAs authenticate themselves to servers (proxy servers,
  redirect servers, and registrars) with a Digest username and
  password; servers authenticate themselves to UAs one hop away, or to
  another server one hop away (and vice versa), with a site certificate
  delivered by TLS.

  On a peer-to-peer level, UAs trust the network to authenticate one
  another ordinarily; however, S/MIME can also be used to provide
  direct authentication when the network does not, or if the network
  itself is not trusted.

  The following is an illustrative example in which these security
  mechanisms are used by various UAs and servers to prevent the sorts
  of threats described in Section 26.1.  While implementers and network
  administrators MAY follow the normative guidelines given in the
  remainder of this section, these are provided only as example
  implementations.

26.3.2.1 Registration

  When a UA comes online and registers with its local administrative
  domain, it SHOULD establish a TLS connection with its registrar
  (Section 10 describes how the UA reaches its registrar).  The
  registrar SHOULD offer a certificate to the UA, and the site
  identified by the certificate MUST correspond with the domain in
  which the UA intends to register; for example, if the UA intends to
  register the address-of-record '[email protected]', the site
  certificate must identify a host within the atlanta.com domain (such
  as sip.atlanta.com).  When it receives the TLS Certificate message,
  the UA SHOULD verify the certificate and inspect the site identified
  by the certificate.  If the certificate is invalid, revoked, or if it
  does not identify the appropriate party, the UA MUST NOT send the
  REGISTER message and otherwise proceed with the registration.

     When a valid certificate has been provided by the registrar, the
     UA knows that the registrar is not an attacker who might redirect
     the UA, steal passwords, or attempt any similar attacks.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 242]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The UA then creates a REGISTER request that SHOULD be addressed to a
  Request-URI corresponding to the site certificate received from the
  registrar.  When the UA sends the REGISTER request over the existing
  TLS connection, the registrar SHOULD challenge the request with a 401
  (Proxy Authentication Required) response.  The "realm" parameter
  within the Proxy-Authenticate header field of the response SHOULD
  correspond to the domain previously given by the site certificate.
  When the UAC receives the challenge, it SHOULD either prompt the user
  for credentials or take an appropriate credential from a keyring
  corresponding to the "realm" parameter in the challenge.  The
  username of this credential SHOULD correspond with the "userinfo"
  portion of the URI in the To header field of the REGISTER request.
  Once the Digest credentials have been inserted into an appropriate
  Proxy-Authorization header field, the REGISTER should be resubmitted
  to the registrar.

     Since the registrar requires the user agent to authenticate
     itself, it would be difficult for an attacker to forge REGISTER
     requests for the user's address-of-record.  Also note that since
     the REGISTER is sent over a confidential TLS connection, attackers
     will not be able to intercept the REGISTER to record credentials
     for any possible replay attack.

  Once the registration has been accepted by the registrar, the UA
  SHOULD leave this TLS connection open provided that the registrar
  also acts as the proxy server to which requests are sent for users in
  this administrative domain.  The existing TLS connection will be
  reused to deliver incoming requests to the UA that has just completed
  registration.

     Because the UA has already authenticated the server on the other
     side of the TLS connection, all requests that come over this
     connection are known to have passed through the proxy server -
     attackers cannot create spoofed requests that appear to have been
     sent through that proxy server.

26.3.2.2 Interdomain Requests

  Now let's say that Alice's UA would like to initiate a session with a
  user in a remote administrative domain, namely "[email protected]".  We
  will also say that the local administrative domain (atlanta.com) has
  a local outbound proxy.

  The proxy server that handles inbound requests for an administrative
  domain MAY also act as a local outbound proxy; for simplicity's sake
  we'll assume this to be the case for atlanta.com (otherwise the user
  agent would initiate a new TLS connection to a separate server at
  this point).  Assuming that the client has completed the registration



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 243]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  process described in the preceding section, it SHOULD reuse the TLS
  connection to the local proxy server when it sends an INVITE request
  to another user.  The UA SHOULD reuse cached credentials in the
  INVITE to avoid prompting the user unnecessarily.

  When the local outbound proxy server has validated the credentials
  presented by the UA in the INVITE, it SHOULD inspect the Request-URI
  to determine how the message should be routed (see [4]).  If the
  "domainname" portion of the Request-URI had corresponded to the local
  domain (atlanta.com) rather than biloxi.com, then the proxy server
  would have consulted its location service to determine how best to
  reach the requested user.

     Had "[email protected]" been attempting to contact, say,
     "[email protected]", the local proxy would have proxied to the
     request to the TLS connection Alex had established with the
     registrar when he registered.  Since Alex would receive this
     request over his authenticated channel, he would be assured that
     Alice's request had been authorized by the proxy server of the
     local administrative domain.

  However, in this instance the Request-URI designates a remote domain.
  The local outbound proxy server at atlanta.com SHOULD therefore
  establish a TLS connection with the remote proxy server at
  biloxi.com.  Since both of the participants in this TLS connection
  are servers that possess site certificates, mutual TLS authentication
  SHOULD occur.  Each side of the connection SHOULD verify and inspect
  the certificate of the other, noting the domain name that appears in
  the certificate for comparison with the header fields of SIP
  messages.  The atlanta.com proxy server, for example, SHOULD verify
  at this stage that the certificate received from the remote side
  corresponds with the biloxi.com domain.  Once it has done so, and TLS
  negotiation has completed, resulting in a secure channel between the
  two proxies, the atlanta.com proxy can forward the INVITE request to
  biloxi.com.

  The proxy server at biloxi.com SHOULD inspect the certificate of the
  proxy server at atlanta.com in turn and compare the domain asserted
  by the certificate with the "domainname" portion of the From header
  field in the INVITE request.  The biloxi proxy MAY have a strict
  security policy that requires it to reject requests that do not match
  the administrative domain from which they have been proxied.

     Such security policies could be instituted to prevent the SIP
     equivalent of SMTP 'open relays' that are frequently exploited to
     generate spam.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 244]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  This policy, however, only guarantees that the request came from the
  domain it ascribes to itself; it does not allow biloxi.com to
  ascertain how atlanta.com authenticated Alice.  Only if biloxi.com
  has some other way of knowing atlanta.com's authentication policies
  could it possibly ascertain how Alice proved her identity.
  biloxi.com might then institute an even stricter policy that forbids
  requests that come from domains that are not known administratively
  to share a common authentication policy with biloxi.com.

  Once the INVITE has been approved by the biloxi proxy, the proxy
  server SHOULD identify the existing TLS channel, if any, associated
  with the user targeted by this request (in this case
  "[email protected]").  The INVITE should be proxied through this channel
  to Bob.  Since the request is received over a TLS connection that had
  previously been authenticated as the biloxi proxy, Bob knows that the
  From header field was not tampered with and that atlanta.com has
  validated Alice, although not necessarily whether or not to trust
  Alice's identity.

  Before they forward the request, both proxy servers SHOULD add a
  Record-Route header field to the request so that all future requests
  in this dialog will pass through the proxy servers.  The proxy
  servers can thereby continue to provide security services for the
  lifetime of this dialog.  If the proxy servers do not add themselves
  to the Record-Route, future messages will pass directly end-to-end
  between Alice and Bob without any security services (unless the two
  parties agree on some independent end-to-end security such as
  S/MIME).  In this respect the SIP trapezoid model can provide a nice
  structure where conventions of agreement between the site proxies can
  provide a reasonably secure channel between Alice and Bob.

     An attacker preying on this architecture would, for example, be
     unable to forge a BYE request and insert it into the signaling
     stream between Bob and Alice because the attacker has no way of
     ascertaining the parameters of the session and also because the
     integrity mechanism transitively protects the traffic between
     Alice and Bob.

26.3.2.3 Peer-to-Peer Requests

  Alternatively, consider a UA asserting the identity
  "[email protected]" that has no local outbound proxy.  When Carol
  wishes to send an INVITE to "[email protected]", her UA SHOULD initiate
  a TLS connection with the biloxi proxy directly (using the mechanism
  described in [4] to determine how to best to reach the given
  Request-URI).  When her UA receives a certificate from the biloxi
  proxy, it SHOULD be verified normally before she passes her INVITE
  across the TLS connection.  However, Carol has no means of proving



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 245]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  her identity to the biloxi proxy, but she does have a CMS-detached
  signature over a "message/sip" body in the INVITE.  It is unlikely in
  this instance that Carol would have any credentials in the biloxi.com
  realm, since she has no formal association with biloxi.com.  The
  biloxi proxy MAY also have a strict policy that precludes it from
  even bothering to challenge requests that do not have biloxi.com in
  the "domainname" portion of the From header field - it treats these
  users as unauthenticated.

  The biloxi proxy has a policy for Bob that all non-authenticated
  requests should be redirected to the appropriate contact address
  registered against '[email protected]', namely <sip:[email protected]>.
  Carol receives the redirection response over the TLS connection she
  established with the biloxi proxy, so she trusts the veracity of the
  contact address.

  Carol SHOULD then establish a TCP connection with the designated
  address and send a new INVITE with a Request-URI containing the
  received contact address (recomputing the signature in the body as
  the request is readied).  Bob receives this INVITE on an insecure
  interface, but his UA inspects and, in this instance, recognizes the
  From header field of the request and subsequently matches a locally
  cached certificate with the one presented in the signature of the
  body of the INVITE.  He replies in similar fashion, authenticating
  himself to Carol, and a secure dialog begins.

     Sometimes firewalls or NATs in an administrative domain could
     preclude the establishment of a direct TCP connection to a UA.  In
     these cases, proxy servers could also potentially relay requests
     to UAs in a way that has no trust implications (for example,
     forgoing an existing TLS connection and forwarding the request
     over cleartext TCP) as local policy dictates.

26.3.2.4 DoS Protection

  In order to minimize the risk of a denial-of-service attack against
  architectures using these security solutions, implementers should
  take note of the following guidelines.

  When the host on which a SIP proxy server is operating is routable
  from the public Internet, it SHOULD be deployed in an administrative
  domain with defensive operational policies (blocking source-routed
  traffic, preferably filtering ping traffic).  Both TLS and IPSec can
  also make use of bastion hosts at the edges of administrative domains
  that participate in the security associations to aggregate secure
  tunnels and sockets.  These bastion hosts can also take the brunt of
  denial-of-service attacks, ensuring that SIP hosts within the
  administrative domain are not encumbered with superfluous messaging.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 246]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  No matter what security solutions are deployed, floods of messages
  directed at proxy servers can lock up proxy server resources and
  prevent desirable traffic from reaching its destination.  There is a
  computational expense associated with processing a SIP transaction at
  a proxy server, and that expense is greater for stateful proxy
  servers than it is for stateless proxy servers.  Therefore, stateful
  proxies are more susceptible to flooding than stateless proxy
  servers.

  UAs and proxy servers SHOULD challenge questionable requests with
  only a single 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy Authentication
  Required), forgoing the normal response retransmission algorithm, and
  thus behaving statelessly towards unauthenticated requests.

     Retransmitting the 401 (Unauthorized) or 407 (Proxy Authentication
     Required) status response amplifies the problem of an attacker
     using a falsified header field value (such as Via) to direct
     traffic to a third party.

  In summary, the mutual authentication of proxy servers through
  mechanisms such as TLS significantly reduces the potential for rogue
  intermediaries to introduce falsified requests or responses that can
  deny service.  This commensurately makes it harder for attackers to
  make innocent SIP nodes into agents of amplification.

26.4 Limitations

  Although these security mechanisms, when applied in a judicious
  manner, can thwart many threats, there are limitations in the scope
  of the mechanisms that must be understood by implementers and network
  operators.

26.4.1 HTTP Digest

  One of the primary limitations of using HTTP Digest in SIP is that
  the integrity mechanisms in Digest do not work very well for SIP.
  Specifically, they offer protection of the Request-URI and the method
  of a message, but not for any of the header fields that UAs would
  most likely wish to secure.

  The existing replay protection mechanisms described in RFC 2617 also
  have some limitations for SIP.  The next-nonce mechanism, for
  example, does not support pipelined requests.  The nonce-count
  mechanism should be used for replay protection.

  Another limitation of HTTP Digest is the scope of realms.  Digest is
  valuable when a user wants to authenticate themselves to a resource
  with which they have a pre-existing association, like a service



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 247]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  provider of which the user is a customer (which is quite a common
  scenario and thus Digest provides an extremely useful function).  By
  way of contrast, the scope of TLS is interdomain or multirealm, since
  certificates are often globally verifiable, so that the UA can
  authenticate the server with no pre-existing association.

26.4.2 S/MIME

  The largest outstanding defect with the S/MIME mechanism is the lack
  of a prevalent public key infrastructure for end users.  If self-
  signed certificates (or certificates that cannot be verified by one
  of the participants in a dialog) are used, the SIP-based key exchange
  mechanism described in Section 23.2 is susceptible to a man-in-the-
  middle attack with which an attacker can potentially inspect and
  modify S/MIME bodies.  The attacker needs to intercept the first
  exchange of keys between the two parties in a dialog, remove the
  existing CMS-detached signatures from the request and response, and
  insert a different CMS-detached signature containing a certificate
  supplied by the attacker (but which seems to be a certificate for the
  proper address-of-record).  Each party will think they have exchanged
  keys with the other, when in fact each has the public key of the
  attacker.

  It is important to note that the attacker can only leverage this
  vulnerability on the first exchange of keys between two parties - on
  subsequent occasions, the alteration of the key would be noticeable
  to the UAs.  It would also be difficult for the attacker to remain in
  the path of all future dialogs between the two parties over time (as
  potentially days, weeks, or years pass).

  SSH is susceptible to the same man-in-the-middle attack on the first
  exchange of keys; however, it is widely acknowledged that while SSH
  is not perfect, it does improve the security of connections.  The use
  of key fingerprints could provide some assistance to SIP, just as it
  does for SSH.  For example, if two parties use SIP to establish a
  voice communications session, each could read off the fingerprint of
  the key they received from the other, which could be compared against
  the original.  It would certainly be more difficult for the man-in-
  the-middle to emulate the voices of the participants than their
  signaling (a practice that was used with the Clipper chip-based
  secure telephone).

  The S/MIME mechanism allows UAs to send encrypted requests without
  preamble if they possess a certificate for the destination address-
  of-record on their keyring.  However, it is possible that any
  particular device registered for an address-of-record will not hold
  the certificate that has been previously employed by the device's
  current user, and that it will therefore be unable to process an



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 248]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  encrypted request properly, which could lead to some avoidable error
  signaling.  This is especially likely when an encrypted request is
  forked.

  The keys associated with S/MIME are most useful when associated with
  a particular user (an address-of-record) rather than a device (a UA).
  When users move between devices, it may be difficult to transport
  private keys securely between UAs; how such keys might be acquired by
  a device is outside the scope of this document.

  Another, more prosaic difficulty with the S/MIME mechanism is that it
  can result in very large messages, especially when the SIP tunneling
  mechanism described in Section 23.4 is used.  For that reason, it is
  RECOMMENDED that TCP should be used as a transport protocol when
  S/MIME tunneling is employed.

26.4.3 TLS

  The most commonly voiced concern about TLS is that it cannot run over
  UDP; TLS requires a connection-oriented underlying transport
  protocol, which for the purposes of this document means TCP.

  It may also be arduous for a local outbound proxy server and/or
  registrar to maintain many simultaneous long-lived TLS connections
  with numerous UAs.  This introduces some valid scalability concerns,
  especially for intensive ciphersuites.  Maintaining redundancy of
  long-lived TLS connections, especially when a UA is solely
  responsible for their establishment, could also be cumbersome.

  TLS only allows SIP entities to authenticate servers to which they
  are adjacent; TLS offers strictly hop-by-hop security.  Neither TLS,
  nor any other mechanism specified in this document, allows clients to
  authenticate proxy servers to whom they cannot form a direct TCP
  connection.

26.4.4 SIPS URIs

  Actually using TLS on every segment of a request path entails that
  the terminating UAS must be reachable over TLS (perhaps registering
  with a SIPS URI as a contact address).  This is the preferred use of
  SIPS.  Many valid architectures, however, use TLS to secure part of
  the request path, but rely on some other mechanism for the final hop
  to a UAS, for example.  Thus SIPS cannot guarantee that TLS usage
  will be truly end-to-end.  Note that since many UAs will not accept
  incoming TLS connections, even those UAs that do support TLS may be
  required to maintain persistent TLS connections as described in the
  TLS limitations section above in order to receive requests over TLS
  as a UAS.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 249]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Location services are not required to provide a SIPS binding for a
  SIPS Request-URI.  Although location services are commonly populated
  by user registrations (as described in Section 10.2.1), various other
  protocols and interfaces could conceivably supply contact addresses
  for an AOR, and these tools are free to map SIPS URIs to SIP URIs as
  appropriate.  When queried for bindings, a location service returns
  its contact addresses without regard for whether it received a
  request with a SIPS Request-URI.  If a redirect server is accessing
  the location service, it is up to the entity that processes the
  Contact header field of a redirection to determine the propriety of
  the contact addresses.

  Ensuring that TLS will be used for all of the request segments up to
  the target domain is somewhat complex.  It is possible that
  cryptographically authenticated proxy servers along the way that are
  non-compliant or compromised may choose to disregard the forwarding
  rules associated with SIPS (and the general forwarding rules in
  Section 16.6).  Such malicious intermediaries could, for example,
  retarget a request from a SIPS URI to a SIP URI in an attempt to
  downgrade security.

  Alternatively, an intermediary might legitimately retarget a request
  from a SIP to a SIPS URI.  Recipients of a request whose Request-URI
  uses the SIPS URI scheme thus cannot assume on the basis of the
  Request-URI alone that SIPS was used for the entire request path
  (from the client onwards).

  To address these concerns, it is RECOMMENDED that recipients of a
  request whose Request-URI contains a SIP or SIPS URI inspect the To
  header field value to see if it contains a SIPS URI (though note that
  it does not constitute a breach of security if this URI has the same
  scheme but is not equivalent to the URI in the To header field).
  Although clients may choose to populate the Request-URI and To header
  field of a request differently, when SIPS is used this disparity
  could be interpreted as a possible security violation, and the
  request could consequently be rejected by its recipient.  Recipients
  MAY also inspect the Via header chain in order to double-check
  whether or not TLS was used for the entire request path until the
  local administrative domain was reached.  S/MIME may also be used by
  the originating UAC to help ensure that the original form of the To
  header field is carried end-to-end.

  If the UAS has reason to believe that the scheme of the Request-URI
  has been improperly modified in transit, the UA SHOULD notify its
  user of a potential security breach.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 250]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  As a further measure to prevent downgrade attacks, entities that
  accept only SIPS requests MAY also refuse connections on insecure
  ports.

  End users will undoubtedly discern the difference between SIPS and
  SIP URIs, and they may manually edit them in response to stimuli.
  This can either benefit or degrade security.  For example, if an
  attacker corrupts a DNS cache, inserting a fake record set that
  effectively removes all SIPS records for a proxy server, then any
  SIPS requests that traverse this proxy server may fail.  When a user,
  however, sees that repeated calls to a SIPS AOR are failing, they
  could on some devices manually convert the scheme from SIPS to SIP
  and retry.  Of course, there are some safeguards against this (if the
  destination UA is truly paranoid it could refuse all non-SIPS
  requests), but it is a limitation worth noting.  On the bright side,
  users might also divine that 'SIPS' would be valid even when they are
  presented only with a SIP URI.

26.5 Privacy

  SIP messages frequently contain sensitive information about their
  senders - not just what they have to say, but with whom they
  communicate, when they communicate and for how long, and from where
  they participate in sessions.  Many applications and their users
  require that this sort of private information be hidden from any
  parties that do not need to know it.

  Note that there are also less direct ways in which private
  information can be divulged.  If a user or service chooses to be
  reachable at an address that is guessable from the person's name and
  organizational affiliation (which describes most addresses-of-
  record), the traditional method of ensuring privacy by having an
  unlisted "phone number" is compromised.  A user location service can
  infringe on the privacy of the recipient of a session invitation by
  divulging their specific whereabouts to the caller; an implementation
  consequently SHOULD be able to restrict, on a per-user basis, what
  kind of location and availability information is given out to certain
  classes of callers.  This is a whole class of problem that is
  expected to be studied further in ongoing SIP work.

  In some cases, users may want to conceal personal information in
  header fields that convey identity.  This can apply not only to the
  From and related headers representing the originator of the request,
  but also the To - it may not be appropriate to convey to the final
  destination a speed-dialing nickname, or an unexpanded identifier for
  a group of targets, either of which would be removed from the
  Request-URI as the request is routed, but not changed in the To




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 251]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  header field if the two were initially identical.  Thus it MAY be
  desirable for privacy reasons to create a To header field that
  differs from the Request-URI.

27 IANA Considerations

  All method names, header field names, status codes, and option tags
  used in SIP applications are registered with IANA through
  instructions in an IANA Considerations section in an RFC.

  The specification instructs the IANA to create four new sub-
  registries under http://www.iana.org/assignments/sip-parameters:
  Option Tags, Warning Codes (warn-codes), Methods and Response Codes,
  added to the sub-registry of Header Fields that is already present
  there.

27.1 Option Tags

  This specification establishes the Option Tags sub-registry under
  http://www.iana.org/assignments/sip-parameters.

  Option tags are used in header fields such as Require, Supported,
  Proxy-Require, and Unsupported in support of SIP compatibility
  mechanisms for extensions (Section 19.2).  The option tag itself is a
  string that is associated with a particular SIP option (that is, an
  extension).  It identifies the option to SIP endpoints.

  Option tags are registered by the IANA when they are published in
  standards track RFCs.  The IANA Considerations section of the RFC
  must include the following information, which appears in the IANA
  registry along with the RFC number of the publication.

     o  Name of the option tag.  The name MAY be of any length, but
        SHOULD be no more than twenty characters long.  The name MUST
        consist of alphanum (Section 25) characters only.

     o  Descriptive text that describes the extension.

27.2 Warn-Codes

  This specification establishes the Warn-codes sub-registry under
  http://www.iana.org/assignments/sip-parameters and initiates its
  population with the warn-codes listed in Section 20.43.  Additional
  warn-codes are registered by RFC publication.







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 252]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  The descriptive text for the table of warn-codes is:

  Warning codes provide information supplemental to the status code in
  SIP response messages when the failure of the transaction results
  from a Session Description Protocol (SDP) (RFC 2327 [1]) problem.

  The "warn-code" consists of three digits.  A first digit of "3"
  indicates warnings specific to SIP.  Until a future specification
  describes uses of warn-codes other than 3xx, only 3xx warn-codes may
  be registered.

  Warnings 300 through 329 are reserved for indicating problems with
  keywords in the session description, 330 through 339 are warnings
  related to basic network services requested in the session
  description, 370 through 379 are warnings related to quantitative QoS
  parameters requested in the session description, and 390 through 399
  are miscellaneous warnings that do not fall into one of the above
  categories.

27.3 Header Field Names

  This obsoletes the IANA instructions about the header sub-registry
  under http://www.iana.org/assignments/sip-parameters.

  The following information needs to be provided in an RFC publication
  in order to register a new header field name:

     o  The RFC number in which the header is registered;

     o  the name of the header field being registered;

     o  a compact form version for that header field, if one is
        defined;

  Some common and widely used header fields MAY be assigned one-letter
  compact forms (Section 7.3.3).  Compact forms can only be assigned
  after SIP working group review, followed by RFC publication.

27.4 Method and Response Codes

  This specification establishes the Method and Response-Code sub-
  registries under http://www.iana.org/assignments/sip-parameters and
  initiates their population as follows.  The initial Methods table is:








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 253]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


        INVITE                   [RFC3261]
        ACK                      [RFC3261]
        BYE                      [RFC3261]
        CANCEL                   [RFC3261]
        REGISTER                 [RFC3261]
        OPTIONS                  [RFC3261]
        INFO                     [RFC2976]

  The response code table is initially populated from Section 21, the
  portions labeled Informational, Success, Redirection, Client-Error,
  Server-Error, and Global-Failure.  The table has the following
  format:

     Type (e.g., Informational)
           Number    Default Reason Phrase         [RFC3261]

  The following information needs to be provided in an RFC publication
  in order to register a new response code or method:

     o  The RFC number in which the method or response code is
        registered;

     o  the number of the response code or name of the method being
        registered;

     o  the default reason phrase for that response code, if
        applicable;

27.5 The "message/sip" MIME type.

  This document registers the "message/sip" MIME media type in order to
  allow SIP messages to be tunneled as bodies within SIP, primarily for
  end-to-end security purposes.  This media type is defined by the
  following information:

     Media type name: message
     Media subtype name: sip
     Required parameters: none

     Optional parameters: version
        version: The SIP-Version number of the enclosed message (e.g.,
        "2.0").  If not present, the version defaults to "2.0".
     Encoding scheme: SIP messages consist of an 8-bit header
        optionally followed by a binary MIME data object.  As such, SIP
        messages must be treated as binary.  Under normal circumstances
        SIP messages are transported over binary-capable transports, no
        special encodings are needed.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 254]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


     Security considerations: see below
        Motivation and examples of this usage as a security mechanism
        in concert with S/MIME are given in 23.4.

27.6 New Content-Disposition Parameter Registrations

  This document also registers four new Content-Disposition header
  "disposition-types": alert, icon, session and render.  The authors
  request that these values be recorded in the IANA registry for
  Content-Dispositions.

  Descriptions of these "disposition-types", including motivation and
  examples, are given in Section 20.11.

  Short descriptions suitable for the IANA registry are:

     alert     the body is a custom ring tone to alert the user
     icon      the body is displayed as an icon to the user
     render    the body should be displayed to the user
     session   the body describes a communications session, for
               example, as RFC 2327 SDP body

28 Changes From RFC 2543

  This RFC revises RFC 2543.  It is mostly backwards compatible with
  RFC 2543.  The changes described here fix many errors discovered in
  RFC 2543 and provide information on scenarios not detailed in RFC
  2543.  The protocol has been presented in a more cleanly layered
  model here.

  We break the differences into functional behavior that is a
  substantial change from RFC 2543, which has impact on
  interoperability or correct operation in some cases, and functional
  behavior that is different from RFC 2543 but not a potential source
  of interoperability problems.  There have been countless
  clarifications as well, which are not documented here.

28.1 Major Functional Changes

  o  When a UAC wishes to terminate a call before it has been answered,
     it sends CANCEL.  If the original INVITE still returns a 2xx, the
     UAC then sends BYE.  BYE can only be sent on an existing call leg
     (now called a dialog in this RFC), whereas it could be sent at any
     time in RFC 2543.

  o  The SIP BNF was converted to be RFC 2234 compliant.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 255]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  o  SIP URL BNF was made more general, allowing a greater set of
     characters in the user part.  Furthermore, comparison rules were
     simplified to be primarily case-insensitive, and detailed handling
     of comparison in the presence of parameters was described.  The
     most substantial change is that a URI with a parameter with the
     default value does not match a URI without that parameter.

  o  Removed Via hiding.  It had serious trust issues, since it relied
     on the next hop to perform the obfuscation process.  Instead, Via
     hiding can be done as a local implementation choice in stateful
     proxies, and thus is no longer documented.

  o  In RFC 2543, CANCEL and INVITE transactions were intermingled.
     They are separated now.  When a user sends an INVITE and then a
     CANCEL, the INVITE transaction still terminates normally.  A UAS
     needs to respond to the original INVITE request with a 487
     response.

  o  Similarly, CANCEL and BYE transactions were intermingled; RFC 2543
     allowed the UAS not to send a response to INVITE when a BYE was
     received.  That is disallowed here.  The original INVITE needs a
     response.

  o  In RFC 2543, UAs needed to support only UDP.  In this RFC, UAs
     need to support both UDP and TCP.

  o  In RFC 2543, a forking proxy only passed up one challenge from
     downstream elements in the event of multiple challenges.  In this
     RFC, proxies are supposed to collect all challenges and place them
     into the forwarded response.

  o  In Digest credentials, the URI needs to be quoted; this is unclear
     from RFC 2617 and RFC 2069 which are both inconsistent on it.

  o  SDP processing has been split off into a separate specification
     [13], and more fully specified as a formal offer/answer exchange
     process that is effectively tunneled through SIP.  SDP is allowed
     in INVITE/200 or 200/ACK for baseline SIP implementations; RFC
     2543 alluded to the ability to use it in INVITE, 200, and ACK in a
     single transaction, but this was not well specified.  More complex
     SDP usages are allowed in extensions.










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 256]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  o  Added full support for IPv6 in URIs and in the Via header field.
     Support for IPv6 in Via has required that its header field
     parameters allow the square bracket and colon characters.  These
     characters were previously not permitted.  In theory, this could
     cause interop problems with older implementations.  However, we
     have observed that most implementations accept any non-control
     ASCII character in these parameters.

  o  DNS SRV procedure is now documented in a separate specification
     [4].  This procedure uses both SRV and NAPTR resource records and
     no longer combines data from across SRV records as described in
     RFC 2543.

  o  Loop detection has been made optional, supplanted by a mandatory
     usage of Max-Forwards.  The loop detection procedure in RFC 2543
     had a serious bug which would report "spirals" as an error
     condition when it was not.  The optional loop detection procedure
     is more fully and correctly specified here.

  o  Usage of tags is now mandatory (they were optional in RFC 2543),
     as they are now the fundamental building blocks of dialog
     identification.

  o  Added the Supported header field, allowing for clients to indicate
     what extensions are supported to a server, which can apply those
     extensions to the response, and indicate their usage with a
     Require in the response.

  o  Extension parameters were missing from the BNF for several header
     fields, and they have been added.

  o  Handling of Route and Record-Route construction was very
     underspecified in RFC 2543, and also not the right approach.  It
     has been substantially reworked in this specification (and made
     vastly simpler), and this is arguably the largest change.
     Backwards compatibility is still provided for deployments that do
     not use "pre-loaded routes", where the initial request has a set
     of Route header field values obtained in some way outside of
     Record-Route.  In those situations, the new mechanism is not
     interoperable.

  o  In RFC 2543, lines in a message could be terminated with CR, LF,
     or CRLF.  This specification only allows CRLF.








Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 257]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  o  Usage of Route in CANCEL and ACK was not well defined in RFC 2543.
     It is now well specified; if a request had a Route header field,
     its CANCEL or ACK for a non-2xx response to the request need to
     carry the same Route header field values.  ACKs for 2xx responses
     use the Route values learned from the Record-Route of the 2xx
     responses.

  o  RFC 2543 allowed multiple requests in a single UDP packet.  This
     usage has been removed.

  o  Usage of absolute time in the Expires header field and parameter
     has been removed.  It caused interoperability problems in elements
     that were not time synchronized, a common occurrence.  Relative
     times are used instead.

  o  The branch parameter of the Via header field value is now
     mandatory for all elements to use.  It now plays the role of a
     unique transaction identifier.  This avoids the complex and bug-
     laden transaction identification rules from RFC 2543.  A magic
     cookie is used in the parameter value to determine if the previous
     hop has made the parameter globally unique, and comparison falls
     back to the old rules when it is not present.  Thus,
     interoperability is assured.

  o  In RFC 2543, closure of a TCP connection was made equivalent to a
     CANCEL.  This was nearly impossible to implement (and wrong) for
     TCP connections between proxies.  This has been eliminated, so
     that there is no coupling between TCP connection state and SIP
     processing.

  o  RFC 2543 was silent on whether a UA could initiate a new
     transaction to a peer while another was in progress.  That is now
     specified here.  It is allowed for non-INVITE requests, disallowed
     for INVITE.

  o  PGP was removed.  It was not sufficiently specified, and not
     compatible with the more complete PGP MIME.  It was replaced with
     S/MIME.

  o  Added the "sips" URI scheme for end-to-end TLS.  This scheme is
     not backwards compatible with RFC 2543.  Existing elements that
     receive a request with a SIPS URI scheme in the Request-URI will
     likely reject the request.  This is actually a feature; it ensures
     that a call to a SIPS URI is only delivered if all path hops can
     be secured.






Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 258]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  o  Additional security features were added with TLS, and these are
     described in a much larger and complete security considerations
     section.

  o  In RFC 2543, a proxy was not required to forward provisional
     responses from 101 to 199 upstream.  This was changed to MUST.
     This is important, since many subsequent features depend on
     delivery of all provisional responses from 101 to 199.

  o  Little was said about the 503 response code in RFC 2543.  It has
     since found substantial use in indicating failure or overload
     conditions in proxies.  This requires somewhat special treatment.
     Specifically, receipt of a 503 should trigger an attempt to
     contact the next element in the result of a DNS SRV lookup.  Also,
     503 response is only forwarded upstream by a proxy under certain
     conditions.

  o  RFC 2543 defined, but did no sufficiently specify, a mechanism for
     UA authentication of a server.  That has been removed.  Instead,
     the mutual authentication procedures of RFC 2617 are allowed.

  o  A UA cannot send a BYE for a call until it has received an ACK for
     the initial INVITE.  This was allowed in RFC 2543 but leads to a
     potential race condition.

  o  A UA or proxy cannot send CANCEL for a transaction until it gets a
     provisional response for the request.  This was allowed in RFC
     2543 but leads to potential race conditions.

  o  The action parameter in registrations has been deprecated.  It was
     insufficient for any useful services, and caused conflicts when
     application processing was applied in proxies.

  o  RFC 2543 had a number of special cases for multicast.  For
     example, certain responses were suppressed, timers were adjusted,
     and so on.  Multicast now plays a more limited role, and the
     protocol operation is unaffected by usage of multicast as opposed
     to unicast.  The limitations as a result of that are documented.

  o  Basic authentication has been removed entirely and its usage
     forbidden.










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 259]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  o  Proxies no longer forward a 6xx immediately on receiving it.
     Instead, they CANCEL pending branches immediately.  This avoids a
     potential race condition that would result in a UAC getting a 6xx
     followed by a 2xx.  In all cases except this race condition, the
     result will be the same - the 6xx is forwarded upstream.

  o  RFC 2543 did not address the problem of request merging.  This
     occurs when a request forks at a proxy and later rejoins at an
     element.  Handling of merging is done only at a UA, and procedures
     are defined for rejecting all but the first request.

28.2 Minor Functional Changes

  o  Added the Alert-Info, Error-Info, and Call-Info header fields for
     optional content presentation to users.

  o  Added the Content-Language, Content-Disposition and MIME-Version
     header fields.

  o  Added a "glare handling" mechanism to deal with the case where
     both parties send each other a re-INVITE simultaneously.  It uses
     the new 491 (Request Pending) error code.

  o  Added the In-Reply-To and Reply-To header fields for supporting
     the return of missed calls or messages at a later time.

  o  Added TLS and SCTP as valid SIP transports.

  o  There were a variety of mechanisms described for handling failures
     at any time during a call; those are now generally unified.  BYE
     is sent to terminate.

  o  RFC 2543 mandated retransmission of INVITE responses over TCP, but
     noted it was really only needed for 2xx.  That was an artifact of
     insufficient protocol layering.  With a more coherent transaction
     layer defined here, that is no longer needed.  Only 2xx responses
     to INVITEs are retransmitted over TCP.

  o  Client and server transaction machines are now driven based on
     timeouts rather than retransmit counts.  This allows the state
     machines to be properly specified for TCP and UDP.

  o  The Date header field is used in REGISTER responses to provide a
     simple means for auto-configuration of dates in user agents.

  o  Allowed a registrar to reject registrations with expirations that
     are too short in duration.  Defined the 423 response code and the
     Min-Expires for this purpose.



Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 260]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


29 Normative References

  [1]  Handley, M. and V. Jacobson, "SDP: Session Description
       Protocol", RFC 2327, April 1998.

  [2]  Bradner, S., "Key words for use in RFCs to Indicate Requirement
       Levels", BCP 14, RFC 2119, March 1997.

  [3]  Resnick, P., "Internet Message Format", RFC 2822, April 2001.

  [4]  Rosenberg, J. and H. Schulzrinne, "SIP: Locating SIP Servers",
       RFC 3263, June 2002.

  [5]  Berners-Lee, T., Fielding, R. and L. Masinter, "Uniform Resource
       Identifiers (URI): Generic Syntax", RFC 2396, August 1998.

  [6]  Chown, P., "Advanced Encryption Standard (AES) Ciphersuites for
       Transport Layer Security (TLS)", RFC 3268, June 2002.

  [7]  Yergeau, F., "UTF-8, a transformation format of ISO 10646", RFC
       2279, January 1998.

  [8]  Fielding, R., Gettys, J., Mogul, J., Frystyk, H., Masinter, L.,
       Leach, P. and T. Berners-Lee, "Hypertext Transfer Protocol --
       HTTP/1.1", RFC 2616, June 1999.

  [9]  Vaha-Sipila, A., "URLs for Telephone Calls", RFC 2806, April
       2000.

  [10] Crocker, D. and P. Overell, "Augmented BNF for Syntax
       Specifications: ABNF", RFC 2234, November 1997.

  [11] Freed, F. and N. Borenstein, "Multipurpose Internet Mail
       Extensions (MIME) Part Two: Media Types", RFC 2046, November
       1996.

  [12] Eastlake, D., Crocker, S. and J. Schiller, "Randomness
       Recommendations for Security", RFC 1750, December 1994.

  [13] Rosenberg, J. and H. Schulzrinne, "An Offer/Answer Model with
       SDP", RFC 3264, June 2002.

  [14] Postel, J., "User Datagram Protocol", STD 6, RFC 768, August
       1980.

  [15] Postel, J., "DoD Standard Transmission Control Protocol", RFC
       761, January 1980.




Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 261]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  [16] Stewart, R., Xie, Q., Morneault, K., Sharp, C., Schwarzbauer,
       H., Taylor, T., Rytina, I., Kalla, M., Zhang, L. and V. Paxson,
       "Stream Control Transmission Protocol", RFC 2960, October 2000.

  [17] Franks, J., Hallam-Baker, P., Hostetler, J., Lawrence, S.,
       Leach, P., Luotonen, A. and L. Stewart, "HTTP authentication:
       Basic and Digest Access Authentication", RFC 2617, June 1999.

  [18] Troost, R., Dorner, S. and K. Moore, "Communicating Presentation
       Information in Internet Messages: The Content-Disposition Header
       Field", RFC 2183, August 1997.

  [19] Zimmerer, E., Peterson, J., Vemuri, A., Ong, L., Audet, F.,
       Watson, M. and M. Zonoun, "MIME media types for ISUP and QSIG
       Objects", RFC 3204, December 2001.

  [20] Braden, R., "Requirements for Internet Hosts - Application and
       Support", STD 3, RFC 1123, October 1989.

  [21] Alvestrand, H., "IETF Policy on Character Sets and Languages",
       BCP 18, RFC 2277, January 1998.

  [22] Galvin, J., Murphy, S., Crocker, S. and N. Freed, "Security
       Multiparts for MIME: Multipart/Signed and Multipart/Encrypted",
       RFC 1847, October 1995.

  [23] Housley, R., "Cryptographic Message Syntax", RFC 2630, June
       1999.

  [24] Ramsdell B., "S/MIME Version 3 Message Specification", RFC 2633,
       June 1999.

  [25] Dierks, T. and C. Allen, "The TLS Protocol Version 1.0", RFC
       2246, January 1999.

  [26] Kent, S. and R. Atkinson, "Security Architecture for the
       Internet Protocol", RFC 2401, November 1998.

30 Informative References

  [27] R. Pandya, "Emerging mobile and personal communication systems,"
       IEEE Communications Magazine, Vol. 33, pp. 44--52, June 1995.

  [28] Schulzrinne, H., Casner, S., Frederick, R. and V. Jacobson,
       "RTP:  A Transport Protocol for Real-Time Applications", RFC
       1889, January 1996.





Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 262]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  [29] Schulzrinne, H., Rao, R. and R. Lanphier, "Real Time Streaming
       Protocol (RTSP)", RFC 2326, April 1998.

  [30] Cuervo, F., Greene, N., Rayhan, A., Huitema, C., Rosen, B. and
       J. Segers, "Megaco Protocol Version 1.0", RFC 3015, November
       2000.

  [31] Handley, M., Schulzrinne, H., Schooler, E. and J. Rosenberg,
       "SIP: Session Initiation Protocol", RFC 2543, March 1999.

  [32] Hoffman, P., Masinter, L. and J. Zawinski, "The mailto URL
       scheme", RFC 2368, July 1998.

  [33] E. M. Schooler, "A multicast user directory service for
       synchronous rendezvous," Master's Thesis CS-TR-96-18, Department
       of Computer Science, California Institute of Technology,
       Pasadena, California, Aug. 1996.

  [34] Donovan, S., "The SIP INFO Method", RFC 2976, October 2000.

  [35] Rivest, R., "The MD5 Message-Digest Algorithm", RFC 1321, April
       1992.

  [36] Dawson, F. and T. Howes, "vCard MIME Directory Profile", RFC
       2426, September 1998.

  [37] Good, G., "The LDAP Data Interchange Format (LDIF) - Technical
       Specification", RFC 2849, June 2000.

  [38] Palme, J., "Common Internet Message Headers",  RFC 2076,
       February 1997.

  [39] Franks, J., Hallam-Baker, P., Hostetler, J., Leach, P.,
       Luotonen, A., Sink, E. and L. Stewart, "An Extension to HTTP:
       Digest Access Authentication", RFC 2069, January 1997.

  [40] Johnston, A., Donovan, S., Sparks, R., Cunningham, C., Willis,
       D., Rosenberg, J., Summers, K. and H. Schulzrinne, "SIP Call
       Flow Examples", Work in Progress.

  [41] E. M. Schooler, "Case study: multimedia conference control in a
       packet-switched teleconferencing system," Journal of
       Internetworking:  Research and Experience, Vol. 4, pp. 99--120,
       June 1993.  ISI reprint series ISI/RS-93-359.







Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 263]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  [42] H. Schulzrinne, "Personal mobility for multimedia services in
       the Internet," in European Workshop on Interactive Distributed
       Multimedia Systems and Services (IDMS), (Berlin, Germany), Mar.
       1996.

  [43] Floyd, S., "Congestion Control Principles", RFC 2914, September
       2000.












































Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 264]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


A Table of Timer Values

  Table 4 summarizes the meaning and defaults of the various timers
  used by this specification.

Timer    Value            Section               Meaning
----------------------------------------------------------------------
T1       500ms default    Section 17.1.1.1     RTT Estimate
T2       4s               Section 17.1.2.2     The maximum retransmit
                                              interval for non-INVITE
                                              requests and INVITE
                                              responses
T4       5s               Section 17.1.2.2     Maximum duration a
                                              message will
                                              remain in the network
Timer A  initially T1     Section 17.1.1.2     INVITE request retransmit
                                              interval, for UDP only
Timer B  64*T1            Section 17.1.1.2     INVITE transaction
                                              timeout timer
Timer C  > 3min           Section 16.6         proxy INVITE transaction
                          bullet 11            timeout
Timer D  > 32s for UDP    Section 17.1.1.2     Wait time for response
        0s for TCP/SCTP                       retransmits
Timer E  initially T1     Section 17.1.2.2     non-INVITE request
                                              retransmit interval,
                                              UDP only
Timer F  64*T1            Section 17.1.2.2     non-INVITE transaction
                                              timeout timer
Timer G  initially T1     Section 17.2.1       INVITE response
                                              retransmit interval
Timer H  64*T1            Section 17.2.1       Wait time for
                                              ACK receipt
Timer I  T4 for UDP       Section 17.2.1       Wait time for
        0s for TCP/SCTP                       ACK retransmits
Timer J  64*T1 for UDP    Section 17.2.2       Wait time for
        0s for TCP/SCTP                       non-INVITE request
                                              retransmits
Timer K  T4 for UDP       Section 17.1.2.2     Wait time for
        0s for TCP/SCTP                       response retransmits

                  Table 4: Summary of timers










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 265]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Acknowledgments

  We wish to thank the members of the IETF MMUSIC and SIP WGs for their
  comments and suggestions.  Detailed comments were provided by Ofir
  Arkin, Brian Bidulock, Jim Buller, Neil Deason, Dave Devanathan,
  Keith Drage, Bill Fenner, Cedric Fluckiger, Yaron Goland, John
  Hearty, Bernie Hoeneisen, Jo Hornsby, Phil Hoffer, Christian Huitema,
  Hisham Khartabil, Jean Jervis, Gadi Karmi, Peter Kjellerstedt, Anders
  Kristensen, Jonathan Lennox, Gethin Liddell, Allison Mankin, William
  Marshall, Rohan Mahy, Keith Moore, Vern Paxson, Bob Penfield, Moshe
  J. Sambol, Chip Sharp, Igor Slepchin, Eric Tremblay, and Rick
  Workman.

  Brian Rosen provided the compiled BNF.

  Jean Mahoney provided technical writing assistance.

  This work is based, inter alia, on [41,42].

































Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 266]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Authors' Addresses

  Authors addresses are listed alphabetically for the editors, the
  writers, and then the original authors of RFC 2543.  All listed
  authors actively contributed large amounts of text to this document.

  Jonathan Rosenberg
  dynamicsoft
  72 Eagle Rock Ave
  East Hanover, NJ 07936
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Henning Schulzrinne
  Dept. of Computer Science
  Columbia University
  1214 Amsterdam Avenue
  New York, NY 10027
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Gonzalo Camarillo
  Ericsson
  Advanced Signalling Research Lab.
  FIN-02420 Jorvas
  Finland

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Alan Johnston
  WorldCom
  100 South 4th Street
  St. Louis, MO 63102
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]










Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 267]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


  Jon Peterson
  NeuStar, Inc
  1800 Sutter Street, Suite 570
  Concord, CA 94520
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Robert Sparks
  dynamicsoft, Inc.
  5100 Tennyson Parkway
  Suite 1200
  Plano, Texas 75024
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Mark Handley
  International Computer Science Institute
  1947 Center St, Suite 600
  Berkeley, CA 94704
  USA

  EMail:  [email protected]


  Eve Schooler
  AT&T Labs-Research
  75 Willow Road
  Menlo Park, CA 94025
  USA

  EMail: [email protected]
















Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 268]

RFC 3261            SIP: Session Initiation Protocol           June 2002


Full Copyright Statement

  Copyright (C) The Internet Society (2002).  All Rights Reserved.

  This document and translations of it may be copied and furnished to
  others, and derivative works that comment on or otherwise explain it
  or assist in its implementation may be prepared, copied, published
  and distributed, in whole or in part, without restriction of any
  kind, provided that the above copyright notice and this paragraph are
  included on all such copies and derivative works.  However, this
  document itself may not be modified in any way, such as by removing
  the copyright notice or references to the Internet Society or other
  Internet organizations, except as needed for the purpose of
  developing Internet standards in which case the procedures for
  copyrights defined in the Internet Standards process must be
  followed, or as required to translate it into languages other than
  English.

  The limited permissions granted above are perpetual and will not be
  revoked by the Internet Society or its successors or assigns.

  This document and the information contained herein is provided on an
  "AS IS" basis and THE INTERNET SOCIETY AND THE INTERNET ENGINEERING
  TASK FORCE DISCLAIMS ALL WARRANTIES, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING
  BUT NOT LIMITED TO ANY WARRANTY THAT THE USE OF THE INFORMATION
  HEREIN WILL NOT INFRINGE ANY RIGHTS OR ANY IMPLIED WARRANTIES OF
  MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A PARTICULAR PURPOSE.

Acknowledgement

  Funding for the RFC Editor function is currently provided by the
  Internet Society.



















Rosenberg, et. al.          Standards Track                   [Page 269]